Perverts 'R' Us

Little Tina and Friends

By Author Unknown (1st, pedo, coer, Blckm, inc-family orgy, oral, anal, toys)

Note from The Purvv: This is a story that can be found in some of the farthest reaches of the internet. Unfortunately there is no author associated with it, which is a shame because there very well could be more to this, as we think that this version, which includes Chapter 6, only covers through 1997 and the author hinted to a lot more coming. Extensive editing had to be done, but it seems worth it as this is a very interesting story. Even so, it was only a light pass-over edit, as this was the best that time permitted. Further editing is needed but we'll ask you the reader to email us any and all errors that might be found.

Chapter 1 - The lessons begin

Tina didn't know what to do. She had let David lead her back into the storage shed knowing he wanted to "play doctor." He had told her that he thought she was cute, and that he thought she should have a boy friend. The idea that this older boy would be interested in her excited the 11-year-old girl, but then when he'd suggested that if she wanted to be his girlfriend that she'd have to "do things," Tina didn't know how to handle such a proposition. She knew what the nuns at Our Lady of Grace would tell her, but she wanted to find out what it was like to have a boyfriend.

'Maybe all girls have to do this...' she thought to herself.

"I promise, Tina...I won't even touch you! I just think you have a cute body, and I'd really like to see it. Come on...No one will ever know!"

'He thinks I'm cute!!' she thought.

"I don't know, David. Are you sure we won't get caught?"

"Hey...I know the perfect place. Mr. Phillips' shed. He never goes back there, and besides...he's not even home now!!"

And so, little pre-teen Tina let herself be led back to the shed behind Jim Phillips' house. Once inside, David closed the door after them, and turned on the light. The shed was musty and small, but there was a couch on one side and David promptly flopped down on it.

"See...Nice and private. No one is gonna bother us in here. So...Why don't you show me what you look like under those shorts!?"

"I don't know..."

"Hey, if you want to be my girlfriend, you're gonna have to loosen up a little. Heck, the girls in my class do it all the time. There's no harm in just doing a little 'show 'n tell', if you know what I mean! Besides, I think you're really cute - - And I'll let you see what I got underneath my pants, if you want."

"Do you really think I'm cute?"

"Sure...I like younger girls!!"

He'd finally hit on the right combination of coaxing and complimenting to bend little Tina to his will. The youngster loved hearing him say she was cute, even when she knew that her little body had no curves or development at all. Besides, she was desperately curious to find out about BOYS!! If this was the price she had to pay, long as there was no touching...Tina guessed she could go ahead.

"Okay...I guess...But I want to see you too!!"

" problem. You go first and I'll be right behind you!"

Slowly, Tina unsnapped her shorts and pulled down the zipper. She put her thumbs in the waist band and pushed them down to her knees. She stood there for a minute in her panties; hesitating before taking the last step to showing David her small, hairless cunny.

"Go on, Tina...I promise not to move from this couch. Lemme see!!!"

And so she did. Again her thumbs went into the waistband and pushed the panties down to her knees, revealing her hairless, plump cunt to the 14-year-old's gaze.

"Oh MAN! That's REAL NICE!"

Almost as if on cue, the door to the shed was pulled open, and Jim Phillips stepped in...

"I told you kids to stay out of my yard...What's going on here?" He was looking right at Tina while she tried to quickly pull up her panties and shorts at the same time, making a bad job of it.

"All right you two. I think I have a pretty good idea of what's happening. The both of you are in big trouble. You got anything to say for yourselves?"

David, who had just sat there the entire time, piped up with, "We weren't doing nothing. I mean...I didn't do anything. We just sorta wanted to look...I mean...You're not gonna tell my parents, are you? They'd kill me if they found out we were...I mean...My mom would get really mad, and my dad would..."

He sputtered out at that point, and didn't look like he could think of anything more to say.

Tina was too upset to say anything. She had let David talk her into this. The thought of an older boy being interested in her was too much for her to resist so she had let him take her by the hand and lead her back to that shed. Now her young world was crashing down.

Quietly the young girl started to sob. She didn't want to cry, but knowing how much trouble she was in scared her and all she could think to do was cry. Trying to hold back the tears, her slender body started to shake.

"All right; here's how it is. David, you go home - - right this instant! I'm going to decide what to tell your parents; or even if I tell your parents, after I talk to Tina here. I'm going to see how far this goes, and then I'll figure out just what to do about you."

David didn't need any more prodding than that. He was off in a flash. Mr. Phillips then turned back to Tina and put his hand on her shoulder. "Okay, young lady, I think you better come in the house and have a talk with me. You're in big trouble, and I think you know that, I just want to find out how big."

Tina was still shaking with barely stifled sobs. Mr. Phillips' hand on her shoulder guided her to the back door of the house and into his living room. Once inside, he sat her down on the couch and left her there, telling her that he'd be back in a minute.

Of all the sheds in the neighborhood, Jim Phillips' shed was the one that posed the most danger for the little girl; although she would have had no way of knowing that. If his neighbors knew of his private goings-on most of them would have been demanding his arrest and imprisonment just because of how they would have perceived him as a threat to society. He was into various shades of sex, including filming, and although little girls were not a readily available commodity, he sometimes managed to figure out ways to ensnare one. Although he was involved with all ages, the younger ones seemed to turn him on more than the older girls of his crowd.

Little Tina couldn't have known that he was trembling inside, just from anticipation of the possibilities. As soon as he left her, he rushed to the area where he occasionally did that special filming. He had earlier prepared it, but now he just wanted to assure himself that things were right. He was beginning to feel that he may really have a good chance here with Tina but, at the very worse, he thought he'd get a pic or two. When he came back by her about three minutes later she was still sobbing. He had brought some tissues with him and he handed one to her.

"Okay, now I want to know what you thought you were doing out there?" he asked, sitting down next to her on the couch.

"Pl...Please don't tell parents, Mr. Phillips. I duh...don't know what they would do. I...I..." Tina broke out into sobs, and Mr. Phillips handed her another tissue and put his arm around the 11-year-old's shoulders.

He let her cry for a short time and then said, "Look, I don't want to see you in trouble. But I do want to know what you two were doing back there. Now tell me what happened."

Tina again tried to hold back her tears. "David told me I could be his girlfriend if I would go along with what he wanted. He said he wouldn't touch me."

"And did he touch you?"

"No. All he wanted to do was look. And he wanted me to look at him. And so...I thought it would be neat to be his girlfriend, and I thought he was older so it was okay and maybe I'd get to see his..." And with that she stopped. She didn't want to admit to her own curiosity.

"I see. And did you touch him?"

"No...He wanted to go someplace private and so he took me to your shed. Then he said I had to go first. I didn't want to, but he said it would be okay. He wouldn't tell anyone. He said that you weren't even home, and that all he wanted was to look."

"So you took your shorts and panties off for him."

"Yeah...It was weird, but he said he would if I would. So I di...I did." The sobbing started again.

The youngster had no way of knowing that Jim Phillips' mind was calculating just how afraid she was, but she did notice that he seemed to come to some sort of a decision at that point. Still keeping his arm around the crying little girl he said, "Okay, Tina...Hold on...Stop crying a minute...and I'll tell you what I'm going to do."

Tina took a minute to compose herself and then she looked up into the man's face.

"You know you're in big trouble; your parents won't like what I'm going to have to tell them; they'll probably hit the roof. First they'll punish you, and then probably go see David's parents and see that he gets punished too..." He paused a moment for affect; letting Tina's imagination fill in the appropriate blanks. "Of course, I don't have to tell them anything if you would be willing to do for me what you did for David."

Tina wasn't sure what she heard. Her 11-year-old brain said that maybe there was a way out of this mess and she wanted desperately to take it, but she wasn't quite sure what she had to do. "What do you mean?"

"I mean that since you were willing to let David see you with no clothes on, then maybe, to get out of trouble, you'd be willing to do the same for me. Your parents would never have to know anything about what happened out there. You and I would have a little fun exploring each other and then you could go home as if nothing happened. David won't tell. He'd just get himself into trouble," he said, secretly being positive of the boy's silence. "So...what do you want to do; have me go tell your parents that I saw you naked in my shed with David, or cooperate with me and get out of trouble at the same time?"

Tina was stunned. With his arm around her, he seemed so friendly and caring. She didn't want to be in trouble with her parents. Her young mind raced. It wasn't so bad taking her clothes off for David. Maybe everything would be all right if she did what her neighbor wanted. After that she could just go home as if nothing happened.

"I don't know..." was all she could say.

Getting up off the couch Mr. Phillips heaved a big sigh. "Look Tina. Either you do what I want, or I tell your parents that both you and David were back there naked, and that you were using my shed to make-out and do nasty things. They'll believe me, you know. Both of you will deny it, but I'll stick by my story and make sure that you two both wind up in so much trouble that you'll never hear the end of it." He started walking to the phone. "I can call them now and march you right home, if that's what you want."

"NO!! Pleeeeaaaasssss..." Tina started crying again. She was panicky, knowing that her father would probably beat her black and blue. "I'll do what you want, but pleeeaasse don't call my parents." She was sobbing again.

The grin spread across Mr. Phillips' face slowly. He wanted this little girl. He had decided long before he had opened the shed door and seen her standing there with her panties down that he WANTED her. And his confidence was growing with every hesitation on the child's part. He was quickly becoming convinced that she was going to be doing a lot more than a little striptease before he was done with her.

He watched her cry for a minute; watched the way her shoulders shook; the way her flat chest moved with the sobs; the way her slender legs quivered in sympathy with the rest of her body. He was going to have a good time today.

"All right; come with me, and we can get this started."

She looked at him. He was looking at her with a slight grin on his face. Tina was scared, but the alternative was worse. She stood up and walked over to him. He put his arm around her shoulders again.

"Come on up to the bedroom and we'll do this right. No need to hide out in the shed when there are more comfortable places to stretch out, right?"

He held her tightly as he led her up to the bedroom.

Tina was in a daze. 'Okay,' she thought. 'Maybe this won't be so bad. Maybe all I've got to do is let him see me. Maybe he'll let me see him...' and that same curiosity that got her in trouble in the first place popped up again.

Jim Phillips led the youngster to the special room that he had set up just for this type of occasion. It had a bed all right, but it also had his video set up and other accessories that he used when filming swinger videos with his other swinging friends. Jim had long ago developed a taste for filming people while having sex, frequently participating in the films when another man was needed. He was going to make a very special film today. This had been his hope when he first thought up this little scheme.

He opened the door and led Tina in; sitting her on the edge of the bed and then turning around to close the door. With his back to the little girl, he stepped over to the video equipment controls; turning on the cameras but leaving the monitors off. Tina was completely unaware that now, every angle of the room was being recorded.

"Okay, Tina," he said, turning away from the controls to the two video cameras. When he saw her fearful expression he walked over to the bed and put his arm around her. "Look, I don't want you to be afraid or nervous. You're a very pretty young girl, and I'm sure lots of boys have tried to do with you what David did. Right?" he asked, putting one hand on the child's cheek and turning her face to look at his.

"Uh...No. I've never done that before and he said he would be my boyfriend and that he'd never tell."

She was surprised because Mr. Phillips was looking at her with real concern. And she hadn't missed his calling her a 'pretty girl'.

"Really? I'm surprised! You're getting to the age where boys like David are going to be interested in you. I guess your parents have told you everything you need to know about boys and growing up, right?"

As he said this he started to caress the youngster's cheek with one hand while massaging her back with the other.

"Uh...No...I mean...My parents won't talk about anything like that. We even had a class at school, you know...And my parents were supposed to sign this form that the school sent home, but they wouldn't. They said it's wrong to teach that stuff in schools, so I didn't get to go to that class."

Tina was starting to like the way Mr. Phillips was touching her. His large hands on her back and cheek felt warm and caring.

"Oh..." he said sounding real surprised. "If you haven't had any experience at all, then maybe I better send you home right now, and give your parents a good talking to. They should know that a young girl, especially one as pretty as you, should be taught some things before she gets too old. Maybe I should give them a call right now and tell them what happened. I mean, if I explained that you didn't know any better, then they would know it was their fault for not teaching you the things you need to know..." he let that trail off, and made as if to get up.

"NO...Please...Don't call my parents. My Dad would kill me. They don't believe in that stuff. All they would do is beat me and I don't know what else..."

Tina was panicked again. Whatever happened she didn't want her parents to hear about any of this.

She lived in a house with four other people; her mother and father, and her two sisters; Mary her 9-year old sister, and Lisa her 7-year-old sister. Her mother and father were quite strict with the girls; her father sometimes too strict. More than once he had beaten each of the girls and her mother; usually after he had been drinking. They had all learned when to avoid him.

"I'll do whatever you want, but please don't tell my parents," said the frightened girl, softly.

These were the words Jim Phillips was waiting to hear. He acted like he had to think about it for a minute, and then heaved a big sigh, as if relenting to the poor 11-year-old girl. "All right, Tina. I won't tell them, but you still have to do what I want."

"I'll do anything," she said with real relief.

"All right, but as of right now, I guess I'm going to have to be your teacher. Someone has to tell you about all the things you need to know. And there are lots of things I can tell you that you won't hear in any class in school. There are lots of things that society, your parents, and the schools don't want kids your age to know, but which are really important. Would you like that? Do you want me to teach you about your body and sex?"

"Yeah," she said. Tina was thinking that 'Mr. Phillips must really care if he wants to teach me something.'

Jim got off the bed and walked over to an overstuffed chair in the corner of the room. He sat down in it and said, "That's not good enough Tina. I have to be sure of what you want. You have to tell me what you want. I want you to say, 'Please teach me all about sex.' I want you to ask me real sweet."

"Uh...Please teach me all about sex," she said with some hesitation.

"No...That's not good enough. You don't sound like you mean it. Try again...To me, like you mean it…Only this time...say, 'My name is Tina West, I'm 11 years old and I want to learn all about sex.'"

"My name is Tina West, I'm 11 years old and I want to learn all about sex."

"Very good. Now say, 'I want to take all my clothes off for you and show you what a pretty little girl I am.'"

"I want to take my clothes off for you and show you what a pretty little girl I am."

Tina couldn't believe how easy it was to say these things. It didn't seem so bad now that Mr. Phillips was across the room. That made it easier to say the words, but part of her wanted to feel his arm around her again, and have him touch her cheek some more.

"Good girl, Tina. Now stand up and take off your shirt."

Now she hesitated again.

"…Go ahead Tina, you said you wanted to…"

And so the little girl reached up with both hands and started unbuttoning her blouse. She was embarrassed because she knew that under the shirt was...well...nothing. Her breasts had not started to grow much at all. They just stood out as small bumps. She was worried that Mr. Phillips would be disappointed.

"Go on...unbutton it and drop it on the floor, sweetheart," he coaxed gently.

Jim Phillips was watching the little girl closely. Her hands trembled as she unbuttoned her pale blue blouse. When she got the last button undone, she paused and looked at him. He just nodded; a gentle assurance on his face. With some hesitation, she eased it off her shoulders and let it fall to the floor. Phillips already had a hard-on, but watching this gorgeous little girl strip for him made it throb in his pants. She stood in front of him; four feet two inches tall, her light blonde hair reaching just to her slender shoulders, which were trembling. Her tits were just little buds on her chest; her figure almost straight with a slight curve at the waist. Her blue shorts were not filled out at all and her legs were slender down to her sneakers. She stood there, her hands fidgeting, wanting to cover her chest, but knowing there was nothing to cover. Phillips loved it.

"That's real nice, Tina. I told you you were a very pretty girl. Turn around so I can see you from all sides."

Tina slowly turned around. And Phillips longed to touch her smooth skin; but not yet.

"All right; now I want you to take off your shorts, but leave your panties on."

"Should I take off my shoes and socks?" she asked innocently.

"Yes, sweetheart."


The youngster sat on the bed and undid her sneakers, letting them fall on the floor next to her blouse. Her socks followed. Again she hesitated. Mr. Phillips was watching her. She knew she had to do it. She mustered her courage and then stood up, put her thumbs in the waist of her blue shorts and pushed them down to her ankles where she stepped out of them. Standing there, wearing only her white cotton panties, she suddenly started shivering, though it wasn't cold.

'Gawd...she's gorgeous,' Jim thought as again he told her to turn around so he could see all sides of her. "Okay, Tina, now I want you to take off your panties and stand straight and tall so I can get a good look at you."

Tina hesitated one last time. This was it.

Her child mind rationalized. She had done it for David, and he hadn't been as nice as Mr. Phillips; he'd been in a real hurry, and he made her do it in a dirty old shed. 'Mr. Phillips is actually kind of nice.' And with that thought she hooked her fingers into her white cotton panties and pushed them down to her ankles. Then she stood up and faced the older man so he could see that she really would do anything he wanted.

Chapter Two

Jim Phillips could not believe his eyes. The little girl stood there and actually smiled at him. Her little pussy was totally bare, not a hair on it. Her chest was almost flat, and her figure almost completely straight. Her hips were slender, almost skinny. She couldn't have weighed more than 85 pounds, and she looked fantastic to him.

She was smiling at him - - shyly, but it was there. His hard-on was ready to pop out of his pants. He wanted to be sure to get some more video without him in the picture, so he had to wait for a just a little longer before he went to her.

"Turn around, Tina. Let me see your pretty little bottom. That's right. Bend over for me and touch your toes. Hold it… just like that."

The girl had turned around and was now bent over with her butt toward him. Her ass was wide open; there was no spare flesh to obscure her little butt-hole. Her small, clean pussy lips pouted from between her legs.

"'re beautiful."

Tina couldn't understand why Mr. Phillips liked looking at her so much. She didn't have any tits, and her body hadn't started to change like some of the other girls in her grammar school class. It felt weird to her to be bending over, showing the grown up her bottom, but she sort of got a thrill out of it too.

She spread her legs a little so she could look between them and see his face. He was leaning forward in his chair and his eyes were glued to her bottom. He seemed to be breathing heavily, and maybe even sweating a little too; though the room wasn't hot.

"Now lie down on the bed Tina; and spread your legs out. I want to see if you've matured at all. That's it. No...face me now; lie on your back; pull your knees up a little and spread them as wide as you can."

The little girl lay down on the bed and pointed her feet to Mr. Phillips. She lay down on her back and drew her knees up and started to do as the man told her. But once more she hesitated. She had never felt so exposed. She was going to let him see her cunny! Even she had not seen it that much! It always seemed so wrong to look at herself there too closely. She froze.

"Tina. You want to do it for me, don't you?"

"Uh huh."

"Say that you do. Say 'I want to spread my legs for you.'"

"I want to spread my legs for you."

"Okay. Now do it. Please. I really think you're so pretty and I want to see all of you, sweetheart."

That did it. Tina lifted her knees again and slowly spread her legs until she was completely open to the man. The little girl's pussy was small but beautiful. Her hairless outer lips spread slightly as she pulled her legs apart. Her pink inner regions could just barely be seen. Her clitoris was prominent at the top of her small pink slit. As the 11-year-old girl held herself open to this 42-year-old man, her legs trembled.

Jim Phillips swallowed hard. His boner was rock hard now. He couldn't take any more. He had to touch this youngster. He got up out of his chair and stood by the bed, looking down at the spread out child. She had put her hands behind her head and was looking up at him, uncertain.

Jim started to unbutton his shirt, not saying anything. Tina watched him; too uncertain to move.

When he dropped his shirt, he said, "Tina, you want me to teach you what you need to know, right?"

"Uh huh..."

"I need to touch you, and look at you to see if you've developed. You want me to do that, right?"

"Uh huh..."

"Not good enough, Tina. Say 'Please look at me and touch me on my pussy.'"

"My what?"

"Your pussy, Tina. That beautiful little slit you have between your legs. What do you call it?"

"Uh...I always called it my cunny."

"Okay then, I want you to say, 'Please look at my cunny. Touch my cunny, please."

"Please look at my cunny. Touch my cunny, please."

Jim Phillips didn't hesitate. He sat down between the little girl's legs. When she instinctively started to react by closing her legs, he gently grabbed an ankle in each hand and held them wide apart. His hands easily fit all the way around her ankles. He held her there until she realized that she was not going to be able to cover up her small 'cunny', and then he let go of her legs.

He leaned down until her small hairless pussy was only inches from his face. He just sat there looking at the child's pussy.

Finally, he reached up and touched her clitoris. The reaction was immediate. Tina's little body stiffened and she began to tremble again. Not from excitement, not yet; but from fear - - and the strangeness of having a man touch her for the first time.

Tina could feel his breath on the smooth skin of her cunny. She had raised her head and was looking at Mr. Phillips, but all his concentration was on her little hole. When he touched her it was like an electric shock. She was scared all over again. What was he going to do to her?

He let his whole hand cover her cunny; its warmth easily covered her. He began to move it over her. First between her legs then slowly up her body to her chest; then back and forth over the little bumps that would someday be her breasts; finally back down her body to her cunny.

Jim Phillips loved what he was seeing and feeling. He had touched her clit with his finger and felt her jerk. Then he covered her tiny pussy with his hand so he could feel the whole thing. It was so smooth and soft to his touch. The smell that he caught was heaven. Pure virgin little girl! He rubbed her pussy with his whole hand for a while, feeling the wonderful hairlessness of her mound, and then he slowly pushed it up her body.

He pushed on up; over her belly, feeling her ribcage, and then to her right breast. Although it was just a tiny mound, barely enough to squeeze between two fingers, it turned the man on! He moved to the other breast, an equally small bump on the girl's chest. Tina was really trembling now. Her breath was quick and he felt the rise and fall of it under her little titties. She was really nervous and her body made small jerks that she could not control.

He loved it.

He stroked the youngster's upper body for a while, reaching up to her neck and putting his whole hand around the front for a second. Then he brought his hand back down, across her flat belly, across her totally hairless mound, and back to her little pussy, where he began to very gently rub her clitoris with one finger.

"Tina, you are beautiful, honey. And I'm going to teach you things about your body and about my body that you need to know. You shouldn't be ashamed of it, God gave you a very pretty little body, and a very pretty little cunny, and I'm going to show you what little girls and men can do with each other. You want that. I know you do because you said so. First, I want to know something. Do you ever play with yourself? Do you ever play with your cunny?"

"Nuh...No. I uh...I heard it was bad. I uh...never tried." Her fear caused her to stumble over her words. It just turned Jim on all the more.

"Okay, well, I'm going to rub you now and show you how good it can feel. It's not a bad thing. God gave you this body and he wants you to enjoy it, like a gift. Lay back and try to relax. I know this is strange to you, but if you relax you will really like it, and you'll learn more."

As he was saying this he started to rub the child's small clit harder. Her reaction was immediate. Tina dropped her head back and stared at the ceiling. Automatically her legs started to close, but he put up one hand and kept her little cunt open to him.

After a few seconds of rubbing, he said, "Now that feels good, doesn't it?"

"Uh huh..."

"Say it. Say 'It feels good when you rub my cunny.'"

"It feels g-good when you rub my cunny."

"Good girl. Do you want me to rub harder? Do you want me to make you feel good?"

"Uh...huh...I want..." but she didn't know how to complete the sentence.

Tina was starting to anticipate the man's requests. She knew she was going to have to ask for what her body was starting to want. His grown-up finger was stroking her little clit, causing her to begin feeling good, but he kept the pressure light so that she wanted him to do it harder.

"Say, 'Please rub my little cunny harder. Please make me feel good."

"Please rub my little cunny harder. Please make me feel good."

Jim Phillips started to rub the 11-year-old's hairless pussy in earnest. He could tell that she was starting to feel something other than nervousness. Her slender body still spasmed, but now he could tell it was in response to his finger on her young cunt, and not the nervousness of exposing her little cunt to a grown man.

Tina didn't know what she was feeling. She tried to categorize the feelings in her mind. She felt the man's breath on her skinny legs and cunny. She felt his finger spreading her hairless lips and rubbing up and down. She felt a little wetness at the bottom of her cunny which surprised her because she hadn't felt anything flow from within. And there was another feeling she had never felt before. It was getting stronger, and she didn't know what it was. She felt a little scared, but she didn't want it to stop.

Her breathing started to match the man's strokes. Coming in short little gasps.

"Uh Uh Uh Uh Uh Uh..."

Jim heard the little sounds escaping from this little girl. He saw how her breathing became more rapid. He could feel her little pussy starting to get wet, and he knew that he was turning her on. The youngster was going to cum, and he was going to be the one to give her her first orgasm. Tina started to move her head from side to side, her silky blond hair spreading out around her.

Propped up on one elbow with his other hand busy in the little girl's cunt, he could watch her, all aquiver with her building orgasm. He watched her little breast nubs rise and fall as her breathing became more rapid. He watched the flush start in her neck and work down into her chest. He saw her knees moving in and out slightly with each stroke of his fingers in her now wet little pussy. He saw that she didn't know what to do with her hands so that they danced around next to her body, sometimes gripping the air hard when he increased the pressure of his strokes. Yeah...Any second, this child was going to cum - - big time!

Tina didn't know what she was experiencing. Something was going to happen, but she didn't know what. All the fear was still there, but it wasn't important anymore. All her concentration was on the little area between her legs that was giving her these strange and wonderful feelings. She wasn't even aware of her head moving back and forth or of her hands starting to grip the sheets. She didn't know that she had started to move her bottom in rhythm with the man's strokes so that she could get more pressure. She wanted...She wanted...She didn't know what!!

Suddenly, Tina's world went pure white. As the man's finger moved in and out of her well moistened pussy, the orgasm hit her. She had no clue what it was. Wave after wave of pleasure hit her and her whole body spasmed with each wave. Her channel was involuntarily grasping about the man's finger as he sluiced in and out. She closed her eyes and rode the waves; totally scared; totally in pleasure. She had no name for it, and it went on forever. It was the most powerful thing she had ever felt, and the waves just kept hitting and hitting.

When Tina came, Jim Phillips thought he was going to cum in his pants. The little girl's cum was so strong that she lost complete control of her body. Her legs went straight out. Her head jerked back and forth with each spasm. Her little belly went taut, and her flat chest flushed red. Her little cunt was spasming, the lips pushing out in rhythm with her orgasm. She lost control of her voice and made moaning, crying noises with each spasm.

"Nuhhh Nuhh Nuhh Nuhh Nuhh Nuhh Nuhhhhhhhhhh aaaaaag..."

She bucked under his hand and Jim kept stroking her now soaking wet pussy. He loved seeing her out of control. He now knew that he was going to be able to get this little girl to do anything, now that he had shown her a little of what her body could do.

"Guh Guh...Guh...Guhhhhhhhhhaaaaaaa..."

The waves of pleasure finally began to subside. Tina's taut body began to relax. She could feel all the muscles that had spasmed begin to release themselves and she began to wonder what had happened. She lay for a second, aware of Mr. Phillips' hand on her cunny, now just lightly stroking, the small waves of pleasure still coming, but now much less intense. She opened her eyes and raised her head to look at the man.

"Wha...What happened?"

"You came, sweetheart. You had an orgasm. Your body reacted just like it was supposed to when a man plays with your little cunny. Lay back and relax, and I'll explain it to you."

Tina was all too happy to take his advice, though she was sorry when he took his hand off her little hole. She lay back and closed her eyes, just enjoying the sensations of her body coming down off her first orgasm.

Jim Phillips got off the bed and undid his pants. He dropped them to the floor. He left his underwear on, though they were bulging in front with his erection. He took one of Little Tina's ankles and closed her legs. She was completely limp. She didn't even open her eyes. He lay down next to her on the bed and then pulled her hot, sweating body next to his. At this she opened her eyes.

Tina heard Mr. Phillips moving around, and relaxed when he put her legs together. She was relaxed and could think of nothing but the pleasure she had just felt. But when she felt him lay next to her on the bed, putting an arm around her waist and pulling her tight to him, her eyes flew open. She could feel the grown-up's hard body next to hers. Her head was under his chin, and the hair on his chest was close to her face. She could smell his sweat, which was not unpleasant. And she could feel his hard thing pressing into her hip. It felt large, but she knew without looking that he was not naked, so she cocked her head and looked up into his eyes.

"Tina, what you had is called an orgasm. Women have orgasms when they get sexually excited. It's kind of a convulsion that feels very good. It's a sign that you are totally turned on. Do you understand what I'm saying?"

"Uh humm."

"Men have orgasms too. But when a man has an orgasm, certain things happen that are different. Do you know what a man's sexual organs are called, sweetheart?"

"Umm...I never knew until I saw my baby cousin getting his diaper changed, they called it his wiener."

"Okay...For now I'm going to use your words so you understand what I'm saying, because there are some big words you should know. The first is ejaculation. When a man has an orgasm he has what is called an ejaculation. It means that cream comes out of his wiener. Now this cream is very special. This cream is what the man gives the woman to make her have a baby. When the man ejaculates, the cream comes out of his wiener, and it feels very good to the man. Just as good as your orgasm felt to you. Do you understand so far?"

"Uh huh"

"Okay...I want to make sure you understand. Tell me what happens when a man has an orgasm."

"Uh...When a man has an orgasm, he...Uhh, his wiener makes cream, he uhh...ejack...uhh..."


"Ejaculates..." Tina said, repeating in earnest what Mr. Phillips was telling her. He really wanted to teach her. And she could feel his wiener throbbing against her every time she had to answer a question.

"Right. But the cream isn't 'made' in the man's wiener. The cream is made in a special organ called the testicles. These hang below the man's wiener. The cream comes from them. Now the cream has a special name's called semen. The semen is made in the testicles and comes out through the man's wiener. Do you understand that?"

"Uhhh...The cream...seem...uh...semen comes out of the man's wiener when he ejaculates. It comes from the testy...I don't know."

Tina was trying to learn what Jim Phillips was telling her. It turned him on to have a naked little pre-teenaged girl held tight next to him trying to repeat his sex lessons. He loved to hear her combination of correct and kiddy words to describe what he was telling her.

"Okay...That's okay...You will. Maybe the best thing to do is just to show you some videos that will help explain it. I have some that show men having orgasms with girls. Let me show them to you. He reached up to the headboard, his body arching over hers. For a second his chest was over her face, pushing down on her, and his hot cock was pressed into her lower belly. Tina got a little scared, but he just as quickly took his weight off her and returned to her side. He had the remote control for his video equipment.

He had reached over Tina in that way on purpose. He wanted to feel her small body under him. He wanted to push his penis hard onto her and feel her reaction. She had stiffened a bit, but not too much. Good, she was accepting the strangeness of this new situation.

"Come here...Prop up on the bed. No, come over next to me..." She snuggled closer. "That's right. Now watch these pictures and you'll understand what I'm talking about."

He hit the remote, and the TV at the foot of the bed came on. He hit it again and the VCR started playing the tape he had already loaded in anticipation of this 'lesson'. The tape was kiddie-porn, totally illegal, but totally perfect for this occasion. Jim wanted to show Tina that it was all right for 42-year-old men to have sex with little girls Tina's age, and younger. He wanted Tina to believe that, for that was what he had in mind.

The first scene started. It wasn't one that Jim had filmed, but it was perfect for this lesson. As Tina watched, Jim let his hand wander over the child's body, back to her hairless little cunt, and he started to massage her again...very slowly.

Tina could not believe what she saw on the screen. There was a little girl, not much older than her, she thought, and she was completely naked; sitting on the edge of a bed, with her legs spread wide. She was holding the lips of her hairless cunny apart, and Tina could see the pink inside. This was the first time Tina had ever gotten to see one like this, but the scene did not last very long.

The girl seemed to look up at someone off-camera, and then she looked at the camera and said, "My name is Debbie Edwards. I'm 10 years old, and I want to learn about sex. I uhhh..." and the girl looked off-camera again, nodded her head, and then looked back at the camera. "I uhhh want to show you what a good little girl I am and uhh..." Again she looked for direction. "What a good girl I am and how I can use my mouth."

She looked off-camera to the left again, but then looked right. Just then a man walked into the picture. You could only see him from the middle of his chest down, but his cock was in full view.

Jim Phillips froze the picture at this point. "That's what a man's wiener looks like Tina, see. And the part under it is the testicles."

Tina's eyes were glued to the screen. She had only gotten a glimpse of David in the shed, but this was unbelievable. It was big and strange looking. It sorta stuck out from the man's body; pointing directly at the little girl in the picture. That was the other thing Tina could not believe. This little girl was younger than her; only 10 years old and she didn't look scared at all by the naked man standing in front of her.

The picture unfroze, and the man walked over to stand right in front of the girl. He rubbed his cock with one hand and reached out to put his other behind the little girl's head. He pulled on her head, and she let him lean her forward until his cock brushed her lips.

Tina was stunned. This girl didn't seem to mind that the man was touching her mouth with his wiener.

The man's cock was growing. It was getting longer as he slowly moved it against the girl's face. The girl was looking at it, a strange look upon her face, and then she looked up at his face.

"That's a good girl...That's a good girl...Now open your mouth really wide..." You could hear the man's voice even though his face was off-camera. The little girl looked up at the him and opened her mouth. The man rubbed his penis around her lips one time and then slowly pulled her head down onto his huge cock.

Again, Jim froze the picture.

"Tina, what do you think of that?" he asked.

"Uhh...I don't know...She's younger than me and...What is he doing to her?"

"He's showing her one of the best ways for a girl to give a man pleasure. There are lots of things that girls and men can do together to give pleasure to each other. Watch...I want you to see what a man's orgasm looks like. Debbie is going to really turn him on, and then he's going to ejaculate so you can see it. Watch..."

He unfroze the picture.

Tina watched as little Debbie's head was pulled down on the man's huge wiener. The youngster's mouth was totally stretched, and the man was so large that most of his organ wouldn't fit into her mouth. The man started to move the little girl's head back and forth on his cock. He had taken the one hand off his prick and now had both of them on her head.

"Good girl...Good girl...Oh, yeah...Come on...Just a little deeper..." His hips were starting to sway.

At one point the girl reached up with her small hand and started to hold the man's cock, but another hand reached in from off-camera and pulled it back down to her lap. "Just your mouth, sweetheart. We want you to use your mouth. No hands, sweetheart. That's a good girl. We're gonna fuck you in the mouth, so keep your hands in your lap like we told you, okay sweetheart?" The 10-year-old dropped her hand back to her lap and tried to nod her assent, but the man was starting to thrust harder into her mouth.

Tina couldn't believe what she was seeing. The girl started to wince as the man pulled harder on her head.

Suddenly, another man was behind the girl on the bed; his large cock at the back of her head. He reached down and put both his hands on the back of little Debbie's head and started pushing her mouth even harder onto the man in front.

"Good girl...Good girl...Open up...Come on...Open up for me. I'm gonna shove it all the way into your face, Debbie. Oh God, your mouth is good. I can feel your throat, baby. Open your throat for me. Ohhh you little bitch...Come on...TAKE IT!!"

The man in front was pulling on Debbie's hair. His cock was almost all the way into the little girl's mouth when he thrust. The youngster's hands were moving, but again, another off-camera hand came in and stopped her from reaching up. Debbie winced each time her mouth was filled. Tears were forming at the corner of her eyes.

Tina did not believe that the little girl was enjoying this.

The man thrust hard and held Debbie's head down on his cock. The 10-year-old girl started to gag, and the spasms in her throat seemed to turn the man on all the more. The man behind her was pushing her head forward even as she gagged and twisted, her face impaled on the huge cock. The other pulled his cock out of her mouth.

"Tell me you want me to cum...Tell me you want it in your face..."

The little girl looked up at the man and to Tina's amazement, said..."Please shoot in my face. Please shoot in my face. Please shoot in my face." She repeated it over and over like it was a line she had been taught. The man stroked his cock once, twice, and then a blast of cum shot from the end of his dick. It landed on Debbie's forehead and started to drip down into one eye. The youngster had winced when this first splash of cum had hit, but the man behind her held her in place and tilted her head back.

"Open your mouth...Arrrgghh...Open your fucking mouth..."

Debbie did as she was told and the next blast from the man's cock hit her in the nose. The man shot cream all over the little girl's face. It hit her in the cheek. It hit her in the chin. It went in her mouth. It dripped down her throat and on her flat chest. It kept coming for a long time. Finally, though it didn't seem like the man had stopped shooting his cream, he pushed his cock back into the little girl's mouth and slammed it home one more time, causing the cream in her mouth to drip out the sides and down her cheeks.

When he pulled his cock out of the child's mouth, the man behind her pulled on her head, and laid her flat on the bed. He then straddled her chest and started to jerk off in the little girl's face. Her arms were pinned to her sides, and it looked as if the weight of the man on her chest made it hard for little Debbie to breathe, but she kept up her lines, all the while looking into the face of the man who was about to spray her with cum.

"Please shoot in my face...Please shoot in my face...Please shoot in my face..."

"Ohhh...Here it comes you little cunt...Open your mouth...Oh...Ohh...Openn... AAAAAAARRRRRRRRRGGGGGGGHHHHHHH."

The first blast from this man shot right into the 10-year-old's mouth. She closed her mouth and Tina could see that she was swallowing the man's cream. The second shot hit her in the bottom of the chin, and dripped down either side of her neck and into her hair. She opened her mouth again, but the man was too oblivious to aim. He sprayed cum all over her face and hair. Debbie moved her face from side to side a little, all the while keeping her mouth open and her tongue out.

When the man was done, he got off the little girl and wiped her face with his finger tips. They came away all sticky.

"There you go baby...Good girl...That'll make your tits grow big, you know..." he said as he proceeded to wipe them off on the little girl's chest, where her tits would grow someday. Then he sat her up so that she was on the edge of the bed again. She looked tired and her hand came up to rub the cum on her face.

She looked up at a voice off-camera, "You liked that didn't you Debbie?"

"Uh huh..." was all the girl on the screen could say.

"You like the taste of cum don't you? Come on, sweetheart, smile. You just got a nice load of cum all over you."

"Uh huh..."

Tina could not believe what she was seeing. This little girl who just seconds ago didn't look too happy had started to smile for whoever was behind the camera. Cream was dripping off her chin and hitting her hairless pussy. A hand again reached in from off-camera and rubbed the cream on her cheek. He then held it out just in front of her face.

"Go on...lick it off; you know it's good for you..."

Debbie leaned forward and sucked the end of the man's finger into her mouth. The finger went back for more. Drips of rapidly cooling semen were disappearing into the mouth of this little girl and the man kept wiping off her cheeks, forehead and neck. Finally he wiped his hand off on her chest, and the hand left the picture. The camera started to close in on the girl's face. And the picture froze with little Debbie's cum-covered face smiling into the camera.

"Tina, that's what it looks like when a man ejaculates. The cream is called semen or cum. When the man shoots his semen he is having an orgasm, just like you had. The semen is what the man gives a woman to make a baby, only it has to be done a special way. The semen comes from the man's testicles; remember you saw them in the picture. Do you understand now?"

Tina had been nodding her head while Jim made his explanation. She still didn't know what to make of it. She looked up at him and said, "I guess so..."

"It's okay, if you don't completely understand; I have some more pictures to show you. I always thought that seeing and then doing were the best ways to learn anything. You do want to learn about sex, right?"

"Uh huh..."

"Okay, good. Let me show you some more pictures of girls making men have orgasms, and then you'll get a clearer idea before you try it."

These last words 'before you try it' made Tina start, but the TV was running again and she quickly forgot the phrase; watching incredible sights on the screen.

Chapter Three

Jim Phillips had put together a montage of scenes from a lot of different porn that he had collected and made. Much of it was kiddie porn, but some of it was mature women really enjoying sex with one, two or five men at the same time. None of the scenes had any fucking. It was all either masturbation or oral sex. He wanted Tina to get the idea that everyone was doing it EXCEPT her.

The first short scene showed a little girl, about 12, jerking off a man who was lying on his back. When he came, the girl kept stroking his cock. Finally, she got on her hands and knees and bent her head to lick the cum off his belly.

The next scene showed a man of at least 50 and a girl, about 18, really getting it on. He was finger-fucking her as she sucked him.

"I'm cumming...I'm cumming...I...I...I'M CUMMMmmmmubbb..." Her words were cut off as she thrust the man's cock in her mouth again.

A few seconds later the man pulled his cock out of the child's mouth and jerked off; cumming on her tits. The scene ended with the girl rubbing the cum into her tits like her life depended on it.

The next scene showed four men standing around a girl of about 13. They were jerking on their cocks, and the girl was moving her head from one man to the next, jerking them off and rubbing their dicks against her face. One after the other the men exploded on her. Some shots of the warm, sticky semen hit her face, but most of it dripped down to her chest, where her tits were just starting to take on a nice shape. They all helped her massage it into her skin until she glistened from neck to pussy in a coating of jism. The scenes went on and on like that.

Tina was amazed. Before today she had never seen a naked man, and didn't know anything about sex. Now she was seeing more of it than most people see in a year or more. And all the people seemed to be really enjoying it. She saw girls from 7 to 23 having orgasms like the one that she had. She saw men ejaculating semen on faces, big round tits, flat chests, bellies, and hairy and hairless cunnies. She saw men licking girl's cunnies; girls licking men's wieners. She saw a little 7-year-old kissing a man's testicles while he jerked off and ejaculated in her hair. She saw it all... And the scenes ended with the people smiling!!

When the tape ended she was so stunned that she missed the first words that Mr. Phillips said.

"...look like fun, Tina?"


"I said, didn't that look like fun?"

"I...uh...I don't know. I mean...yeah...I mean, they all seemed to like it and all, was kinda gross. I mean...those men kept squirting their semen all over...I mean...It looked kinda gross."

"Well, Tina, I can understand how you would feel that way, having never been told about sex, but, well there are some things they didn't even tell your friends in that special class. You see, when a person matures, when they reach puberty, there are things called hormones that make the body develop. You know...the hormones cause a girl's breasts to grow, and the hair to grow on your cunny. If you had been allowed to go to that class they would have told you that, but what they wouldn't have told you is that your body only makes so many hormones, and then it stops. That's when your body stops developing. Flat-chested girls don't have as many hormones in their bodies, so their breasts don't grow very far. The more hormones in the body, the more a girl develops. The biggest secret of all is that there are hormones in a man's semen. If you want bigger breasts and you need more hormones, you can get it from a man's semen. That's why you saw those girls and the women with tits rubbing it all over their breasts. They want to look prettier. Do you understand Tina? A man's semen helps a girl develop a prettier body. You want to be prettier, don't you Tina?"

"Yeah...I'd like to be a model someday."

"Well, a man's semen can help you do that. That's why all those men kept squirting on all those girls. The girls wanted them to do that. Now, having seen all that, do you understand about the way a man has an orgasm? Do you understand what ejaculation means, what semen is and where it comes from?"

"Yeah...I guess..."

"Good. Now I want to explain some more about how a girl has an orgasm. Would you like for me to give you another orgasm, Tina?"

"Yeah. I'd love that. It was neat."

"Okay...lay out flat and I'll explain what I'm doing. Look at my face while I do it. I want to see your pretty face when you cum again."


"Yeah...that's another word for orgasm. It's easier to say. When a person has an orgasm they are cumming. I'm going to make you cum by rubbing you between your legs. Near the top of your cunny you have a little part that sticks up called your clit. It is real sensitive to touch. Spread your legs some more...That's good. Now, I'm going to rub your clit now...Feel it..."

He had positioned the little girl flat out on the bed. He was propped up on one arm under her head and was reaching the short distance to her pussy with his other hand. He had been applying gentle pressure to the whole of her pussy, but with these last words he let one finger concentrate on her little clit. Tina was looking into his face while he talked, but at this touch, she stiffened and arched her back a bit. Jim kept rubbing her clit. Tina started to close her eyes at the wonderful sensations starting to build up inside her.

"Tina, open your eyes and look at me. Keep looking at me. I want to see your eyes when you cum. Do you want to cum, honey?"

"Yes, please."

"Say it sweetheart. Say 'Please make me cum.'"

"Please make me cum..."

Jim rubbed harder, having an instant effect on the little girl. Her hairless pussy was getting wet under his fingers again. "Keep saying it, Tina...Come on...Please make me cum...Come on..."

"Please make me cum...Please make me cum...Please...ugh...make me cum...uhhhhh uuhhh Pluuu...Please...make me...cum..."

Jim Phillips was so turned on he could hardly stand it. His hand was jerking off one of the prettiest hairless cunts he had seen in a while. This little 11-year-old was gazing into his face, begging him to make her cum. She was so turned on that it was getting hard for her to keep begging.

"Pl uhhh...Please...make me...cum...uhhhh uhhhhh Please... Please... make... uhhhhhh... make me... cu...cum... uhhh uh... Please... make uhhhhhh uhhhhh ME UHHH UHHHHHHHH CUMMMMMMMMMMM AAAAAAAAAHHHHH AAAAHHHH AAAAHHHH AAAAHHHH UUUUUHHHH UUUUUUHHHHHH..."

Tina's eyes went round. She was looking into Mr. Phillips' face, but she wasn't seeing anything. Phillips watched her cum. Her back arched until just her head and the balls of her feet touched the bed. By then her pleadings for release had turned into rhythmic grunts. Her back hit the bed again, and she spasmed in tune with the pulsing of the tiny pussy Jim held easily cupped in his hand. She was as wet as if she had just stepped out of a bath, and Jim couldn't wait for the moment when he would shove his rock-hard pecker into that tiny pre-teen hole.

He let her finish her spasms and then relax. Her eyes closed and her head fell to one side, her gold blonde hair making a pillow on his arm.

Finally she looked up at him, "That felt fantastic. Will you do it to me again?"

"Sure, Tina, but you have to be fair right? It's not fair for you to have all the fun while I'm still sitting here with clothes on. That's not right is it?"

"I guess not...Are you gonna take off your underwear?"

"No, Tina. You are. Come on; sit up on the edge of the bed again. If you want to be fair you have to let me be naked too. So come on and help me get naked."

He sprung to and off of the edge of the bed, dragging Tina into a sitting position on the edge of the bed. Then he stood up to face her, just as the man had faced little Debbie in the film Tina had just seen. The bulge Jim's underwear was only inches from her face. She didn't know what to do, so she just sat there, staring. Finally she looked up at the man who was towering over her. He reached down with both hands and took her head. He forced her to lean closer to his crotch. He forced her face into contact with the bulge in his underwear. The heat was tremendous and his wiener was real hard.

"Kiss me there, Tina. Kiss me before you take off my underwear...That's a good girl. You can feel it, can't you? All hard just for you." He was rubbing his crotch on her face, enjoying dominating this little prepubescent girl. "Okay, Tina...You want to see it, right? Tell me you want to see it."

"I want to see it."

"What Tina, what do you want to see? Come on...tell me what you want to see."

"I want to see what your wiener looks like."

"Okay...but you have to learn the right word for it now." He was still holding her head and rubbing his crotch on her face as he talked, stopping only when he wanted her to answer. "It's called a penis, Tina. The word is penis. Do you want to see my penis? Tell me you really want to see my penis." He held her head so he could look into her eyes as she said it.

The naked 11-year-old girl looked up into the man's eyes and said, "I want to see you penis. I really do."

He couldn't wait any longer. "Good girl...Okay, reach up and pull my underwear down. Go on...Don't be scared, lots of little girls help their special man undress. I want to be naked with you."

Her trembling hands reached up and pulled on the elastic of his underwear. They slipped down his hips. He had to reach inside to get his large cock to slip past the waistband as the girl lowered his underwear.

"That's it...good girl. Take them all the way off. I want you to see me naked."

The underwear slipped off, and Tina was suddenly too distracted to lower them further. She let them slip out of her hand and they fell to Jim Phillips ankles. His penis was free and pointing right at Tina, just two inches from her face. The preteen was in shock. It was HUGE!! Bigger than any she had just seen in those films. It stuck out from his body at a right angle. She could see veins in the side. The little slit in the front was where the semen came out, she was guessing.

Jim Phillips lifted each leg in turn to step out of his underwear, and his large cock bobbled up and down in front of Little Tina. Then he reached down with one hand and rubbed it up and down a few times for the little girl. Some drops of fluid started to appear on the end.

"Okay, Tina. This is what a man's cock looks like when the man is really turned on. And these," he said lifting his cock up to his belly, "are my testicles. There are two of them here and that is where the semen is made."

He reached down to her lap and grabbed her hand. "Go ahead and touch them, just cup your hand around them. That's good...That feels nice," he said as he held her tiny hand to his balls.

He held her hand against his balls, rubbing them back and forth. To Tina they felt huge and soft and...strange. She was looking at where her hand was touching his nuts when he pulled his cock back down to, almost touching, her face; he moved her hand onto it.

"Now touch my penis, Tina. Try to put your hand around it. That's good. Now you're touching me, like I touched you. It feels good when you touch me. You're such a pretty little girl, you should learn more about sex, so you can grow up real pretty...yeah...that's right. Put your hand around it and hold it. Look at it real close. You're gonna get to know it real good...That's right..."

Jim Phillips was just talking to cover any hesitation on the part of this preteen girl. He had put her hand around his cock and held it there with his own, slowly using her tiny fist to jerk himself off in her face. He talked even though he knew she wasn't hearing any of the words. She was transfixed by the sight of his erection in her face.

Tina could not believe the size of Mr. Phillips' penis. He had put her hand around it and her fingertips did not reach her thumb. It was rock hard underneath, but soft and smooth on the outside. He was pushing her hand up and down on it and the skin moved back and forth with it. She could feel it pulsing each time she stroked it.

More of the clear pre-cum fluid was coming out the end of it. She could smell it, and it wasn't unpleasant. This was amazing. Little Tina was starting to feel 'turned on' by the wickedness of this, and by the fact that this grown man thought that her little, hairless, flat-chested 11-year-old body was so pretty that he wanted to be naked with her. Suddenly, he swayed forward and his hard cock just bumped her face. Tina started to jerk back, but his hand was behind her head, and she couldn't back up. His cock backed up and was again inches away, but Tina was remembering little Debbie in the video.

"Are you gonna...Are you gonna put it in my mouth?" she asked looking fearfully up at the man.

"Do you want me to put my penis in your mouth? I'd really like to feel your mouth on my penis, and I'd really like to cum in your mouth. I'm so turned on by looking at your little naked body; I think I would cum real fast. Is that what you want?"

"I don't know. I...I'm scared."

"No, honey...don't be scared. You saw all those other little girls doing it. They didn't look scared, did they? Remember the little 7-year-old licking that man's testicles? She was smiling afterward, remember? So don't be're just nervous because it's your first time, and you don't know what to do. I won't put it in your mouth now if you don't want me to. But I will want you to do it a little later, is that okay?"

"Yeah...Okay...What do I do now?"

Jim could hardly believe it. Little Tina was so glad that he wasn't going to ram his cock into her mouth that she was actually asking what to do.

"Why don't you use your hands to give me an orgasm like I did to you? Just take both your hands and put them on my cock...that's start moving them up and down my cock...that's good...go ahead and squeeze tighter, Tina...Yeah...that's good. Just keep doing that and I'll ejaculate on your chest...that will help your breast grow someday...ohhhh, god...Looking at a pretty little girl like you really has me turned on...I'm going to cum real fast..."

Tina had both hands on his penis now. He showed her how to stroke his hard cock. It wasn't too difficult, but his cock was so big in her hands. After she got the rhythm of it down, he put one hand on her shoulder and the other caressed her head and hair. Tina kept pulling on his cock, watching the fluid that kept coming out of it, wondering what it would be like to see him shoot his semen on her like the men did to all those other girls in the video she had seen.

She didn't have long to wait. Jim Phillips was totally turned on by this innocent little preteen-wonder. She was watching his cock, concentrating on it while her tiny hands jerked it up and down, urging his seed to come out and cover her prepubescent body. He held her shoulder to keep her from backing off, but she didn't seem to want to. Her fine blonde hair felt nice to touch, and he had to restrain himself from slamming his rigid pecker into her mouth and making her eat his cock. His orgasm was building and he continued to urge the little girl on.

"Good...Girl...Tina...I'm going to cum, Tina...I'm going to cum on you...on your pretty chest...yeah...Stroke me, Tina...Faster...gooood. Uh...Faster, honey...That's it...That's it...Get ready, honey...I'M GONNA CUM ON YOU...Uhhh HERE IT COMES...WATCH IT...WATCH IT... CUUUUUMMMMMMMMMMMMMM!!!!!!"

Tina felt his huge cock get even larger!! She felt one hand clamp down on her shoulder while the other grabbed her hair. She couldn't move, but then...she didn't really want to. His cock started to buck in her small hands. Once. Twice. And suddenly the semen shot from its head onto her lips and chin. It burned where it landed and splattered down her body.

Another shot burst forth as strong as the first, and again, Tina got hit in the chin with a load of cum. She kept stroking the man's bucking erection, as it sprayed cum all over her 11-year-old body.

His next shot was not as strong, and it landed on her neck where it rolled down her flat chest. More semen was shooting out of his body and onto hers. His body spasmed, and his hands twitched. He pulled her closer until his hard cock was against her neck pointing up at her chin. His hot semen spurted onto her neck and chin. The young girl was getting soaked in this man's cum.

Finally, his orgasm started to subside. His cum was rolling down her body, over her two little pre-breasts, and down her flat belly, where it seeped into her tiny hairless slit. He reached down and took her hands off his cock and made the youngster lay back on the bed. He sat down next to her and started to rub his cum all over her body. He rubbed it all over her chest and belly, until her body glistened with it. He rubbed it into her tiny cunt until he'd oiled her slit, all the way to her even tinier asshole.

Finally, he reached up and rubbed the cum on her chin up to both her cheeks and across her lips.

"That was fantastic, Tina...God, it felt great. You got covered in my semen and you look great...Here," he said, reaching down to squeeze a couple of drops of cum from his cock head, "taste it sweetheart Go on...Open your mouth and taste it."

And Tina did. She parted her lips and he slipped his cum covered finger into her mouth. She sucked his finger clean and rolled the semen around on her tongue. It didn't taste bad; in fact, the excitement of what she had just experienced made it taste special. His fingers were in front of her mouth again, and this time she accepted it without his having to ask.

The pre-teen girl was glistening with the man's cum. Her naked little body shone in the light over the bed. Her hairless mound glinted with his jism.

Jim Phillips was in heaven as he fed the little girl his spunk; scooping it off her pre-pubescent body. He never even lost his erection, and he knew that he would be ready again to take her in just a few minutes. This time he was going to blow his wad in her hot little mouth, whether she wanted to or not. He reached to the bedside table for a towel and started to wipe her body down before his jism had a chance to get to sticky.

"Did you like that?" he asked as he wiped his cum off her body. "Did you like how that made you feel? I sure did."

"Your penis is so large and there was so much...It was neat. Did it feel as good as my orgasm? It was hot too!! It got on my mouth! Did I do okay? Did I do it right?" Tina was full of questions all of a sudden. All the hesitation was gone now. She had done it and she wanted to know more. "Will it really help my breasts grow? I want to have big breasts so I can be a model."

"Whoa...Hold on there..." he said as he finished cleaning the cum from her hairless pussy and dropped the towel on the floor. "One question at a time..." he chuckled as he laid out on the bed and cuddled next to the little girl, his still hard cock resting on her slender thigh. "That felt great, Tina. You did really good for your first time. There are some things you could do to make it better, but I'll teach you those later. For now you did really great. And yes, my cum will make you pretty; it will help your breasts grow; get your hair growing down here," he said placing his hand on her tender moist pussy, "and make your figure start to develop. But you're going to need more that just one load, and you'll have to take it in your mouth too."

"Does that mean you're gonna stick your penis in my mouth? I mean...your semen didn't taste bad or anything, in fact, it's kinda neat, but...well your penis is too big to go in my mouth, isn't it?"

"No, Tina. Your mouth will stretch to hold my cock, and if I push hard enough, even your throat will stretch so that maybe I can get my whole penis into your mouth. You'd be surprised. I mean, I know that my cock is a bit larger than average, and with you being 11 years old, your body is quite small, but I think if you and I really try, I'll be able to fit my penis into all your holes. But first, let me ask you a question. How do you like your sex lessons so far?"

Tina thought for a moment. "At first I was scared because I didn't know you were going to be so nice. I mean, my father would beat me if he found out about me and David, but you've been real nice. And I really like it when you make me orgasm...uhh...cum. I really like that part. I guess I was scared when you took off your clothes too, but I made you have an orgasm too, and that was neat."

"Would you like me to make you cum again, Tina?"

"Oh YEAH!!" she said, spreading her legs for him to have easy access to her tiny, but willing pussy. "I'd love that."

"Okay, sweetheart, but we're gonna do this differently. I'm going to show you how a man can use his mouth on a girl. Come on..." he said, moving up the bed. "Get up here and straddle my chest, facing me. No, you have to put your cunny closer to my face - - That's good."

Tina wanted another orgasm like an addict needs her next fix. She would do anything for it. When Mr. Phillips lay down on the bed and pulled her arm for her to climb on top of him, she didn't understand what he wanted. She climbed onto his chest, but he had to get his arms under her legs, so she scooted forward a little. Her little bald pussy was wide open next to his chin. She was a little embarrassed by that, but didn't have time to protest. The next thing she knew, he had taken one of her small round ass checks in each of his large hands and pulled her forward onto his mouth. His tongue began caressing her slit, paying close attention to her clit.

Tina instantly felt the excitement begin to build. 'God this is great!' she thought to herself, all feelings of embarrassment and fear forgotten. The man's tongue felt large on her little pussy, and his breath was hot on her hairless mound. She loved the way it felt, even when he probed into her virgin cunt, pushing his tongue deep into her.

Jim Phillips didn't wait for the girl to get comfortable on his chest. Grabbing her tiny ass and pulling her onto his face, he began licking her pussy in earnest as soon as his lips touched hers. He held onto her butt, it felt so small and tender in his hands, and used his hold to pull her harder onto his mouth.

Her little slit opened for him, and his nose was pressed up against her smooth, hairless mound. Her body felt so smooth and warm. Her cunt started to get wet, and her taste was pure virgin girl. He looked up into the child's face and saw her looking down at him, her eyes half closed, already starting to feel the building sensations his tongue was giving her.

Jesus, this was one hot little bitch, he thought to himself. One minute of cunt lapping and she's getting ready to pop. This turned Jim on even more, and he pulled the girl's body harder onto his face. He pushed hard with his tongue into her tiny pussy, loving the feel of her tight inner lips gripping his oral digit. He kneaded her tender ass with both hands, letting one slide down so that he could probe her asshole with his fingers.

"Ohhhhhh...That feels good... Mr. Phillips... uhhhhhhhhmmmmmm… uhhhhhmmmmmm..."

She was starting her rhythmic moaning, letting the man under her know he was getting her off. Her hips started to buck and she pressed her weight down on the grown man's face even harder, trying to get the most out of these sensations. Jim let his hand wander further into her crack.

His fingers found the opening of her pussy and started to probe while he concentrated his tongue action on her swelling clit. He pushed his finger into her small opening, up to the first knuckle.

Tina didn't seem to notice or mind. Her hips were fucking this grown up man's face now. She had let her body fall forward so that her clit was centered on his mouth and her cunt even more open to his probing. She was grunting with each thrust of her hips; an animal sound that turned the man on all the more.

'This little cunt is so hot!!! I'm going to love fucking her!!!' he was thinking as he let his finger probe deeper into the little girl's cunt hole. The youngster was so wet that his finger slid in easily to the second knuckle where it hit the barrier of her cherry. Jim was so turned on he almost plunged his finger in the rest of the way, just so he could feel her tight little cunt sucking on his finger, but he held off, wanting to save that sensation for his cock, which now stood straight up from his crotch.

"Uh uh uh... uh... uh... uh... Uhh... Uhh... Uhh... Uhh... UHH... UHH... UHH... UHHHH... UHHHHHHHH... UHHHHHHHHHHHH...AAAAIIIIIIIIIEEEEEYYY..."

The little pre-teen was bucking wildly on the grown man's face. Her pussy was pulsing on the man's mouth, sending small floods of her cunt juice into his mouth. The man was shaking his head on her bald slit, beating her clit with his tongue as his fingers probed her virgin pussy and ass. Both of them were in heaven. Tina was in convulsions that she hoped would never end. Jim Phillips wanted to taste this little girl forever; the sensation of her losing all control because of his tongue was one of the biggest turn-ons he could imagine.

Tina kept fucking Jim's face until her orgasm finally died. By then she was too exhausted to move. She was on her hands and knees, her cunt resting on Jim Phillips' mouth; her flat belly just above his face. Jim could look down and see her hairless mound, and look up to see her flushed face hanging down, eyes closed above her flat chest. He took his fingers out of her cunt and stopped massaging her little brown butt-hole. Tina gave a small jerk when his finger popped free of her tight pussy, but she was too exhausted to react further.

Jim took his hands off her ass and pussy and reached up to her waist. He pulled the spent little girl into a kneeling position, her pussy on his chest and then guided her to fall to his side on the bed. Tina's eyes barely opened during all this.

"Tina...Tina...That was good wasn't it?"

"Uh huh," came her whispered reply.

"That was better than just my fingers, wasn't it Tina?"

Again, a whispered, "Uh huh."

"Now you understand why a man's mouth feels so much better than his hands. And you can guess that a girl's mouth feels just that much better on a man's cock than a girl's hand...Right?"

"Uh huh."

Chapter Four

"Tina, I'm really turned on. Watching you cum for me like that and feeling your cunny on my mouth has got me really turned on. Feel," he said taking her limp hand and putting it on his erection. Her hand went around it and held on, moving slightly up and down.

"Uh huh."

"I want your mouth, Tina. I want to feel your mouth on my cock. I want to fuck you in the mouth, sweetheart. Okay?" He didn't wait for her to answer, but started to get up.

"I uh...guess so..." Tina said.

She opened her eyes and watched the man lift his leg and straddle her small flat chest, pinning one arm down against her side. His balls hung down between her small pre-breasts and his cock pointed over her head. He leaned forward, his penis brushing her cheek, and grabbed a pillow from the head of the bed. His cock felt hot against her cheek, and it pulsed a few times before he leaned his weight back. He put a hand behind her head and propped it up with the pillow so that his prick was pointing straight at her mouth. He reached down and started to stroke his huge penis just three inches in front of her innocent face.

"Tina. Tell me you want me to do it, please. Tell me that you really want to make me feel as good as I made you feel. Tell me you want to suck my cock."

The 11-year-old girl looked up at Jim Phillips and in a still dreamy voice said, "I do want you to feel good...I do want to suck your cock...but...I don't know how."

"Don't worry sweetheart, this time I think I just want to fuck your mouth. Later you can learn new things, OKAY?"


"Take it in your hand, hon. Take it and show me you really want to suck me. Put it in your mouth for me, precious."

Tina reached up with one hand and took the man's huge cock. Clear pre-cum fluid dripped off the end and onto her chin. She looked up into his eyes one more time, and then pulled his cock forward to her mouth. She stopped as her lips touched the end of his cock.

'God, it's huge,' she thought to herself. It felt hot against her slightly parted lips.

"Go on precious; show me you really want me. Lick the end of it, Tina. Lick my cock. Give it a taste. You'll see...You can do it." Her breath on his cock was making it twitch in her hand and on her lips. His pre-cum dripped onto her precious lips where it slid into her mouth.

The little girl was mesmerized by this huge cock pulsing against her lips.

Her tongue slipped out almost on its own and touched the end of his penis. 'Okay...that wasn't so bad.' She did it again; this time making an effort to lick the clear fluid that was dribbling from the end of his cock onto her lips. It didn't taste much like anything, but the act of doing it turned Tina on. She could feel her pussy getting wet in response to this new sex act. She licked the man's cock again, this time running her tongue all the way out and down the underside of the head. It jerked strongly in her hand, and she knew she was turning him on.

"Do it, Tina. I want you to put my cock in your mouth now. Open your mouth wide and put my cock in now, sweetheart. God, your face is so beautiful licking my cock. I want to see you suck me, baby...Go on...put it in that hot little mouth of yours and suck me off, hon"

This was the moment of truth. Tina opened her mouth wide and gently pulled the man's hard penis into her mouth. The head went halfway in before she had to open her mouth even wider. As his enormous dick moved into her mouth it jerked rapidly, pressing against the roof off her mouth with each spasm.

"Ohhh God, baby...That's it...Suck me now...Suck me..."

Tina had stopped pulling on his prick, but Jim Phillips had not stopped entering her. His hips continued forward after the youngster stopped pulling him into her mouth. His cock filled her 11-year-old mouth, the spongy head making its way to the back of her mouth. Tina's hand was still on his cock, but it hung there limp. Her lips were stretched around the shaft of this huge pecker. She could feel the veins on his cock, pounding with blood as her little mouth stimulated him.

She gave an experimental suck on the mass that filled her mouth, and his penis responded with a large jerk. She heard him moan, and she looked up to see his face. He was looking down at her, his eyes wide.

"That's right baby...Try to suck it...Ohhh, God, your mouth is hot...Go on, baby...Use that pretty mouth of yours." His hand reached for the back of her head.

Jim Phillips was in heaven. He looked down and saw his huge wang disappearing into the little pre-teenager's face, her eyes looking up at him, waiting for instructions. His cock was jerking in her mouth so hard that her head bounced with each twitch. Experimentally he gave a small shove with his hips, and more of his cock disappeared into her mouth. She tried to suck, but her mouth was spread so wide that she couldn't manage it very well. No matter. Her little virgin mouth was so small and tight that Jim knew that just by fucking her face he would soon be dumping his load down her throat. He started to fuck her face in earnest, one hand cupping the back of her head making sure she had nowhere to go to get away from his oncoming penis.

Jim Phillips grabbed the back of Tina's head and pulled her deeper onto his cock. She didn't think any more would fit, but Mr. Phillips kept pushing it harder and harder into her mouth. She was having trouble breathing and soon realized that she would have to breathe on his out stroke in rhythm with his thrusts. He was thrusting harder and harder. The head was hitting the back of her mouth and little Tina started to gag. 'God, I can't take this...It's too big!!!' The giant cock was pushing hard on the 11-year-old girl's throat. She was beginning to panic, but there was nothing she could do. Much of the man's weight was resting on her chest. She couldn't move her head back because he held it in a firm grip. She couldn't cry out because her mouth was totally stuffed with his enormous cock. She tried to make some noise, but the only sound that escaped were rhythmic moans in time with his hard thrusts.

"Good girl...Good girl...Oh, god you look beautiful with your uh...mouth on my cock!! Uh...Come on, honey...Relax...You can take more...Uh...Uh...More, baby..." He was pulling on her head hard now, and about half of his rigid erection was buried into the pre-teen's face. He held back his load as best he could. Jim wanted to feel her throat around his cock, and then he'd give her a load of jism she'd never forget. "Baby...uh...I'm gonna shove it in real...uh...hard now...You gotta relax your throat...uh...just let it in...Baby...uh Pretty baby...Here goes...UHHH" And he rammed his hips forward.

Little Tina heard his warning, and panicked even more. Her little mouth was being raped and there was nothing she could do. She felt his hand tighten in her hair and felt his huge thighs on either side of her flat chest flex to ram his cock into her face. The head of his cock hit her throat, but did not ease off any pressure. Instead Mr. Phillips pushed harder with his hand on the back of her head.

Tina flipped out. 'It's gonna KILL ME...Please GOD!!!'

Slowly his cock pushed into her virgin throat. She felt more of his pecker slipping past her lips, over her tongue, and into her throat. 'OH GOD!!! I DID IT. IT WENT IN!! I DON'T BELIEVE IT!!' she thought to herself.

In her panic she had somehow opened her throat to accept the man's giant organ. And down it went. Tina's throat bulged out as Mr. Phillips shoved his cock all the way into the small girl's face. The next thing she knew his soft testicles were pushed onto her chin; one on either side, and his rough pubic hair was pressed onto her nose. He held her there for just a second, and then slowly eased his cock back out of her throat until just the head was in her mouth.

"OOHHHHHH GOOOOOOOWWWDDDDDDD...OHHH BABY!!!OH GOD...You're the best...OH JESUS...You're tight there, baby. You DID IT!! You DID IT, sweetheart. You took my WHOLE COCK...Oh, god what an angel you are!!! Do you feel okay? Oh...Sweet Jesus that felt good. Oh, honey, you've got the best mouth I've ever felt!!!"

Phillips was praising the little girl left and right, knowing he had scared her by forcing his tremendous penis into her virgin throat. He'd felt her panic. He'd felt her small struggles. But he'd rammed it to her anyway, and loved it. Now he was ready to shoot her mouth to overflowing with his cream, and he wanted, yet again, for this little pre-pubescent child to ASK FOR IT!!!

"Tina, you're fantastic!! Are you okay?" He pulled his hips back slightly so she could answer.

His cock pulled back out of her mouth, and its weight resting on her lower lip. Tina took some deep breaths before trying to answer, the air feeling like a cool drink in the desert. She had heard his praise, his down-right adulation, and it turned her head completely. 'No one has ever said anything like that to me,' she thought. 'He really loved it. I did it really great!! It's like I was a grown up and he's my lover, like in a romantic book!!' She was thinking that just to hear such praise from anyone she would do just about anything, when he tenderly touched her cheek and she looked up at him.

"Are you okay, sweetheart?"

"Uh...Yeah, I guess."

"You did that really well and your mouth feels fantastic! I know it's hard to do, honey. Do you think you could try again? I'm really turned on, and I'm ready to have an orgasm. Do you want me to have an orgasm in your mouth, honey? Tell me you want a hot load of semen in your fantastic little mouth, baby. Go on, tell me you want my penis in your mouth pumping you full of hot cum..."

Tina saw the lust in his eyes. Part of her knew that it didn't really matter what she said, she was going to get a mouthful of cream. But another part, the part that listened to the flattery, the part that needed to be loved, wanted to please Mr. Phillips. That part started talking.

"Oh, yes...I want your penis in my mouth. I want to make you cum like you made me cum. I really want to feel you orgasm in my mouth."

That did it. The cock that had been resting on her chin surged back into her mouth. The head spreading her lips, almost before the last word was out. It rammed back to her glottis, stretching her jaws.

Jim Phillips began fucking this 11-year-old mouth in earnest. He was blind to anything but drowning her in his hot white seed. It was only going to take a few seconds; he was totally turned on by hearing this little naked schoolgirl ask for his hot cock in her tight mouth. Only a few more pumps...

'Holy cow,' thought Tina. Mr. Phillips had rammed her so hard that he'd almost lost a grip on her head, but not for long. He pulled her head rapidly on and off his cock. Her battered little mouth was filled with hot, jerking meat. He pushed so hard that he re-entered her tight throat. She felt the spongy head go down before she even knew what happened.


The huge penis in her mouth expanded even more. It spasmed hard. Once. Twice. And suddenly Tina was drowning in cum. It shot from his cock to her throat, where it gagged her. Her gagging just tightened her throat on his pulsing prick. The next shot filled the remaining room in her little mouth with hot sperm. She tried to swallow the semen that was in her throat before she dealt with the second blast in her mouth, but then the third shot came as powerfully as the first two. With nowhere to go, jism exploded out the sides of her mouth and down both cheeks.

His cock bucked again, and more sperm flooded her mouth. 'God, I have to swallow this as fast as I can,' she thought.

And she swallowed. As fast as she could swallow, more spunk shot into her mouth. It was hot and thick. Hotter than the last of his semen that she had tasted because it was fresh from his cock rather than scooped off her flat-chest. It tasted strange, but not bad, though she didn't have a lot of time for tasting.

Little 11-year-old Tina, who up to that morning had never even seen a boy's 'thing' now had to drink cum as fast as she could from the erect penis of a 42-year-old man, if she didn't want to have it running down her face. And drink she did.

Finally, Mr. Phillips' cock stopped shooting cum into her face, though it didn't stop jerking. She wiggled her tongue experimentally, and got it to jerk harder and she heard a long groan from the man on top of her. His hand had come off the back of her head and landed hard on the bed above her head, supporting the spent man.

His cock began to feel smaller in her mouth, but then Mr. Phillips wasn't moving. It still throbbed between her lips, but it didn't seem as hard and large as it was before.

Tina couldn't understand it, and she didn't know what to do. Mr. Phillips was just sitting on her chest, not moving, with his cock slowly retracting from her mouth. Tina was confused. 'Did I do something wrong? What's wrong with his penis?' she wondered to herself. She was starting to think that she'd done something wrong to cause Mr. Phillips to go so quiet and still, and for his penis to seem to be retracting itself from her mouth. Finally, she relaxed her lips and his spent cock fell from her mouth onto her chest.

"Are you okay, Mr. Phillips? Did I do something wrong?" she asked in a small voice.

He paused to catch his breathe before answering. "No, Tina. That was fantastic. You did great."

"What's wrong with your wiener...uh I mean penis?" She tried to look down her cum covered cheeks to see the limp cock resting on her chest. "It's not hard anymore."

"I know...Hold on...I gotta lie down." He swung his leg over the small pre-teen and lay down next to her. He put an arm under her and cuddled her close.

"Wheeeew...God that was good." he said when he got settled. "First, are you okay? I was pushing pretty hard and you drank a lot of cum...How's your mouth?" he asked reaching up and massaging her jaws. "Is your mouth sore? Did you like me cumming in your mouth?"

"I'm okay. Yeah...My jaws hurt. You cock is...err was so big. You really scared me when you pushed it all the way in."

"I'm sorry, sweetheart, but you did it! You managed to take my whole cock in your mouth!! You were great."

"Really? Did it really feel good?"

"You can't begin to imagine, baby. How did you like your first blow job?"

"Blow job? What's that?"

"That's one word for a girl using her mouth to make her man cum. What did you think of me cumming in your mouth?"

"God, there was a lot of it. At first, I didn't know what to do, and I got some in the back of my mouth, so I had to swallow. Then I just tried to swallow it all. That's okay isn't it? I mean, I won't have a baby or anything, will I?"

"No, Tina. That's not how babies are made. I'll explain that later. You gotta trust me though. I won't get you pregnant. It's good that you swallowed my cum, it'll help you grow up pretty. How'd you like that taste? Was it okay?"

"It's kinda sour, but it's not too bad. There was just so much, I couldn't keep it all in," she said, reaching up to touch her cheek, still wet with his semen. "I think I could do it again, if you really wanted me to. Did I really make you feel as good as when I had an orgasm?"

"You sure did, honey."

"But what happened to your pe...uh cock? It was all big, but now..." she let the sentence taper off, looking down at where his limp dick resting on her smooth thigh.

"A man's cock isn't hard all the time, Tina. That's one of the things that your friends probably learned in school. It only gets hard when the man is turned on or sexually attracted to something. It could be nude pictures, or someone touching his body in certain ways, or even pretty little girls who want to learn about sex. You really turned me on, honey. God, your little body is great. want to look at my cock now that it's not so hard?"


"Well, sit up and take a good look, sweetheart," he said, flopping down on his back next to her.

The naked pre-teen got up on her knees next to the man. She scooted down his body until she could look down on where his now limp cock rested on his balls. She reached out and touched it with a finger tip.

"You can handle it, if you want. It won't bite."

She did. She put her small hand around it and lifted it off his testicles. Some small bit of cum still clung to the end and she touched this with her other finger. The little girl turned his cock in every direction, noting the veins that ran down the side; the way the head looked like a long bulb on the end of a stalk; how his testicles were attached to the bottom; how his testicles seemed to move on their own inside the sack as she moved his cock this way and that.

"Can I touch your testicles too?"

"Sure honey. You can call them balls if you want, that's the slang. Go ahead and feel what they are like, but gently."

She reached out with her other hand and cupped his balls in it. There were two of them, and they seemed to move around in her hand. They sure felt like balls, and they were really warm.

Jim Phillips couldn't ask for a nicer ending to this session with Tina West; with the little pre-teen kneeling over his body, fondling his cock and balls with both hands while he relaxed from fucking her virgin mouth. His hand rested on her smooth round buttocks and he let his fingers gently probe her nether reaches. Her initial fear of being naked with a grown man was completely gone. He'd given her a taste of days to come, and she seemed to want more.

Now it was time to seal the deal.

"So, Tina, what do you think of your sex lessons so far? Did you like learning about orgasms?"

She looked up from her examination of his limp organ, "Yeah, I loved it."

"You know there's a lot more I can teach you if you want to learn. You have to go home pretty soon, but would you like to come back and learn more about sex?"

"I guess so. What sorta things are there?"

"Oh gosh, Tina, there's all sorts of things to learn. We've just barely scratched the surface. I'll teach you everything about sex, if you really want to learn. I'll teach you stuff they NEVER teach in school. I'll tell you how babies are made, how your body develops, and all about fucking. I'll teach you about anal sex, lesbian sex, bondage, and group sex, and all sorts of stuff. But you've got to tell me you really want to come back for my lessons. And of course, you'll be having a lot of orgasms, if you come back. I can even show you how to masturbate yourself so you can have your own orgasms any time you want. You'd like that wouldn't you, honey?"

"Oh YEAH," she said.

The little girl didn't understand most of what Mr. Phillips had told her. Terms like 'anal sex,' and 'lesbian sex' had no meaning for her. She didn't know what 'bondage' meant, and couldn't picture what 'group sex' was, though the words were both meaningful to her. Having more orgasms, and learning how to make them happen herself sounded like a great idea, though.

"I'd love to come back and learn all that stuff. I'd love to learn how to master..."


"Yeah...Masturbate, so I could have an orgasm. Will you show me that, please?"

"Sure, sweetheart. That and a whole lot more, but for right now, we better get you cleaned up. It's almost dinner time and you should be heading home."

He got up off the bed, and left the room, coming back a minute later with a towel and a damp dish cloth. Tina liked watching him walk around with no clothes on. His penis hung down between his legs and moved back and forth as he walked. She thought it was neat.

He sat with her on the bed and gently cleaned the drying cum off her face. Some of it had gotten in her hair and he cleaned this as best he could, knowing that it would not be noticeable once her hair dried. He wiped off her small body with the warm damp towel, paying careful attention to her small hairless pussy, which had some dried cum on the puffy clam-like outer lips. He had her lay back and spread her legs while he made sure she was clean all the way to her tiny anus.

Tina tingled with delight. No one had ever paid her this kind of gentle loving attention in her whole life. Mr. Phillips gently wiped her whole body down, and her small pussy responded to his touch. Tina was ready for him to give her yet another orgasm. She wanted him to massage her in her cunny until the blind spasms once again rocked her little body. She was disappointed when he dried her off and got up to put the towel and wash cloth away.

Jim Phillips delighted in cleaning her small body. She willingly parted her legs to give him access to her cunt. He massaged her there for a minute to give her a taste of possible future delights, but made sure to leave her hanging so she would want more. After throwing the towels in the laundry, he helped the little girl get dressed in her white panties, shorts and blouse. While she was putting her socks and shoes on, he pulled on his pants and shirt.

"Okay, Tina. Now tomorrow is a school day. You can come over after school and we can have some more fun, and some more lessons, but one thing, sweetheart: You can't tell anyone about what we're doing here, all right honey? If you did, we'd both be in plenty of trouble. And don't forget about David. He'd be in the fix with both of us. And your parents wouldn't be to happy, now would they?"

"I won't tell anyone. I promise. I'd be in big trouble if my Dad found out about David and me. He'd probably beat me up."

"I don't want that to happen, sweetheart. So I won't tell anyone about any of this. I promise."

"I promise not to tell too."

"And you'll come back after school tomorrow. I know you have time after school because I've seen you playing after school in the park, and don't both your parents work?"

"Yeah. They don't get home till 6:00 most nights. There's a sitter that takes care of us, but most of the time she doesn't care what we do, so long as we don't make a mess."

"Good! Then you and I can have some more fun tomorrow. I'll see you then, okay?"

"Okay. Bye."

"Bye, Tina." he said as he let her out the back door. To anyone watching it would just appear as if Tina was cutting through Jim Phillips' yard. No one would guess that the little girl was just coming from his house after a wild sex session with this grown man.

Jim Phillips watched little Tina West skip out of sight toward her home. Half an hour later, he made a phone call, and 10 minutes after that David Wallace, the boy he had "caught" Tina playing doctor with, was knocking on his front door.

"Come on in, David. Here you go, 50 bucks, just like I promised. Good job."

"It was easy, just like you said," the 14-year-old boy replied. "I just kept saying she was cute and that we could be friends, but I wanted to see just how pretty she was, and she went along with it. How did you know she'd do it?"

"I've been watching that family for a while. Her Dad's a loud mouth, abusive drunk, and her mother's just given up. Give those kids a few kind words and they'll do anything for you. Believe me. I've seen it a hundred times before."

"Okay...err Do I still get the other know..."

"Sure, Dave. You'll get to fuck her. I'll make sure of that. Maybe both of her sisters too. You just be patient and let me arrange everything. You'll be hearing from me."

"Okay, great. I guess I'll be seeing you."

"Okay, Dave. And remember pal. Not a word of this to anyone. After all, I still got those pictures, and you wouldn't want all your macho friends to see them, would you?"

"," he answered in a small voice. The carrot and the stick. It had been a few months, but Jim Phillips still had the stick. How he'd let himself get into this situation, he'd never be able to figure out. But still...he had 50 bucks in his pocket and the promise of some sex with a near virgin. Dave Wallace didn't figure it was too bad.

"Good. I'll be in touch when things are all set up, or if I need another favor in the meantime. Bye." and he closed the door. 'Not bad,' Jim Phillips thought to himself. This is going to work out pretty good. 'Better get up there and start editing that tape. Gonna need some of that tomorrow when little Tina shows up.' And with that thought, he locked the door and returned to his special video room to see how today's pictures had turned out, and to edit little Tina into his private collection of kiddie porn. 'Not bad.' he said to himself.

Chapter Five

Tina's next day at school passed like a dream. She couldn't pay any attention to what was going on in class because she kept thinking about going to Mr. Phillips' house at the end of the day and having more orgasms.

She looked around at the other girls in her 6th grade class at Our Lady of Grace Elementary to compare her looks with theirs. Mr. Phillips had said she was pretty, but Tina had never really thought of herself that way. Jennifer Colton was the prettiest girl in her class, with her long blond hair that went all down her back. Of course, the nuns made her keep it in a pigtail, but anyone could see how nice it would look when untied. And Sally Simmons had the biggest breasts of any girl in the class, though they still didn't need more than a training bra.

Looking at the girls in her class and now comparing herself, Tina began to think that maybe she didn't look as bad as she had always thought. She'd certainly turned on Jim Phillips. She thought back to the day before. He'd really covered her in cream...semen...yeah...Now she knew the right words. He'd really cum a lot. And she'd taken all of his cock into her mouth. Right down her throat. She'd bet that neither Jennifer Colton, nor even Sally Simmons with her biggest breasts in the class, had ever done that. Maybe all these other girls had gone to that sex-ed class. Big deal. She had her own teacher, and she knew things that Jennifer and Sally didn't.

Such thoughts filled her whole day, until the final bell rang and the kids made their usual chaotic exit from O.L.G. They all had plans for after school, most of them consisting of various forms of play, but Tina West had plans that none of the others could guess, and it made her feel special. She didn't know what today's lessons would be, but as long as it involved Mr. Phillips rubbing her little pussy, then anything else would be okay. It really made her feel special to have this secret that the others would never know.

She grabbed her books and started on her usual walk home, cutting through old Mrs. Jenson's yard like she always did. Mrs. Jenson, who was in her garden, never minded the kids going through her yard. She waved, "Hi, Tina"

"Hi, Mrs. Jenson," she answered. 'Bet you can't guess where I'm going,' she thought to herself.

She skipped down the street and then cut through the Dickerson's property to get to the back yard of Mr. Phillips' house. She walked up to the back door. Now that the time she'd been thinking about had finally arrived, she was just a little hesitant. She knocked on his door. It opened a second later, and Jim Phillips beamed at little Tina.

"Well, hello, Tina! Nice to see you. Come to visit?"

"Uh huh."

"Okay, come on in," he said, double checking to see that none of the other children were in sight before letting her pass him, in her little school uniform. "So, sweetheart, you really did come back after all. I guess you really want some more special lessons, huh?"

"Uh huh. I kept thinking about it all day! I bet none of the other girls know the stuff I know; even if they did go to that dumb class."

"Well, Tina. Don't be so sure. There are lots of men out there who are willing to help young girls learn about sex. Hey, you saw some in the videos yesterday. Remember the scene with little Debbie sucking those guys off? And she was younger than you. So, don't be too sure about all the other girls in your class. Just like you can't tell anyone about your lessons, they can't tell anyone about theirs."

"You mean other girls in my class might be learning about sex too? I mean, with"

"Tina, I know for a fact that there are girls in your class who are. And I know the men doing the teaching. I know girls younger than you who are doing things you don't even know about yet."

"Wow...I didn't think of that."

"Maybe later I'll let you meet some of the other men I know who are into young girls. Maybe they could even bring their little friends with them, so you can meet some other girls who know the special secrets you're going to learn."

"That'd be neat. I never knew that men did this. The nuns at school always make out like sex is so bad, and that we have to wait till we're married before we even let a guy touch us."

"Well, the nuns in your school just reflect what society thinks of little girls, Tina. Problem is, society keeps right on treating you that way even after you're all grown up. They say there are things that women aren't supposed to do, and that men should be the bosses of everything. That's what the women's liberation movement is all about. Trying to make society stop telling women, and young girls, what they can and can't do, or can and can't be."

"Wow...I never thought of that."

"Yeah. But until the day comes when people are allowed to be really free, and I mean sexually free as well, we have to keep what we're doing a secret. Okay?"

"Okay. I can keep a secret, no problem."

"Okay, good girl. So, are you ready to learn something new today?"

"Yeah. What do you want me to do?"

"Well, honey, today we're going to explore your body some more. I want to explain your sex organs to you so you know all about them and how they can give you pleasure. First, I want to show you some video pictures that will help explain it all. That's the easiest thing, since you can't really look at your own cunny very well, except with mirrors. So let's go back up to our room and settle down to watch some pictures while I explain, okay?"

'Our room...' she thought, 'He called it OUR ROOM...God, he makes me feel really special.'

"Yeah...That would be great. I always wanted to look at myself, but I can't see it so good."

"Well, Tina, these pictures will explain everything. Believe me."

As he said this he put his arm around this little girl in her catholic school uniform and led her up the stairs. She looked great in her knee-length green plaid skirt, white blouse, white socks and saddle shoes. She was every child molester's dream. 'But she's mine to molest,' he thought as he led the 11-year-old girl to his special video room. After sitting her down on the edge of the bed, he put today's video on the player and switched on the set.

"Okay, Tina. Now I'm going to show you some pictures of women's vaginas...That's the correct word for cunny. I'll stop the picture now and then to explain what's going on, and if you see anything you don't understand, you let me know and I'll explain it, okay?"


"Good." He started up the video tape. The first segment was of a woman masturbating for the camera. She reached down and rubbed her pussy for a minute and then took both hands and spread the lips while the camera zoomed in to take a close-up of her juicy cunt. Jim Phillips stopped the picture. "Now this is a really good picture of a woman's vagina. Now you can see that a grown woman has hair on her vagina that you don't. Don't worry; someday it will grow just like that, only blond for you. Now the small bump that is sticking up at the top is the clitoris, or just clit. It's the part that is the most sensitive. Remember when I rubbed you yesterday and made you cum?"

"Uh huh."

"Well, that's the part I was rubbing. If you rub it yourself, that's called masturbation. You can rub your little clit yourself, and have an orgasm that way, though it's almost always better when someone else does it for you. Now if you look down a little lower, you see between her lips...there's a hole there. Now that is the part that a man uses during intercourse."

"What's that?"

"Well, intercourse is how men make babies inside of women. When the man gets turned on and his penis gets hard, like you saw yesterday, he can push it into that hole and shoot his semen in there. If the woman is ready for a baby, then she gets pregnant."

"You're kidding!! A man sticks his thing inside the woman's"

"That's right, honey. Another word for intercourse is fucking. When a man fucks a girl, he pushes his cock into her vagina. Then he can either shoot his semen in there, or pull it out and shoot it someplace else, like in her mouth."

"And if he shoots in the girl, she has a baby?"

"Not every time. You see, the semen from a man is only half of what is needed to make a baby. The woman must have an egg in her body, an egg that her body makes. When this meets the semen, then the woman can get pregnant."

"Would I get pregnant if you did that to me?"

"No, Tina. You're probably too young to get pregnant. Your body hasn't developed yet to the point of producing eggs. And if I were to fuck you, and cum inside you, you couldn't get pregnant because I had an operation that stops me from making any woman pregnant."


"Now, let's watch this pretty woman masturbate for us. Then you can try masturbating on your own."

He started the video again, and the woman massaged her pussy lips apart and then together, and then apart and together. The camera stayed in a tight close-up, and Tina stayed glued to the scene. She'd never seen a vagina really close up before; she'd always been told it was bad to be too curious about it. Now she paid real close attention because she was going to learn to master...master...she couldn't think of the word, but it meant being able to have an orgasm. That's what I really want to do, she thought.

On the screen, the woman played with herself for another minute before getting into really serious jerking off. Once she started, there was no doubt that she was enjoying what she was doing. Her moaning and the look of pleasure on her face were clues that Tina didn't miss. Her finger was working her clit quite hard, up and down, and up and down, then some circular jerks, and back to up and down. 'Is that all you gotta do?' thought Tina. 'I can do that easy. Just rub the clit...that's not hard,' she thought.

The woman on screen continued playing with herself, her other hand massaging her ample tits. Her motions became more frantic, and the speed of her finger on her clit increased. She was panting, like she was finding it hard to breathe.

"Oh...God...Oh...God...Oh...God...I'm gonna cummm..." she said. Her fingers were now a blur on her pussy. Her other hand was gripping the bedspread. "OH GODDDDD ... I'M CUMMMMMIIIINNNNNGGGG ... AAAAAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHH..."

Her body bucked in time with her pleasure.

Tina understood what the woman was feeling; she wanted to feel that way herself. Unconsciously her hand had wandered down to her crotch and she was beginning to massage herself there.

"AHHHH AHHHH AHHHH AHHHH AHHHH AHHH AHHH..." the woman on the screen continued. Finally though, she was spent, and she relaxed on the bed, moaning for the camera. The camera made a zoom into her face to capture the look of relaxed pleasure there.

Then Mr. Phillips froze the picture.

"Okay, Tina. That's how a girl can have an orgasm all by herself. All you have to do is rub your clit until it feels good. You'll have to experiment a little to see what is best for you, but it's really not too hard. Would you like to try it?"

"Yeah..." she said, her hand already putting pressure on her cunt. "I'd really like to learn how to do that!!"

"Okay, sweetheart, just pull down your panties and you can try it. Here, I'll help." And with that he pulled up the portion of her skirt she was sitting on and reached for the waistband of her panties.

Little Tina cooperated by lifting her slim butt off the bed while the grown up man worked her white cotton panties down her slender legs and over her socks and saddle shoes. Then he lifted up the front of her skirt to reveal her bald vagina, and reached in to touch her clit.

Tina jumped at the man's touch. His finger probed her hairless slit and found it already wet from watching the woman jerk off on screen.

"Lay back, sweetheart. Pull up your skirt and spread your legs. That's a good girl. Now give me your hand. Feel yourself honey," he said as he guided the child's hand to her naked cunt. He pressed her small fingers into her slender little clam, pressing on her lips until they parted and he could guide her own fingers into her juicy slit."

"It's all wet. Why's it all wet?"

"It means you're turned on, sweetheart." he replied, guiding her fingers up and down in her own vagina. "When a man gets turned on his cock gets all hard and ready to put inside the woman. When a woman gets turned on, her vagina gets wet to make it easier for a man to put his penis into her. You're really wet, honey. It means you want a cock inside you."

"It does?"

"You don't know it yet, honey, but that's exactly what it means. Now...Here's your clit...Yeah...right there...Now rub yourself there. I'm going to take my hand away and watch you masturbate...Go on...It's not dirty or anything; it just feels good...That's it...Go on, honey. Rub that clit...Ummm you look nice..."

He was encouraging her, though not much encouragement was needed.

As soon as his hand had guided her willing fingers to her own clit, she had felt the electric shock of sexual pleasure that she'd been hoping for all day. She didn't need any urging to start rubbing this great new part of her body. Instinct took over and little Tina was masturbating like an old pro in seconds. Her body stiffened with pleasure, and her eyes closed to enjoy the sensation.

Jim Phillips watched the 11-year-old enjoying her newfound skill. She looked precious, lying there in her school uniform, with its white blouse and skirt. The youngster's plaid skirt was hiked up around her waist; her feet were hanging off the end of the bed, and her saddle shoes inches above the floor. Her fingers were but a blur in her hairless slit, working frantically.

His cock quickly got stiff watching the child jerk off. While she masturbated, the older man unbuttoned his shirt and undid his pants. The shirt came off easily, and when he stood up to take off his pants, the little girl didn't even notice. She was too busy looking for that glorious release of the day before. Jim Phillips dropped his underwear on the floor, and then stood before the child's spread legs, his erect penis pointing at her tiny vagina. He started to stroke his long cock, enjoying the sight of little Tina West getting ready to cum for him.

Almost...Almost...Tina was blind to anything except her finger flying over her clit. It was going to happen. She knew any second it was going to happen...Almost. Almost...Alm…


Her orgasm had taken her by surprise, slamming into her young body with the force of a tidal wave.

"AAAAAAAAAAAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH," she screamed, rocked by spasm after spasm of pleasures, wave after wave of the greatest feelings she had ever known.

"NUHHH NUHHHH NUHHHH NUHHH NUHHHHH..." she moaned as the waves became less intense, allowing her time to breathe.

"Nuh Nuh...uhh uhh uhhhhhhhh hhhhhhhhhh." she sighed as the feelings receded back to her vagina, releasing their hold on her whole body.

"Oh God..." she said finally, when her voice returned to her.

It took a minute, but when she looked up again, Mr. Phillips was standing in front of her stroking his enormous cock just inches from her still tingling pussy. For a second she thought he meant to put it in her right then, but when he saw her eyes open, he stopped stroking his cock and lay down next to the little girl on the bed.

"Was it good, honey?" he asked, his penis jerking slightly as it rested on her leg.

"Oh god, it was great. And I can do it anytime I want?"

"That's right, precious. Now that you know what your little body can do to give you pleasure, you can have it anytime you want."

He'd reached down and began massaging her hand into her now soaked little pussy. His hand completely covered hers, and he started to flex his fingers so that her own fingers slowly entered her little sex hole.

"Do you want the next lesson, Tina...There's more about masturbation that you can learn..."

"Oh YEAH!! I'd love that."

"Good, baby. Sit up again and watch the TV some more, believe me there's a lot more to see."

Chapter Six

Jim Phillips reached for the remote and started the screen up again.

The next scene was that of a teenager, maybe fifteen or 16, masturbating herself using a dildo. The dildo was the kind shaped like a large cock. She was rubbing it up and down on her clit, stroking her pussy with the end of the rubber club. Next to her was a young boy, perhaps fifteen, watching the girl and stroking his own cock. The picture froze.

"That's how guys do it, Tina. That's how a guy masturbates his cock. By stroking it up and down like that, it eventually feels so good that the guy has an orgasm. Remember when you stroked my cock for me yesterday. That's what you were doing, masturbating me."

The picture unfroze and the action continued in the same vain for a while. Then the girl started to insert the dildo into her pink cunt. At first she had a time of it, getting her pussy lips spread to accommodate the large pseudo-cock, and then her hole was too tight to allow easy passage, but eventually she worked it into her pussy and began to glide it in and out with one hand while jerking her clit with the other.

Tina turned to Jim, "I didn't know you could do that!!"

Jim froze the picture, "What, honey?"

"I didn't know you could, you know, put things in there."

"That's your sex hole, honey; it's where a man puts his cock when people make love. It's where the baby grows inside the woman, and comes out. It'll stretch a lot, sweetheart. You saw how that girl had to stretch it to get the dildo in there, right?"

"Uhhh, yeah. What's a dildo?"

"A dildo is any long object that a woman uses instead of a man's penis to make herself feel good. You know how good it feels to masturbate?" She nodded. "Well, to a lot of women, it feels even better when a man is inside them, but if there's no man around they use a dildo."


"Just watch - - she really gets turned on by this."

Once again, the picture show started. The young boy in the picture was really jerking his cock now. A few seconds after the motion started he moved and started jerking his cock over the dildo-filled teenage pussy.

"Watch him cum now," said Jim.

A few more strokes and the boy's sperm was pumping out of his cock onto the girl's belly and cunt. The semen in her light pussy hair soon trickled down to lubricate the passage of the dildo into her pussy. Having the boy cum on her seemed to turn her on all the more, and she increased the speed at which she jerked her young cunt. The boy, in the meantime, fell to the girl's side. Recovering from his orgasm, he reached up and grabbed the dildo out of her hand. He started pumping it into the teenager, shoving it deeper on each stroke.

"Ohhh God, YEAH!!! Ohhh God, Pump me with it...Ohhh...Pump me...Pump me HARD!!!!"

Her hand was a blur on her clit. The other hand was now gripping the bed sheets. She lifted her knees up into the air and spread her legs to let the boy have even easier access to her willing cunt. He kept stroking the rod into her, almost punching her pussy into submission. The girl issued a long moan that climbed in volume until it became a scream.


Her head banged back and forth in the air, her eyes were rolled up in their sockets.

Tina envied her. 'God...that must feel fantastic...Look at her scream!!' the little girl thought.

The girl's orgasm took some minutes to subside; the boy kept pumping the fake cock into her soaked pussy, but at a much reduced rate.

"Oh...Jimmy...Oh...God...that was GREAT!!" she said.

With that she reached down and took control of the giant dildo again, easing its length out of her cunt, until it popped free. She brought it to her mouth to take a taste of the combination of her love juice and the boy's semen that coated the plastic wang. The scene ended with the girl closing her eyes and relaxing her head back, the dildo laying on her chest, and her young companion resting his head on her belly.

More scenes the day before it was a montage on a theme, only this time the theme was masturbation in all its forms.

Jim Phillips started to unbutton little Tina's blouse as she watched a scene with the 12-year-old girl jerking off a man lying on his back. The girl jerked with one small hand until the man's cum shot out and struck her in the mouth. She then put her small mouth on the organ, and Tina could see the semen she couldn't swallow dripping out of her mouth and landing on the man's belly.

Jim helped Tina ease out of her blouse while Tina watched a scene in which two men jerked off two young girls. The men rubbed the barely haired pussies until each girl was moaning and cumming.

Jim prompted Tina to take off her skirt while a scene played in which a very young girl, no more than 8 years old, masturbated for the camera, and obviously enjoyed it. There were no other people in the picture, just the little girl giving small moans as she rubbed her hairless pussy.

Tina was getting hot again with the combination of Mr. Phillips slowly undressing her, while she was watching all these other people masturbating to orgasm. And at the same time Jim's hand was guiding her own small fingers up and down her young cunt.

More scenes went by; men masturbating women, women masturbating men; people of all ages masturbating themselves and each other. There was a brief scene where two boys lay on a bed and masturbated each other. One looked a little familiar, but his face was not toward the camera, and the scene ended too quickly with each boy cumming streams of white semen.

More scenes went by. Tina was masturbating herself, now, watching the scenes on the TV. Her fingers were working her clit, and she could feel the trembling building in her body. Mr. Phillips' fingers were exploring her body too. As she rubbed her tingling clit, he inserted a finger into her young slit, moving within her lubricated confines, going deeper until he hit the barrier of her hymen.

His arm was around the naked little girl on the bed next to him. She was panting in his grip, her hand briskly stroking her own clit. He slowly laid her back on the bed. By now she wasn't really watching the screen, being much more interested in her own building orgasm.

"Go on, Tina...Jerk yourself off again, honey..." he encouraged.

Tina didn't need any encouragement. She was already deeply involved in trying to find that next orgasm. Her mind played over the scenes she'd seen on the TV as well as the scenes she herself had played out with Mr. Phillips. Her cunt was starting to get that tingling sensation that she was learning was the precursor to her full blown, body racking orgasms. Her hand thrashed at her clitoris, only seconds away from cumming...Only seconds...uhh uhh uhhnly one seeecond...

After laying Tina back on the bed so she could masturbate herself to another orgasm, Jim went back to exploring her precious little pussy. Again he inserted his finger into her warm, wet folds. Her cunt lips sucked his finger in time to her strokes. Again, he found his passage blocked by the thin shield of her hymen.

He probed carefully now, looking for the small opening in her cherry. Ah HAH...Found it...Now he watched the young girl carefully, waiting for her to cum. He didn't have to wait long. A cry escaped the child's lips and her back arched. He could feel her young cunt beginning to pulse under his hand; the muscles in her vagina gripping his finger in rhythm with her blinding orgasm. This was the exact moment he was waiting for.

He plunged his finger hard into the too small opening and up to her hymen. It resisted for a split second and then gave way. His finger plunged up into her pussy, tearing the small barrier, while her orgasm still wracked her body.

"UHHH UHHH UHHH AAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHHH." Tina screamed, pleasure and pain mixing in her cunt.

She was still thrashing with her orgasm, but there was a sharp pain where Mr. Phillips was playing with her pussy. Part of her wanted to jump up and see what he had done to her to hurt her in her virgin cunny, but another part, a much stronger part, wanted to ride the waves of pleasure still rolling over her entire body. She rode the orgasm to wherever it would take her. Whatever had happened in her cunny, she would deal with it when the pleasure was done.

Jim Phillips pressed his finger deep into the pre-teen's cunt, feeling the walls of her vagina pulsing on his deeply imbedded digit. The little girl had jerked when he'd pierced her cherry, but the orgasm she was having had not subsided and she had lain back to enjoy the rest of it. He knew he'd hurt the youngster, but he'd done it at a time when the hurt would be little noticed.

Besides, her virgin cunt was worth any amount of pain he happened to inflict on this young child. It was so wet and hot. It pulsed with strong young muscles around his shaking finger. It smelled like heaven; pure virgin; pure young girl. His cock was aching to follow his finger into the depths of this slender pre-teen, and he knew it soon would.

As her orgasm subsided, slowing; so did the pulsing around his finger. A few last squeezes on his finger told him that it was over for little Tina. He kept his finger in her tight hole until rational thought returned to her and she began to wonder about this strange, new sensation; this feeling of being invaded by something foreign.

"Wha...What happened? What did you do? What are you doing? It hurts!" She was becoming aware of the pain in her little cunt. She struggled to get up on her elbows so she could look down and see what Mr. Phillips was doing to her to hurt her so.

"Hush, honey. I have my finger in your cunt. Shhh...Shhhhh Relax. Don't be scared. I know it hurts a little, but I had to do that so that you could enjoy sex more later. Shh, honey...Relax and I'll take my finger out."

"What...Why? It hurts...Why did you do that?"

"I'll explain in a minute, sweetheart. You know I will. Now just relax and I'll take my finger out. Feel it, honey. Feel it up inside you? Now hold on...I'm gonna pull it out now..."

"It hurts...If feels weird. OW!...That OUCH!...Oh...go slow...please. Pull it out slow..."

Tina could feel his rough finger slowly retracting past the torn edges of her once intact hymen. She didn't know what it was, only that it hurt. Not too bad. Not as much as it had at first, but it still hurt.

"Hush, sweetheart...I know...I know it hurts a little...Feel it. I'm pulling my finger out of you...Okay...Almost out...Almost...There you go sweetheart; it's out. Opps...Don't move..."

He leaned across the bed to the shelves where he had a small hand towel. He brought it over and put it between her legs. Tina didn't know it, but her hymen was bleeding a little bit, and Jim Phillips wanted to staunch her virgin blood before the pre-teen girl saw it and panicked.

"There we go...Close your legs on the towel, honey."

"Ow...It still hurts a little."

"I know, baby. It'll be sore for a few minutes. No, just keep the towel there. That's good. I hope I didn't hurt you too much, honey, but I had to do that; otherwise you would have had a real hard time with our next lesson."

"What did you do and why did it hurt?"

"Okay, baby, I'll explain," he said, lying down next to the naked girl on the bed. "You're a virgin, sweetheart. That means you've never had a man's penis in your vagina. Now, when you were born, you were born with this little flap of skin called a hymen that covers your vagina. You can't put anything large in your cunny without breaking that little flap of skin. You don't need it for anything, but you have to break it in order to enjoy complete sex. Now, what I did was to tear it a little so that it won't hurt as much to break it all the way later."

"I was born with it?"

"Yeah, all girls are. Some lose it when they're young, playing or climbing trees and stuff. Yours was still all there, so I had to tear it. It's like...It's like when a baby is born they still have a piece of their belly button sticking out, but eventually it comes off cause they don't need it. You've seen that, haven't you?"


"Well, this is the same thing. It's a bit of skin that you don't need and that a man has to break for you."

"It hurt."

"I know, baby. I'm sorry. But I did it while you were cumming so it wouldn't be so bad. Did you like your orgasm?"


"And I didn't completely ruin it for you, now did I?"

"No...It still hurts...but it's not so bad now. Why did you put a towel on me?"

"Well, because when a girl's hymen breaks, sometimes it bleeds a little, like a cut finger. Here, lemme look."

He bent down and examined her small cunt. He dabbed at a small bit of blood that clung to her hairless little lips, and then used his other hand to spread her young vagina. Not seeing any more bleeding he leaned down and kissed her small clitoris, and then lay back down beside her.

"It's okay now, but I want you to lay here for a few more minutes before we try anything else. I want to make sure you're okay."

His apologies for hurting her, and his obvious concern for her well-being, mollified the little girl's feelings. It had hurt some, and it had felt strange to have his finger inside her, but already that small addicted part of her mind was returning to her last furious orgasm and wondering about her next. She had a new friend to take home with her, one that could make her feel good whenever she wanted; one that her parents didn't have to know about, and that they couldn't take away. She was looking forward to many more sessions with her legs spread and her fingers flying.

Jim got up after making sure little Tina would stay still and relax. He went over to the VCR and changed the tapes. This next tape was very special. One of his favorites, after all, he'd filmed it himself. It was going to show Tina the next step in her lessons, the step that would have him pouring his seed into her small virgin cunt before the day was out. He popped the tape into the VCR and returned to the bed.

Chapter Seven

"How are you feeling, sweetheart? Pain's pretty much gone, right?"


"Good. It doesn't last long, and every little girl has to go through it some time, and once it's over you can do other things which are even better than masturbating."


"Yeah...Once you bust your cherry, you can fuck, and that's much better."

"Fuck? I hear my Dad use that word all the time, but it's usually when he's mad. I said it once and he hit me and said I shouldn't use that word."

"Well, honey, adults always want what's best for their kids, even if they don't always want it for themselves. Remember when I said that the man puts his penis up into the woman's vagina, like I had my finger up in you? The right word for that is intercourse, but people call it fucking. Your Dad doesn't want you to know about fucking, so he doesn't even want you to say the word."

"So, fucking is better than when I rub myself?"

"Can be. See, when a girl gets fucked, she is getting stimulated both on the inside, and on the outside. That's why that one girl used the dildo when we saw her jerking off. She wanted to feel it both inside and outside her cunny. For a man, fucking feels really good, because the woman's vagina was made to fit tight around a penis, and it's warm and wet and almost nothing feels better. If two people are fucking right, they can both cum with each other."

"Uhh...You mean that the man shoots his semen into the woman? And that's how a baby is made? I get it."

'Not just yet, but you will,' he thought to himself. "That's right. But when I fuck you, you don't have to worry about that because I had an operation so that I can't make you pregnant."

"Are you going to fuck me?" she asked in a small voice.

"Do you want me to fuck you, honey?"

"I don't know...I'm scared..."

"That's alright, sweetheart. It's okay to be scared the first time. Do you want to be fucked?"

"I don't know...It hurt when you put your finger in me. Will it hurt?"

"I won't lie to you, Tina. It probably will hurt because my cock is much bigger than my finger, and your little vagina will have to stretch to hold it, but the pain doesn't last very long, and later, fucking will be as much fun as masturbating. You like jerking off, right?"

"Yeah...But...Your penis is so large...I mean...I don't think I can do it."

"Sure you can sweetheart. Look, I put a special tape in to show you that girls even younger than you can fuck. Prop you head up on a pillow and watch it with me, okay?"


"Okay. Here...Just watch this and then you'll know that you can do it..." He lay close to the naked pre-teen; his semi-hard cock again resting on her slender thigh. He turned on the VCR and his special tape began.

On screen a young blonde girl was laying in a bed with two men. It was this bed right here. The two men were stroking her small body, and she was fondling one of the men's cocks. It was enormous in her hand; she was unable to fit her hand around the man's hard-on. The other man reached down and held his erection against the girl's bottom; rubbing it against the smooth flesh of her ass.

The younger of the two men looked up into the camera, "Hi. I'm Tom, and that's Jack, and this is our friend Jennifer. She's 9 years old, and she loves to fuck, don't you honey?"

The little girl looked up at the camera, "Uh huh."

"And little Jenny here is going to fuck both of us, just for you. Aren't you sweetheart?"

"Uh huh..." and with that, the men got up and pulling on Jenny's wrists and ankles, arranged her so that the older man Jack knelt over her head, his semi-hard cock hanging down over her forehead, and Tom knelt between her legs, his erection pointing at her tiny hairless slit.

The younger man, who was between her legs, took both her ankles and spread her legs very wide. He then pulled them up over her head and handed them to Jack, who pulled her ankles toward his body, keeping them spread; thus opening the little girl's cunt as wide as possible.

Jenny made a small grunt at having her feet pulled up over her head and being spread so wide, but otherwise did not protest.

Then the one called Tom, who was between her legs, reached down with both hands and began to fondle her delicate young pussy. He used the thumb and forefinger of one hand to spread her little lips, while he ran the other finger up and down within the confines of her hairless slit.

After a minute of fondling her delicate pussy, he pushed his thumb slowly into her hole. It slid smoothly into the girl until it was fully imbedded inside her. She tensed a little, but was unable to move because the older man had a firm grip on her ankles. The little girl was splayed wide open while the younger man slowly fucked her with his thumb.

Having tested the depths, the one called Tom removed his thumb and moved forward to place his hard cock against her hairless snatch. Again, he rubbed it back and forth between the girl's tiny lips, teasing her and himself.

"Are you ready, Jenny? I'm gonna fuck you now, sweetheart."

"Uh huh," was all that the small girl said.

The younger man again spread her cunt lips with thumb and forefinger, and positioned his pole at her tiny opening. He moved his hips forward, slowly. At first, the little girl's cunt lips puckered inward, her sex hole not large enough to accommodate this full-grown pecker. He kept moving forward, and her pussy resisted. Then suddenly, the head of his penis disappeared into the small hole. Slowly, so as not to shock this little beauty, he pushed further.

The close-up picture was amazing. The 9-year-old's small cunt lips were stretched tight around both sides of the large cock entering her. It looked like she had been skewered on a pole. Her pale skin and pink clitoris contrasted against the dark meat of the shaft entering her. His move was relentless. Slowly, the meat of his penis disappeared into the little girl's cunny.

"Oh, GOD,'re tight...ooohhhhh, man...Okay, honey...Just a little more to go," said the younger man off-camera. Even as he said it, his hips gave a forceful thrust, and his cock was buried completely in the girl's hairless cunt.

Little Jennifer gave a grunt when the last of the pulsing meat pole penetrated her, but still had nothing to say.

"Ohhhhhhh,'re gonna make me cum just sitting here...Ohhh, fuck!...You're ready to get fucked now, baby...Tell me you want me to fuck you, baby..."

The camera had pulled back so that Tina could see the girl completely. The man called Jack still held her legs spread wide and pulled back to over her head. She was grimacing a little; obviously feeling stretched by Tom's erect penis in her immature cunny.

She looked up at the man penetrating her and said, "Please fuck me..." in a small trembling voice.

The man didn't need any further encouragement. He started to pump the 9-year-old with his hard cock. Each time he pulled it out it glistened with her young juices. Each time he pushed it in, the little girl gave a grunt. The lips of her little pussy were moving to and fro, following and sucking on the large penis that was pumping her.

Tina could see that Jennifer's small flat belly actually expanded with each thrust as the man's cock pushed deep into the tiny girl.

The camera was moving to take in all the angles. It closed in on his hard meat plunging into her. His whole cock disappeared into the little girl, even though it looked like it was impossible for it to fit. The edges of her pussy-lips were getting red from being stretched by his meat. The camera slowly moved: over her body; past her flat belly that expanded and contracted as the man moved his cock within her; past her small chest with no hint whatsoever of tits; to her face. Her face was held in a grimace. The youngster was grunting with each thrust into her small hole. She grunted each time the man pumped her.

The penis of the man holding Jenny's legs bobbed over her face, sometimes dipping enough to strike her on the cheek. She opened her eyes and looked up at the cock waving in front of her face. Then she reached up with one hand and held it, jacking it a little in tune with her body's movements from the man pumping her tiny cunt.

"Ohh, baby...FUCK but you're tight...I can just barely get it all into you. Shit...God, I'm gonna cum, baby...I'm gonna blow my load into you, honey..."

Tom was fucking her harder now. The initial gentleness of his fucking disappearing as his climax approached. The tiny girl's body was being pushed up the bed with his strokes until her face was under the balls of the man still holding her legs splayed for her fucking. Jack's balls rested on the bridge of her nose, making it difficult to see her face, but her mouth still grimaced with each thrust and her grunts had turned to small yelps.

Tina couldn't tell if the 9-year-old liked what was happening or not. She couldn't believe that a kid two years younger than herself could fit a man's whole penis into her tiny pussy. But there it was on the screen, right in front of her.

Tina looked down and saw that Mr. Phillips' cock was hard again, just watching the girl getting screwed. She looked at the cock on the screen and back at the cock pushing against her thigh. She wondered if she could do it. She wondered what it would feel like. She particularly wondered if her pussy would really feel better with a man's penis in her. But her attention was drawn back to the screen when she heard the young girl begin to moan loudly.

The man with his balls in the little girl's face had let go of her ankles. Her legs were still splayed wide on either side of the younger man fucking her. Jack reached down, pressing his cock against her face and began to rub the tiny girl's tender clit, while she still accepted Tom's stroking penis. The girl's reaction was instantaneous. She began to moan loudly and buck her body as if the sensations she was experiencing from her clit and tortured vagina were too much to take.

"Nuh...Nuhhh...Ahhhiiieeeyyyye...Nuuuuuhhhh...Nuh..." She was incoherent.

Suddenly, her whole body went tense. The cords on her neck stood out, and her chest flushed red. Her face jerked upward with the spasms of her belly and she bucked up and down with the testicles of the older man rubbing up and down on her face as she did.

"OHH SWEET JESUS!!!!...OH GOD, JENNY...YEAAAAHHH COME ON MY COCK, BABY...SQUEEZE IT...OOOOOOHHHHH… FFFFUUUUUCCCCKKKK!!!! HERE...I...CUUUUUUUUUUUUMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMM!!!!!!!" Tom screamed, slamming his meat into the child. Her belly grew large as his cock pushed its way into the tiny girl.

Now the younger man and girl bucked together; her body spasming, her face full of cock; her legs straight out on either side of the man whose face was in ecstasy above her; his ass taut with the effort of pushing his huge cock into her tortured cunny; his body jerking with the spasms that were pumping his load of cum into this 9-year-old child. Her tiny pussy had no spare room once fully stuffed with his penis, and so the cum he shot into her immediately came out from all sides of her hairless slit.

Tina could see it glistening on the junction between man and girl as the camera zoomed in on the spot where the two became one.

"OHHH FUCKKK...TAKE IT...Uh...BABY!!...OHHH FUCK...BABY!!" he moaned as he filled her to overflowing with hot cum.

The camera pulled back, and Tina could see that the small girl still jerked with orgasmic spasms; or maybe it was in sympathy with the jerking cock in her young cunt. In any case, Jack had moved off her face and she could now see that little Jennifer had a look of pure pleasure on her face. 'God, she looks like she really came with him!' thought Tina.

The younger man's orgasm slowly subsided. As it did he eased the pressure off the 9-year-old's cunny and his cock began to slip out. The pressure in her tiny snatch, forced his cock out as it began to lose its hardness. The man pulled his cock from her and rested it on her belly. Even as it began to soften, it still reached from her slit to her navel. And because of the tightness of her little cunt, not all the man's semen had been pumped into her. What couldn't get out due to the pressure, now leaked out onto the child as she laid breathing heavily from her own small orgasm. Her legs hung over the edge of the bed, and it was obvious to Tina that both man and girl were totally spent.

"Oh, honey...God, that felt good. Are you okay?"

"Uh huh..." was all she said, not even opening her eyes.

"I felt you cum, baby. I felt your cunt squeeze me, baby. Did it feel good, honey?"

"Uh HUH," she said, this time opening her eyes to look at her mature lover, and nod her head. "It's so big, uh...and it hurts...a little, but it felt good at the end..." she elaborated.

"That's good, sweetheart. It's supposed to feel good. It sure felt good for me. You wanna fuck Jack now? He's all hard and ready for you. Huh? You wanna fuck Jack now, right honey?"

"Uhh...Okay!" she said thinking about it for a second and then seeming to really want it.

Tina was shocked, "She's gonna do it with the other man too?" she asked turning to Mr. Phillips.

Jim Phillips stopped the tape, "Sure, honey. Why not? If you like something as much as that, why not do it as often as you want?"

"But, with two guys...I mean...I thought you were only supposed to like...well, you know...with just one guy?"

"Well, lots of people find special relationships with just one person, and that's nice, but a lot of people like to share their pleasure and bodies with more than one person, sometimes at the same time. That's okay too. Sometimes people will get together in a group, just to have sex and enjoy each other's bodies. That's group sex. Now, three people isn't a group, not really, but don't they seem to really be enjoying it?"

"Well, yeah...I guess..."

"Okay then; nothing wrong with that. You gotta remember, Tina, that you shouldn't judge people without knowing about them. Lots of people think it's wrong that you and I are naked with each other right now, like your parents for instance, but you've enjoyed it, right?"

"Yeah...I guess..."

"Not, I guess, Tina. I know you've enjoyed it. I watched you when you came. Is it really wrong that you've learned about your body? Is it really wrong that you've learned about men's bodies, and sex?"

"I guess not..."

"Okay. So don't be too shocked at little Jenny wanting to fuck two guys at the same time. She likes it, and they like it, and that's good enough for them. So you wanna see the rest of this?"


"Good, because this time they do it differently. There's lots of ways for two people to have sex, a lot of positions, and the man on top is just one. Watch."

And the homemade porn show started again.

Little Jennifer moved across the bed to where her older lover waited for her.

"Come on, Jenny. Get on top." said Jack, waiting for her, stroking his cock. Jennifer didn't hesitate a second. She climbed on top of the man, and then got her feet under her so she could lift her little pussy into the air over his cock. "Okay, sweetheart, now put it in. Put this big cock in your pretty little hole. That's a good girl."

The small girl reached down with one hand, the other helping her maintain her balance on the man's chest, and took hold of his enormous penis. It jerked in her grip, and she seemed to have difficulty getting it straight up to point at her perfect little cunt. She pulled it up until the head was mashing her tender cunt lips aside, and guided it to the opening into her young body. She held it there for a second and then began to lower herself onto his meat. The head disappeared into her hairless cunt, and then seemed to stop its penetration.

"You're really tight, honey. Use more of your weight Come on, push down...Harder...Harder...Yeah...That's it baby, it's going in now."

The girl let more and more of her weight rest on the small spot where her cunny met his cock. The lips of her cunt were pressed in from her efforts. Slowly his cock began to disappear into her. Jenny let out a small gasp as she reached the half-way point on his prick. She sucked in her breath and held it as she continued her efforts to swallow his throbbing cock with her 9-year-old cunt. It was obviously a tough job, but Jennifer did not give up.

Tina could tell that the girl really wanted to accomplish this, but she couldn't tell why. To Tina it looked like this man was much too big to be fucking this little girl, but the girl didn't give up. Instead she grunted and puffed and pushed until, finally, the tender lips of her hairless pussy kissed the rough pubic hair of her grown lover, her little cunt having swallowed the whole length of his erect penis.

Jennifer paused, having accomplished this, and looked right into the camera. She smiled, knowing she'd done something to be proud of!

Tina was stunned. This girl was younger than her, and yet there she sat smiling, penis up her hole, while the man beneath her moaned about how unbelievably tight her little cunt was.

"Jesus,'re TIGHT!! Man, I love fucking you, baby...Now ride me...Come on...Ride that cock you have in you..."

Little Jenny pushed upward and the lips of her pussy pulled out as the fat cock in her was pulled out of her body. Then she pushed back down and her tender pussy swallowed the older man's cock again.


The girl's face was red from the effort of pushing this monster meat in and out of her 9-year-old cunt. The man managed to hold still beneath his young lover, but his moaning and cries of encouragement let Tina know that he was really enjoying the fucking this nymph was giving him.

He reached up and grabbed the little girl's ass, his hands completely covering her tiny buttocks. He started to pull the girl onto his prick with a faster rhythm, slamming upward with his hips as he pulled Jenny down onto his cock. He used his hands to pull the little girl upward and slam her downward, using her small body as a tight and warm masturbation receptacle.

Jennifer had both her hands on the man's chest, trying to keep from losing her balance as the man pulled and pushed her onto his cock.

The camera moved to the back, where Tina could see the man's balls churning under his cock as his giant penis disappeared into the stretched little girl's hole. 'My god, why doesn't that thing kill her? It looks way too big to get in there! She must really feel stretched!!' thought Tina, but the thought of being stretched turned her on. 'Maybe it would feel good to get rubbed like that there?' The girl in the picture was not complaining any, and Jack was obviously in heaven. His breath was becoming ragged, and his thrusts less coordinated as his climax neared.

"Uh...Jenny...I'm gonna cum...sweetheart...I'm fill you with jizm, baby...Uhhhhh Ready... Here...I... CCCUUUUUUMMMMMMMMMmmmm..."

The man slammed into the 9-year-old one last time, pulling down on her buttocks with both hands as hard as he could. A small "OH" came from the young girl, but most of the noise came from the man as he shot his seed into his tiny lover.


The camera was still between his legs looking at where his cock disappeared into the hairless nymph. Jism was spurting out of her tiny pussy. It dripped down to the man's balls and coated them. His hands never eased their pressure on her ass, until his final spurt of white hot cum was spent into the little girl. Slowly he relaxed his grip, his fingers leaving a red after-image on her slender ass. He still held her, not allowing her to get off his invading cock, just yet.

"Oh...BABY!!! WHEW!! That was GREAT!! Jennifer, you got the nicest little pussy on the planet!!! Did ya feel it, honey? Did ya feel me cum in you?"

The camera had moved around to the side again to show the man holding the little girl's body to him. She was now on her knees straddling him, his cock still in her tight hole. Bent over and impaled like she was, the 9-year-old's head barely reached his chest. He held her onto his cock stroking her fine hair.

"Did you feel it pumping in you, sweetheart?"

"Uh huh...Yeah."

"Man, baby, I filled you up, I think. Here...Let's see..." and with that he sat her up straight and grabbed her waist. One move and Jack lifted her clear off his deflating penis, making a small pop and her hairless lips kissed it a last good-bye. He held her in the air above his cock and the camera closed in to show the spunk dripping out of her red, expanded sex hole.

"Yeah, honey...Look at it...Man, you had a load inside of you. Here...Clean it up with your tongue, baby..."

And again, he lifted the little girl, putting her on one side of his body. Jennifer had obviously been through this ritual before because she didn't need to ask what the man meant, but instead got on her hands and knees, her blonde hair hanging down on the man's body, and started licking the jism off the man. Her tongue lapped up the white spunk that, just a few seconds earlier, had been pumped into her small cunt.

"That's it baby...Clean it up good..." encouraged the man, resting his hand on her head, and guiding her mouth to the pools of semen on his belly and crotch. The white cum clung to the little girl's mouth, and what she couldn't lap up directly, she picked up with her fingers and sucked them. When she'd cleaned the man's belly and crotch she picked up his softening penis and pushed as much of it as she could into her mouth.

Tina could see that she was sucking the flaccid cock, trying to get the last of this man's cum.

"Eeeeeuuuuuwwwww...sweetheart...Ohhh that feels nice...I love having my cock in your mouth, Jenny...Ummmmm...yeaaaaahhhhhhh..."

Eventually, the little girl finished licking Jack clean, and lay down with him, her small, hairless pale body making an amazing contrast to his large, dark, hairy form. Both of them looked contented, and appeared to be ready to go to sleep together when the film ended.

Chapter Eight

Tina looked up at Jim Phillips. "I don't know if I want to try that. I mean, I know she was younger than me, and she did it and all, but...It looks too big," she said, glancing at Jim Phillips' fully erect cock resting on her thigh. "And it would hurt and all..."

"Tina, I want to fuck you. I know you'll like it when we do it, you just have to trust me. Okay?"

"No...I'm scared...I like masturbating and all that, but it's too big...Please...I don't want to..."

"Well, Tina...I'm guess I'm going to have to show you another tape, just to show you what you CAN do, when you want to." He got up and changed the tapes in the VCR. "This tape might help you decide that you really do want me to fuck you." He started the tape.

On the TV screen there was a picture of a young girl. She was sitting on a bed, looking kind of nervous. With a shock, Tina realized that it was her!! She was on the video tape!! Mr. Phillips must have taken these pictures yesterday, without telling her! She watched herself on the film.

The Tina on the film was looking off-camera. She nodded her head and said, "My name is Tina West, I'm 11 years old and I want to learn about sex."

The Tina on the TV looked off-camera again and then said, "I want to take my clothes off for you and show you what a pretty little girl I am."

Then she saw herself get up and hesitantly start taking off her clothes. Gradually the clothes came off. Finally, when she was all naked, she slowly turned her body around, allowing the camera to see her from all sides. After a few seconds (with a jump where the film had been edited) Tina watched herself lay down on the bed, and then, again after some hesitation and looking off-camera, she heard herself say, "I want to spread my legs for you."

Then the Tina on TV lifted her knees and spread them for the camera!!

'He filmed me...He filmed all of it!! Oh, GOD!!' She was dazed.

The TV Tina lay on the bed with her legs spread, and her pussy opened for the whole world to see. She put her hands behind her head, just as Mr. Phillips came into camera range. Of course, his back was to the camera, and you couldn't see his face!! He was taking his shirt off and Tina was looking up at his face, her legs splayed open to the camera.

Another small edit jump and Tina heard herself say, "Please look at my cunny. Please touch my cunny. Please."

'OH GOD, I sound like a total SLUT!! If anyone ever sees this I'm DEAD!! My parents will kill me!!'

The man in the video, the man Tina knew was Mr. Phillips, but who never let his face show, was sitting between her spread legs, running his hands over her body. Tina saw herself reacting to his touch, saw her body begin to quiver as his hand probed her tiny cunt. She could hear Mr. Phillips mumbling, but could not make out the words.

Then she heard herself say, "It feels g-good when you rub my cunny."

"Good girl. Do you want me to rub harder? Do you want me to make you feel good?"

"Uh...huh...I want..." but the sentence didn't complete. Mr. Phillips was stroking her clit on film, and saying something to her that she could not make out. Then in a pleading voice she heard herself say, "Please rub my little cunny harder. Please make me feel good."

She watched herself being brought to orgasm. She watched herself convulse and moan; her head shaking left to right and back; her breath coming in grunts, "Uh Uh Uh Uh Uh Uh..."

And suddenly she heard herself squeal and saw her body arch. Her convulsions were beyond control. Mr. Phillips could barely keep his hand on her cunt while his other reached up and held one of her ankles to keep her flailing legs from closing on him.

'Oh WOW...That's what I look like when I cum!!' she thought. She watched her body spasm, and remembered her first orgasm. At the time she had no awareness of what was going on around her. But now she could see her naked young body jerking to the touch of this man's hand on her hairless pussy.

On screen, her orgasm was slowly subsiding. As she began to relax the scene changed. Suddenly she saw herself leaning forward, kissing Mr. Phillips' crotch while he stood in front of her.

Another edit jump, and she was looking up at him saying, "I want to see your penis. I really do."

And then she was pulling his underwear off while he stood in front of her. Once it was free, she watched herself looking at her first cock. Next, she was holding it, and stroking it. Another jump, and suddenly, the monster cock she was pulling on with both hands was blasting all over her little naked body. She saw how the cum hit her in the mouth and was all over her chest, making her pre-teen body glisten.

Again, the scene shifted. Suddenly, Tina saw herself astride Mr. Phillips' face. Again, no one could see his face, but she was clearly visible. And she was bucking his face in another orgasm. This lasted a minute or so, and again the scene changed. This time Tina saw herself on the bed while a grown man fed his cock into her wide mouth. He held onto the back of her head and forced his cock deep into her face. She watched as the whole thing disappeared into her mouth. She could see her throat expanding to accommodate the cock that was fucking her mouth. Another jump and Mr. Phillips was fucking her face in earnest. His hand on the back of her head kept pushing and pulling her face onto his penis. In a minute, he started to cum in her mouth. She saw the cum dripping out the sides of her mouth. The picture froze.

"So, honey. What do you think?"

Tina was in shock. She took a minute to gather her thoughts. "YOU FILMED ME. YOU FILMED US!! WWWWWHHHHHYYYYY?!!!" she was starting to cry, and this last came out as a long sob. "Why did you do that?"

Jim leaned over and put his arm around the naked 11-year-old, pulling her sobbing body next to his adult nakedness. "Honey, I think you're really hot! I mean you are really sexy, and I just wanted to show you how really sexy you are! You saw the way you came! Tell me you didn't enjoy it then! So what's so wrong with seeing what you look like, huh?"

"...uh...I don't know."

"I wanted you to see that sex ain't dirty. Hey, you watched other people doing it, even little girls like yourself. They turned you on, didn't they?"

"I guess..."

"Okay, then. So now you see that you're just as pretty and sexy and hot as any of those other girls on tape, right?"

"Uh huh..."

"That's right, sweetheart. I think you're really sexy, and I really want to fuck you. So having seen that tape, doesn't that make you want to let me fuck you, huh? Don't you want to feel my hot penis all the way up in your vagina? Huh, baby?"

Still sobbing, Tina didn't know what to say, so she fell back on her original fears. "It'll hurt! I'm sca...scarrreeeddd!" And again she started to cry.

"Look, Tina. I know you're scared, and I know it might hurt a little at first, but you have to do it someday." He took her chin in one hand and turned her face so her teary eyes were looking right into his. "And it sure would be a shame if a copy of that tape got shown to your father, wouldn't it? What do you think he would do, seeing his little girl sucking cock, hummm?"

Tina stopped crying instantly.

Now all she felt was terror.

'If Daddy saw that, he'd kill me. He'd beat me so bad...' and her thoughts became incoherent with imaginings of what her father would do to her.

The naked little girl started to tremble with fear in Jim's arm. He held her tight, enjoying her panic for a moment before offering her the way out. "Listen, Tina. No one ever has to know about that tape. It will be our secret. But you gotta do what I want. You got that. I want to fuck you, and you're going to let me. You got that?"

Tina didn't answer. She was overwhelmed. She looked up at Mr. Phillips who had treated her so nicely but who now seemed so mean, and knew that there was no way out for her. She was going to be fucked by this man; her virginity was going to be taken by this man three times her age. She was speechless.

"You got that, Tina? I'm going to fuck you now. I'm going to shove my hard cock into that tight little pussy of yours. And I want you to ask me to do it! You got that. I want you to ask me to fuck you!"

"I...I...want...Oh, please...Don't hurt me."

Jim Phillips pulled the 11-year-old to his chest and hugged her. "Tina, I don't want to hurt you, but this is for your own good. You HAVE to do this someday. I want to be the first. I think you will grow to like it, A LOT! But you have to do it the first time, and if I have to, I'll force you to do it. It's not going to be as bad as you think, sweetheart. I really like you. You know I think you're sexy. You have to trust me. Now, come on...Stop crying...That's it, baby...Okay...Now ask me to please fuck you."

Tina stopped her sobs. Mr. Phillips was acting nice again, saying nice things to her again. She wanted to trust him; he'd been so nice to her so far; and he'd taught her things that she really liked. Her fear made her stutter, but she managed to say the words he wanted to hear, "Okay...Wooo...Would you ple...please...fuck me?"

"Yes, baby. I'll fuck you. I'll fuck you right now."

And with that he laid the child back on the bed. He got down between her legs and placed his mouth on her hairless cunt. He started licking her pussy from top to bottom, his tongue paying particular attention to her prominent clit. His hands spread her legs and then roamed over her tiny body.

He lifted his head to speak, "Relax, baby. I'm going to make you feel real good." And then he went back to tonguing the pre-teen's virgin slit.

One hand stayed roaming over her body while the other reached down under his chin and began to probe her small vagina. He inserted his finger to the first knuckle, feeling the smoothness of her nether lips and wet interior. He used his fingers to open her small pussy and his tongue to make her wet in preparation for his aching penis. He probed deeper with his finger, trying to get her used to the sensation of being entered. He could feel her starting to respond to his tongue, her rigid body starting to relax, just a bit, and her slender hips starting to rock up and down into his mouth. 'Yeah, baby...that's it,' he thought. 'Just get yourself nice and turned on, and then I'm gonna slam it home.'

Tina said the words Mr. Phillips wanted to hear. She couldn't believe that she's said it. Having this grown man try to push his large erect penis into her small slit was the last thing she wanted, but the imagined alternatives all seemed worse. When he laid her down, the girl expected him to immediately mount her, forcing his cock into her virgin slit. But instead, he pressed his face to her hairless mound and started to stimulate her with his hot tongue. Her fear began to evaporate in the sensations washing up from her small clit. She had loved sitting on Mr. Phillips' face, and this was just as nice.

She began to relax as pleasure replaced fear. His tongue was rough against the smooth skin of her pre-teen vagina. His hands roamed over her body, massaging her flat chest, and her slender neck; running down her thighs and up between her legs.

Tina loved the feel of his hands on her body. 'Maybe he'll just lick me, and let me lick him,' she thought for a second, but doubted it the instant his finger probed her young pussy.

She felt his finger slipping into her, working in concert with his tongue, making her feel even more small spasms of pleasure than his tongue alone was giving her. The youngster started to buck her hips at Mr. Phillips' face, wanting him to press even harder on her swollen clit with his hot tongue.

She was enjoying the sensations that both tongue and finger were giving her. She felt him spread her soft, hairless pussy-lips and lick her opening, leaving a trail of saliva from anus to mound. 'God that feels good...I'm gonna cum if he keeps doing this to me!'

She reached down with one hand and stroked his head, wanting to pull his hair to get more pressure from his mouth. Her breathing was becoming irregular, and her hips were bucking into his face. She wanted to cum now! She wanted to feel his tongue and finger probing her while she spasmed out of control in orgasm. But it was not to be.

Jim had worked the little girl up to just the right point. Any more he knew and she'd be cumming in his face. Her hips were already pushing against him, pushing her pre-teen cunt into his mouth. Her hands were both on his head, gently pulling him deeper into her young snatch.

Now! Now was the time he'd been waiting for: Now he'd fuck this little girl good! He pulled his mouth off her now juicy cunt.

"Ohh...More...Please lick me some more..." Tina begged, wanting to cum more than anything.

"No, honey," Jim said, getting up and moving his body between her slender legs. "Now I fuck you. The next time you cum it's going to be with my hard cock shoved up your cunny."

He held himself over her with one arm, and used the other to push her thighs further apart. Then he reached down to guide his swollen cock into the child's tiny sex hole. The head of his cock found her opening, and Jim used his hand to move it around in her hairless lips, lubricating the head of his prick with her juices and his saliva.

Slowly he pushed his cock into the little girl; feeling her cunt-lips move aside to make way for the invading member.

"Please don't hurt me!" was all Tina could think to say.

The man hung over her, looking down at where his cock was starting to enter her little body. Tina looked down too, and saw how huge his penis was compared to the small opening of her slender 11-year-old body. 'It's too big...' she thought, and let her head fall back to the bed, not wanting to watch out of fear. Because she was so small, she found herself looking up at Jim Phillips' chest. 'He's too big,' she kept thinking, and began to tense up.

Jim Phillips felt her tense, but his cock was on the glide path and nothing was going to stop it now. Her opening was small and tight around the head of his penis. Her cunt was hot, and her tension just stimulated him further. He pushed further up into the little girl and her sex hole got even tighter.

'It's now or never,' he thought.

His cock was pushing at the ragged opening he'd made earlier in her maidenhead; it was going to take the last of her cherry. He slammed his hips forward. Her hymen resisted for a split second and then it tore open, allowing his erection to surge up into her virgin slit.

"AAAAARRRRRRRRRRGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH," Tina screamed when the older man jammed his penis into her.

Her back arched, and her hands went to his waist trying to push him off of her, but the 85 pound 11-year-old was no match for the 200 pound plus, 6 foot man. Her hands pushed at him uselessly; they could not prevent him from stuffing her hairless cunt with his cock. She felt his full weight hit her as his hips slammed her into the bed. She felt his balls slap her exposed ass, and knew that he'd pushed all the way into her young body.


She had to tilt her head backward to try and see his face so she could tell him how much he was hurting her, but she could tell in a glance that he was oblivious to her pain.

'Sweet, JESUS. Oh man, is this little bitch TIGHT!! And HOT! Her insides feel like they're gonna burn my COCK OFF!' Jim Phillips was in ecstasy.

He rested his weight on his little victim, feeling how her struggles moved her cunt around on his cock. Her little sex hole was tight and hot, and heaven. He didn't move for a few seconds. He always loved this moment; the instant of penetration on a new pre-teen lover!! The fit of his cock in a virgin little girl was better than any sensation on earth. The way they cried only helped turn him on. He loved to break in little girls, and Tina was one tight little bitch. He gave his hips some experimental shoves, listening to the way the little girl cried out with each one. 'Oh man, this is one nice little virgin!!'

Tina's pain subsided for a second, and then Mr. Phillips started to pull out of her. The friction of his huge cock against the ragged edges of her hymen hurt her again. Then he thrust back in again, and the shock of feeling his cock inside her caused her to exclaim, against her will. This happened a couple of times; each time, Tina gave out an "Ooowwwwwwww OHHH!" The penis inside her was so large that she could feel how it pushed up into her vagina and distended her when it hit her cervix.

After a few thrusts, Mr. Phillips stopped pushing into her, and Tina again looked down her body to where he'd entered her. She couldn't actually see his cock going into her small hole, but she could see how her flat stomach now bulged from her insides being shoved higher into her 11-year-old body. 'It's all in! It feels...weird,' she thought, and with that she realized that pain was not the biggest feeling anymore!

Jim looked down at the pre-teen he was fucking, her head only coming up to his chest and said, "Does it still hurt, honey?"

"Yeah...But not like at first! You really HURT me!!"

"Yeah, baby. I'm sorry, but just think, you're not a little girl anymore. With my cock inside you, you're just as adult as any woman! How's it feel, baby? How does it feel to have my cock all the way inside you?"

"It's...It's...BIG! I feel it way up in me."

"Yeah, baby. It's all the way in, and you feel fantastic. You've got a nice tight cunt, sweetheart, and I'm gonna fuck it till I shoot my load in you. Here..." he said, grabbing one of her hands that was still on his hip, vainly pushing at his large body, "rub yourself. Go on, masturbate with my cock in you...Make yourself cum on my cock, baby. Yeah...That's it. Yeah...Okay I'm gonna fuck you now, but you keep on rubbing it...Yeah...Oh...Baby!!!"

When Mr. Phillips put her hand on her own clit, and told her to rub herself, the pain was present, but not the largest sensation. When she started to rub herself, the pain was in the background compared to the other feelings; being stuffed with cock; being stimulated to cum; that she was feeling. And by the time that he started fucking her while she masturbated, the pain was no longer a thought. Her only thought was to cum. She wanted that moment of all encompassing, blinding pleasure.

She felt the man start to move, his huge erection sliding out and in, making her small unused orifice pucker in and out with each thrust. She reached lower on her body and felt his cock with her fingers, felt it entering her hairless slit, felt his rigid member ramming her smooth flesh. His penis felt huge where it entered her small body. She started rubbing her clit again, the stretching it was receiving from his thrusts having turned her on to the point where all she wanted to do was to cum. Her finger flew over her hard clit.

Mr. Phillips was fucking her hard now, his coarse pubic hair smashing against her small hairless vagina each time he drove his cock into her 11-year-old cunt. Her body was smashed into the bed with each thrust. She looked straight up at his hairy chest over her face; his breathing had become very heavy as he let his body lower close to her.

It was getting hard to keep rubbing her own clit, because as he fucked her, he kept lowering his body. Her hand became trapped with each forward thrust of his hips when her small body and his met at her smooth mound. Finally, Tina gave up trying to jerk herself off, realizing that she didn't need it to cum. The man's penis stretched the skin of cunt enough to bring her off now that she was at the edge of cumming anyway.

Jim Phillips was pounding the little girl; his only thought that he was going to blow her little head off when he came. Her small pre-teen body was jerking to each slam of his hips. He didn't hold back anymore, but pounded the little girl with his full weight, loving the way it drove her tiny body into the mattress; the way her head jerked upward toward his chin. Her legs were splayed wide and waved on either side of his thrusting thighs. The 11-year-old gave out a little "oh" each time he rammed his penis into her tiny wet sex hole.

He started to lower his body onto the little girl, wanting to feel just how small she was next to his grown body; wanting to smother her tiny form while ramming her virgin sex hole with his 8-inch erection…

…Lower…feeling her small hand still trying to rub her little clit, feeling her fingers hitting his cock where it entered her smooth pussy.

…Lower…then she gave up with masturbating and put her arms around his body, unable to reach all the way around his bucking form.

…Lower…until he felt her face and hot breath against his chest; the little girl was moaning directly into the hair on his chest.

…Lower…finally resting his full weight on the little pre-teen, her face turned sideways under his chest.

'God she's small and tight!' he thought as he continued to fuck the 11-year-old, suffocating under his body. The top of her head almost touched his chin each time he slammed his penis into her small snatch. Her struggle for breath, the feel of her tiny ass on his balls, her hands alternately embracing and struggling at his body, the smell of her hair, the smallness of her body, the flat-chest against him, the tightness of her pre-teen orifice...all this was combining to make Jim Phillips blast his hot reward into his tiny 11-year-old sacrifice.

Tina could barely breathe, but it didn't matter. The little school girl was on the verge of something really powerful. The battering her small cunny was taking, as it was stretched and pulled and pushed by the large prick, was driving her right to the edge. Who cared about breathing when you could cum? Right now, little Tina was ready to have Jim Phillips fuck her forever! Right now ... little Tina was going to cum. RIGHT ... NNNNOOOOOWWWWW…!!!

The 11-year-old came like dynamite explodes. Her body went totally rigid, her small arms wrapped around the adult fucking her in a vise-like grip, her slender legs thrust straight out on either side of the man in her, and she screamed.


Her tiny vagina, which was tight before, became a massaging vice. Her vaginal muscles alternately pushed and sucked the giant member inside her. Her stomach muscles spasmed, pushing down on her uterus and cervix, massaging the head of the penis that was rammed up hard against them.

"AAAAHHH AAHHH AAHH AAHH AAHHH," she cried in rhythm with her convulsions, aware only of the waves of pleasure coming from her overstuffed cunt.

Jim felt the little girl beneath him go rigid. He felt her arms grip his lunging body, and he heard her scream of pleasure. Her small cunt massaged his cock, her slender hips bucked to meet his thrusts. The feel of this tiny, 11-year-old virgin sucking his huge cock with her tight, hairless pussy sent him over the edge.


His cry ended in an incoherent yell of his own! His cock, already huge in the little pre-teen, swelled and filled her to the limit. His hot white cum shot from the tip right into the little girl's uterus, where it ricocheted back to be met by the next huge blast of his cum. He slammed the little girl as hard as he could, trying to shove his cock all the way up to her throat. His coarse pubic hair ground down on the smooth lips of her pussy, rubbing them raw and red. His cum filled the little orifice and mixed with the blood from her ragged hymen to ooze out of her over-stuffed vagina and slide between her small ass cheeks; coating her anus and buttocks. His cock kept jerking and spitting, coating her insides with his hot jism. Jim Phillips kept pounding the little girl, harder and harder. He never wanted this fuck to end!

Tina felt the older man's cock expand inside her. Through her own convulsions she felt him starting to jerk against her. She felt his hot cum explode into her tortured slit. He collapsed on her and bucked his body into hers. Little Tina was smashed under his weight, her face pressed up against his chest, but she didn't care. Her own orgasm was intensified by feeling the immense cock inside her expand and fill her with hot cum. The youngster went blind with pleasure, feeling herself filled to the limit, feeling the hot cum coat her hairless mound, feeling it slide down to cover her ass.

It thrilled her to feel the grown up lose control of his body, and know that she had done that to him. That she, the girl the boys in school wouldn't take a second glance at, could make this grown man convulse and cum inside her small, slender body. She loved the way he jerked and spasmed and fucked into her.

She knew that she'd want to fuck Mr. Phillips again and again, just to feel his hot cock and know that her 11-year-old body was what turned him on!

Chapter Nine

Jim Phillips came back from the blind pleasure that had overtaken him with his first shot of semen into the youngster's wild little body; his cock was still jerking, still pumping sperm into the pre-teen. Beneath him the youngster was moaning; struggling to breathe. He realized that he was going to crush her if he didn't ease off of her.

He lifted up with one elbow as he continued fucking Little Tina, pumping the last of his cum into the child. His cock tingled in the grip of her tight cunt. The spasms in the little girl's pussy slowly faded away as her orgasm ended and she too came back to the real world of man and girl.

The man looked down at the 11-year-old. "Are you alright, Tina?"

<Gasp...> "Yeah..." <Gasp...> "It was hard to breathe when you laid on me. You had an orgasm, didn't you?"

"Oh, yeah, baby! Did I ever!! You've got the nicest little cunt I've fucked in a long while!!"

"Yeah...I felt it. I felt you ejac...uh ejaculate into me. It was hot! I felt your wiener get real big...uh...I mean your penis...Did it feel good?"

"Yeah, baby. It felt good; no matter what words you use. You came too, didn't you?"

"Uh huh. Your pen...Your cock hurt at first, but then it felt good. I didn't have to rub myself 'cause your cock rubbed my whole slit. It's really big!"

"And you took every inch, sweetheart. Damn that felt great!! You're one hot little bitch! I think your little pussy squeezed every drop outa me! Oh man...I hate to do this, but...hang on...OOOHHHHHhhhhh ahhhhhh."

Mr. Phillips pulled his deflating cock out of Tina's ravaged slit. It popped free and both man and little girl thought it was a shame that their hot sex couldn't last longer! The little girl's body was coated in the grown up's sweat, her hairless mound and lips were covered in his white sperm. What she couldn't hold in, oozed out the bottom of her slit; sliding down to her ass and mixing there with a pool of cum and virgin blood.

"Lay still, Tina, I gotta get a towel. Here we go."

He gently lifted her legs up and spread them. He wiped off her tiny slit, paying close attention to her red, swollen pussy lips. He moved the towel down to her ass crack, and probed gently to clean the mixture of sex juices off her slender cheeks and her tiny, puckered anus. He then leaned down and lowered his mouth to her pussy, hardly believing that the pair of hairless lips he was now kissing had just managed to swallow his whole cock and a hot load of cum.

"There you go, baby. All cleaned up."

Tina had enjoyed that gentle kiss from Mr. Phillips. It made her feel genuinely loved. The thought came to her mind, and the words spilled out before she knew, "Do you want me to clean you off, too?"

Jim was surprised. "Yeah...I'd love that!" he said, and he lay down and handed her the towel.

Tina got up, leaned over the man's crotch and began to wipe him off with the towel. She noticed the red stains on the bed and towel. "Is that blood?"

"Yes it is, Tina. You were a virgin, and I had to break your little cherry to get my cock inside you. That's why it hurt that time, but now that your hymen is gone, you can fuck anytime you want and it won't hurt! You bled a little, which is normal, but it's stopped now."

"Oh." she said, not really knowing what to think.

Her hands went back to cleaning Mr. Phillips' crotch with the towel.

His cock was slimy with her juices, sperm and blood. She wrapped the towel around it and carefully wiped it off. She then cleaned the juices off his balls and thighs; and when she had it all done she too leaned down and kissed his limp cock with her small mouth. The cock, though no longer hard, jumped at the touch of her young lips, and Tina was pleased, knowing that she could make it do that.

"That's nice. Thank you, Tina. That felt good. Come on up here and lay down with me."

The little girl positioned herself next to the body of her grown-up lover, enjoying the comforting sensation of his hairy body next to hers. She snuggled up, her head on his shoulder and draped a leg across his crotch, feeling his cock stir under her thigh. Jim wrapped his arm that she was laying on around her and reached down to cup one cheek of her small butt in his hand.

"Tina, that was really great. Did you enjoy it?"

"Yeah. It was great!"

"Good. I'm glad you enjoyed it. You've learned a good lesson here today, sweetheart. Sometimes you are afraid to do things, things that maybe you've never tried before. That's okay. It's okay to be afraid once in a while, but that shouldn't stop you from trying something new. If you let your fears stop you every time, you could miss out on something great and never know it! You understand?"

"Uh huh. I was scared, but it did feel good...I mean...not right at first, but in the end I loved it."

"So the next time you're afraid, you'll go ahead and try new things?"

"Well...I guess...It's kinda hard, you know, like when you're scared."

"I know, sweetheart. But the fear is okay. It's okay to be afraid. Just go and do what it is that scares you, and maybe it won't be so bad. And the more things you try, the less afraid you'll be...And we still have a lot of things for you to try."


"We sure do. You've learned a lot in the last two days, but there's still a lot more. Things your friends never learned in their sex class! What do you say, sweetheart? You want to come back and visit me again?"

"YEAH! I really do."

"You want me to fuck you again?"

"Uh Huh"

"You want me to suck your pussy again?"

"Oh yeah!"

"You want to suck my cock and drink my cum so your breasts grow big?"


"ALL RIGHT, TINA! Believe me baby, I'm gonna fuck you and fuck you and fuck you! If you come back here on a regular basis, I'll fill your mouth so full of cum you'll never need to drink anything else!"

Tina giggled at his exaggerations, but was turned on by the promise of more sex to come.

"Hah, baby...You like the sound of that? Lots of cum for Little Tina?"

"Yeah...It sounds neat!"

"Good. Then you come back tomorrow, and we'll try something completely different! But before you go, why don't you give me a suck right now. I think I can cum again, only this time in your hot little mouth!"


The 11-year-old didn't need any encouragement. She got up and lay down on Jim Phillips' stomach. She picked up his half-hard cock with one hand and brought her mouth to the tip. She kissed it and looked at it; jumping and hardening in her small hand. Then she opened her mouth and let the head slip in. She felt Mr. Phillips' hand on the back of her head, slowly pushing her mouth down onto his stiffening prick. She didn't mind. She knew she could do it. She wanted to feel his cum squirt into her mouth. She wanted to taste the sour, white semen and swallow it. She wanted to prove that she could do it because it made her feel sexy.

"Try to suck on it, sweetheart, move your tongue around the head and then suck it."

Tina did, she tried to move her tongue around the head of the rapidly expanding cock, but her small tongue would not reach the top of the head. She had to satisfy herself with rubbing the underside of his cock with her tongue. She sucked on his cock and was gratified when it jumped and expanded still further in her mouth.

"Move your head up and down on it, baby, like your cunt was doing when I was fucking you. Fuck me with your mouth."

He pushed on her head to give her the tempo for sucking him off. Her hair brushed his lower abdomen. He reached out with one hand and fondled her little-girl bottom. 'Jesus, her ass is small,' he thought, cupping one of her globes in his hand. 'I wonder if I'll be able to fit into her ass when the time comes?' The image of his cock forcing its way into this 11-year-old's small bottom turned him on something fierce. His cock stiffened to its full hardness within her mouth, and he pushed her head down onto him with his other hand.

'Wow, I must really be doing a good job!' thought Tina. He really got hard in a hurry. She felt the pressure on the back of her head increase and she did her best to comply, jamming more of the erection into her mouth. Her lips were stretched tight on either side of the man's cock, but she still managed to move her tongue up and down on the underside of Mr. Phillips' penis, and maintain some suction. She felt his hand on her bottom, and was pleased that he liked her body enough to want to touch it.

Then she felt him probing her small anus with his index finger. 'Why does he want to touch me there?' she wondered. The pressure on her head increased again, and at the same time, so did the pressure of his finger on her small brown anus. 'He's got the wrong hole!' she thought, but couldn't remove her mouth from the throbbing cock to tell him. Mr. Phillips' cock was now fully hard, and pushing at the entrance to her throat. His hand held her hair in a grip and was pushing and pulling her face onto his cock. The strokes were getting faster and deeper.

Tina let go of his cock and cupped his balls instead, feeling them churn under the loose skin of his scrotum. His index finger was pushing harder at her anus, moving in a small circle, trying to force its way into the little girl. 'It feels...weird...I wish he'd stop,' she thought. Mr. Phillips pressed harder on her anus, and suddenly his finger entered the little girl's ass up to the second knuckle.

"MMMMmmpppphhhhhhh." was all the 11-year-old could get out, because he kept her head fucking his cock.

Her ass felt warm and tight; too tight! 'Man...I don't know. She might be too small to fuck there, yet. Oh...but I can't wait to TRY!' Again the image of the pre-teen on her hands and knees in front of him, crying out as he raped her anally, turned him on so much that he was ready to cum in her mouth.

'OWWW...He's got the wrong hole...! That hurt...a little. He's got his finger in my bottom...!'

Tina tried to jerk her head off the cock thrusting into her mouth, but she was held firm. She couldn't tell Mr. Phillips that he had his finger in her bottom instead of her cunny. She had to deal with the surging erection in her mouth now, because it seemed to expand yet again. Her jaws ached, and her lips were sore. She felt Mr. Phillips' belly go rigid underneath her. His cock jerked hard, and he pushed down on her head one last time, and held her there.

His spicy cum exploded from the tip of his penis, instantly filling the inside of her mouth with semen. His second explosion came right after the first, and overflowed her small mouth. It burst out her lips and slid down his cock to where her hand still cupped his pumping testicles. The little girl swallowed as fast as she could. She couldn't pull back to make more room in her mouth for the pumping load, because Mr. Phillips would not ease the pressure on the back of her head. All she could do was try to swallow as his load of semen shot into her mouth. Swallowing wasn't easy either with this large cock jerking at the back of her mouth. Tina did the best she could, but still a good portion escaped her tight lips and slid down to his scrotum and pubic hair.

The stream of cum subsided, and eventually Mr. Phillips' penis stopped jerking in the little girl's mouth. He let the pressure ease off her head and pulled his finger out of her ass.

Tina, to her credit, did not immediately take her mouth off his cock. Instead, she was fascinated by the way it felt getting softer in her mouth. It shrank in size until the head easily fit in her mouth. It continued to shrink and she was able to fit almost his whole penis in her mouth without having to open her throat. When his cock was totally flaccid in her mouth, she gave him one last suck and released it with a wet pop. She looked at it for a minute then rolled over to face her grown lover.

"Did I do it right? Was that good?"

"Yeah, honey, you're getting better. That was real nice."

"Good...Did you ahhhhh...know that you had your finger in the wrong hole...I put your finger in my bottom instead of my cunny."

"I know, Tina. It wasn't the wrong hole. I meant to put my finger up your cute little bottom."

"Really?" The 11-year-old was wide-eyed, leaning on the man's chest and staring at him in disbelief. "Why would you want to do that? I mean...That's gross!"

"That's funny. Just yesterday you thought it was gross when a man had an orgasm, but just now you sucked it into your mouth and swallowed most of it! Tina, you gotta learn that what you used to know ain't necessarily the truth!"

"Yeah...Okay...But, like...I mean...That's where, you know, poop comes out! Why would you want to touch that?"

"Because it's small and tight like your little pussy; tighter even. And because your ass is so pretty that I'd really like to fuck you there."

"IN MY BOTTOM!!!???"

"Yes, Tina, in your bottom. People do it all the time. It's not dirty if two people enjoy it, sweetheart, when are you going to learn that? In fact, it's the best way for a man to fuck a girl because she can't get pregnant that way!"

"But...I never thought...It's just...It's just weird. Do you really mean that men stick their penises into a girl's bottom?"

"Yeah, Tina, and I want to try doing it to you; but not today. Today, we've done enough. You gotta get home before your folks start to wonder where you've been. Come on...Get up...Let's get you dressed."

He helped the disbelieving girl get up off the bed and get dressed back into her Catholic school uniform. He stayed naked while she buttoned her white blouse and straightened her plaid skirt. When she was done she was, once more, the picture of innocence. No one looking at her would guess that this 11-year-old child was Jim Phillips' willing sex slut, versed in the art of deep throat and fucking; able to drink his cum and cram his eight inches up her hairless slit. No one!

As he led her to the back door to send her home, Jim Phillips reminded Little Tina of her main dilemma. "Remember, Tina. I like teaching you about sex, but you can't tell anyone. If you did, that video tape just might get copied and find its way to your folks."

"I won't tell anyone. Besides...I really like what we've done so far. And my folks would really be pissed if they ever found out, so I'm sure not going to let them know. It's kinda neat to have a big secret!"

"That's right, baby. It's our secret."

"Uhhhh...Did you film us today? I mean, did you film us, you know...fucking?"

"I sure did, Tina. I think you're so sexy that I want to see more of you, live and on tape."

"Well...I guess it's long as no one finds out...I guess."

"Don't worry, sweetheart, no one is gonna see those tapes unless I know they can keep a secret too. Now, off you go." He held the back door open for her.

"Do you want me to come back tomorrow?"

"Uh...yeah...Do you want to?"


"Okay, then I'll see you tomorrow, Tina. See you then."

"Bye," said the little girl and she then skipped out of sight around the corner of his house, a small knowing smile on her face.

"Bye, sweetheart," Jim Phillips said more to himself than anyone else. He turned away from the door and walked to his office. He had some calls to make before tomorrow.

Chapter Ten

The next day at Our Lady of Grace Elementary school, little Tina West had trouble paying attention in her science class. She was tired because she had not gotten a very good sleep the night before. After Mr. Phillips had taken her virginity and made her swallow his load of hot cum, the youngster had gone home and had dinner with her folks. Although her Mom and Dad had gotten into a fight, there was nothing unusual about that; that wasn't what kept her up during the night. Instead it was her newfound friend, masturbation.

Tina had spent the night jerking herself to exhaustion. Her orgasms were nice, and made her tingle all over. They weren't as good as when Mr. Phillips jerked her off, or when he had fucked her, but they were still great, and she had spent the night in her room alternately jerking off and dozing while her parents fought down the hall. She had had to be quiet when she came because she shared her room with her little sister, 9-year-old Mary. It had been frustrating not to be able to fully enjoy her self-induced orgasms, but it had been nice all the same. By now Little Tina was orgasm addicted, and happy about it.

Spending time in school seemed like a waste. She couldn't wait for the day to end so she could have her secret rendezvous with Mr. Phillips - - and his giant cock! When the bell rang at the end of the day, the young girl was out of the school like a shot. She made her way through the neighborhood until she was once again at his back door. She looked around to be sure no one could see her, and then knocked.

In a few seconds, Jim Phillips answered.

"Hello, Tina. How are you today?" he asked, ushering her in.

"Tired. I masturbated a lot last night! It know, it felt great! I just wanted to thank you for teaching me that."

"Oh, honey. That's nice of you! You're really welcome. I've still got a lot of things to teach you, if you want to learn?"

Tina wanted it all now and since she'd been thinking about it all day, didn't hesitate to say so, "Yeah...I'd love to try everything."

"That's good to know, sweetheart."

He said this just as they turned the corner into his living room. There, watching TV were four men Tina didn't know. She was surprised when she turned the corner and saw them, and she went into total shock when she realized that the now muted picture on the screen was of her getting fucked by Mr. Phillips.

"Guys, this is Tina, that special friend I was telling you about. Tina, these are some real close friends of mine. This is Dave, and that's John; this is Tom, and this is Howard. We've just been watching you on tape, sweetheart."

Tina was too stunned to say anything. She didn't expect anyone else to ever know about what she and Jim Phillips were doing together. Suddenly, here were four men who not only knew, but had seen it happening.

The one called Dave, an older man with some gray in his hair, walked up to Tina and said, "That's right, Tina. We've been watching how sexy you are. You're one attractive little girl, did you know that?"

"Yeah, Tina!" the one called John said. He was a really large man with a build like Arnold Schwartzenegger. "Watching you cum really turned me on. You've got more sex power than most grown women!"

"I...uhh..." Tina didn't know what to say or think. She didn't know what to make of these men talking to her about how sexy she was. At 11 years of age, Tina didn't have any experience with dealing with boys, let alone men, let alone men who were complementing her on how sexy she was; a fact that she thought was secret.

"Uhh...Thanks...I guess..." Her family training had taken over; she'd always been taught to acknowledge a complement with a thank you. She just wasn't sure she wanted the compliment from these strangers.

"Sorry about the surprise, Tina," Jim Phillips said. "These guys just happened to stop by, and, well, they're really good friends of mine. We've known each other since school! And, well, I told them I had this special friend and they really wanted to hear all about it. It's okay...we can trust them, right guys?"

"Oh Yeah!"


"Hey look, Tina. We share everything and none of us has ever given up a secret on the others yet!" This last from one called Howard. He was large, but heavy, not muscular like John.

"So you see, it's okay, honey. Ain't no one ever going to find out about what you do here."

"Uhh...O...Okay..." She looked around at the men and they all nodded when she said, "Okay."

It was like she'd entered a club, but didn't know the rules.

"Good. Now look, as long as you're here, well, I told these guys how good looking your body is, and I showed them the pictures, but I know they'd really like to see you…you know…naked, right now. What do you say, why don't you take your clothes off for us...Do a little strip tease?"

Tina was shaking her head no. "No...I can't...I mean...not in front of everyone and all...No...Please...I don't want to..."

"Hey, Tina. It's okay." This from Howard. "We're all friends here!"

"No...I can't."

She started to turn and walk back to the door to leave, but Jim Phillips put a hand on her shoulder, leaned down to her ear, and whispered, "Hey...hold on. Look, we don't want you to do anything you don't want to do, but you came here wanting to do things, and all they want is to see you naked. That's not so much to ask, and besides, these guys can keep a secret and all, but there are still ways for your parents to find out about how sexy their little girl is, you know...And you don't want that do you?"

Tina stopped dead in her tracks. She sure didn't want her parents seeing the tape of her sucking cock. The consequences of that were unthinkable. Maybe...Maybe it would be okay just to let these guys see her and then she could go home. Maybe...oh hell, she didn't have any choice and she knew it. She turned around.

"Uhh...I guess..."



"Thanks, Tina. Hey, this will be great, you can do a little dance for us right here in the living room, okay? Come on...We'll all sit around in a circle and you can dance for us. Sound okay, guys?"

"Hey, great"

"All right with me."

The one called John took Tina's hand and led her back to the middle of the living room. He then sat down on the rug at her feet. The four men crowded around her and sat down too, making a small circle on the carpet with her standing in the middle.

She just stood there for a minute, not knowing what to do, when Jim Phillips suggested, "Why don't you take off your blouse, honey?"

She couldn't do anything else, so she started to comply. One by one she undid the buttons of her white blouse until it hung loose on her, and then she pulled it up out of her skirt and slipped it off her slender shoulders. One of the men reached out for it and she handed it to him. He held it to his face and breathed in.

"MMMMMMmmmmm. even smell good. Put your hands on your hips. Let's see what you got."

Tina did as she was told; knowing that she didn't "GOT" anything. The rapt looks on the men in front of her didn't change though. They were studying her up and down, even her completely flat chest.

A voice behind her said, "Turn around, honey," and she did, letting everyone see that she had no breasts to speak of.

"Now the skirt, honey."

Tina reached for the side of her skirt, and pulled the zipper down. She then let the skirt fall to the floor. Again, one of the men reached out for her stripped off article of clothing as she stepped out of it. She now stood before the men in her socks, saddle shoes and white panties. She did a slow turn, not knowing what to do with her arms. She felt really uncomfortable standing here almost naked in front of these men, knowing that in just a moment more, she was going to be completely naked.

"Bend over, Tina. I want to see that cute ass of yours in those panties." This from John, the muscle man.

Tina complied; bending down until her hands touched the floor. She stayed like that; letting the men behind her look at her bottom in her panties. The thought crossed her mind that she hoped they were clean back there. Suddenly, a hand touched her bottom, and she snapped up to standing position.

"Hey, sorry I startled you!" This was Howard. "It looked so nice, I just had to touch. That's okay, right?"

"Uhhh...I guess so..."

"Hey, Tina. A little touching isn't going to hurt, right?" This from Jim Phillips.

"I uh. I guess not..."

"Right...Come on...I thought you were going to trust me. Come on, repeat after me. Touching is okay. Go on...say it."

"Uhhh...Touching is uhh...okay."

"Good girl...Hey, you heard her. Go ahead and touch."

Like one, the men rose and lowered onto their knees, surrounding the 11-year-old girl who was standing in her white cotton panties. They all reached out and Tina suddenly had 10 large hands roaming all over her slender body. One set cupped her bottom, kneading her small round cheeks through her cotton panties. Another set ran between her thighs and probed her small pussy through her cotton panties. A third ran its fingers through her fine hair and stroked her face and neck. Another ran the flat of his hands over the flat of her chest. There were appreciative comments from all sides.

"Nice little body, Tina."

"You've got the smoothest skin, little lady."

"Um Um, this feels nice." The rub down felt good to the little girl, and she was beginning to enjoy it, letting herself lean into the grip of these adults.

"Hey, let's get her panties off."

Suddenly, Tina felt strong hands grip her arms and legs. She was laid down on the carpet and two pairs of hands gripped the waistband of her panties. Before she knew what happened, they were pulled down and off. Someone removed her shoes. Her legs were pulled from either side, opening her pre-teen pussy to view. Instantly a set of hands was on her small cunt, spreading the lips, and probing her pink inner reaches.

"Hey, this is one NICE looking pussy!"

"Hey wait...Please...don't..." Tina said, but Jim Phillips was suddenly looming over her face.

She looked up at him, her eyes pleading, but he said, "Relax, Tina. We're all gonna have a good time here. A little party, right guys?"


"You bet."

"Party Hardy!"

"So just relax, sweetheart..." he said.

Tina didn't know what to say. One by one each of the men got up while at least three men held her down to the floor and continued to fondle her. The men got undressed, and as she looked around, Tina saw more cocks than most girls see in a year. Finally, the 11-year-old was surrounded and held down by five naked adult men. They were all stroking her small body, and some were stroking their large cocks. Tina didn't know what was going to happen next, but then, she didn't have to.

"Here, baby. Suck this." One of the men leaned close to her face, his hot cock touching her lips. He grabbed the back of her head and pushed his cock at her closed mouth. He pushed so hard that Tina thought she was going to bruise her lips; still she didn't open her mouth. She didn't want to suck anyone. She wanted to leave.

A finger was shoved into her pussy part way, and Tina gasped. When her mouth opened, it was quickly filled with hard cock. "Yeah, baby...Suck that cock good and I'll give you a nice load of hot sauce!"

Tina looked up at the man invading her mouth; it was Howard, the fat one. The finger in her cunny moved around, and probed slightly deeper, while another rubbed her clit. Tina couldn't move because there were two men on either side of her, each with a wrist and ankle, holding her down and spreading her out. 'Oh God, what have I gotten myself into!!??,' she thought. But even as the thought crossed her mind, the pleasure started in her clit. 'No...No...I don't want this to feel good.' But she couldn't help it. Her little clit was being expertly massaged by one of the men and Tina knew that if he didn't stop, she'd cum eventually. She didn't want to cum for these men, didn't want them to see her enjoy what they were doing. She was afraid that if they saw her enjoy sex, they'd do...well, she didn't know and she didn't want to find out.

"That's it, baby...Good girl...Suck that boner...Ummm..." Howard was enjoying himself. This little girl's mouth felt so nice on his cock. He wasn't trying to force his way into her least, not yet. He just wanted to shut her up while his partners worked on getting her turned on and wet. Then the real party would begin. Still, he had the nicest job of the group. Luck of the toss!!

He looked at the other guys. John and Jim were holding the little girl's arms and legs, keeping her spread and immobile while Tom and Dave worked on her cunt. And man, what a nice little cunt it was. No hair, pouty lips, pink insides and a nice little clit at the top. Jim had told them that this hot little number was easy to bring off. A couple of minutes under Tom's fingers and she'd be cumming like a freight train. Then they'd all fuck her in every way they could think of. This was one little 11-year-old that was going get enough cock today...that was for sure!

'No...No...I don't want it to feel good...No...I don't want to cum...Noooooooooooo,' Tina was thinking, but in spite of her best efforts to ignore her tortured clit, she could feel that now familiar sensation rising in her belly, that feeling that would eventually engulf her whole body in pleasure. She was going to cum for these men. And she knew it was going to be a big one. There was something wicked in letting five grown men see her naked pre-teen body; to be held down and exposed against her will; to know that these grown mean really were turned on by the sight of her flat-chested, hairless body. It made her feel sexy, and to Tina this was a new and wonderful feeling. It was cumming. She could feel it.

At first the little girl struggled, vainly, but as Tom worked her little clit back and forth all the men could see that she was getting more and more turned on. Howard held her mouth on his cock so that she couldn't talk, but even so, her moans of fear had started to turn into moans of pleasure. All five men were naked now, and all had hard-ons, watching little Tina getting ready to cum. Her arms and legs started to shake in the grip of the men on each side of her. Her eyes were closed, and her hips started to buck.

Dave slid his finger into her small, hairless cunt. It slid in easily because of her natural lubricants. He massaged the inside of her cunt, causing Tina to buck her hips even more.

Tom never let up on the 11-year-old's clit. He increased the pressure and increased the speed of his strokes.

Suddenly, the little girl jerked hard. She was screaming, but it came out as a muffled "MMMMPPPPPPHHHH" around Howard's cock. Her arms and legs pulled in toward her body with such strength that the two men on each side almost lost their balance. They all watched as Tina's chest flushed red, and her belly spasmed around Dave's finger. She almost appeared to be in convulsions, but the men knew better.

"God DAMN!! This kid is HOT! Look at her go!"

"Hey, I told you. When this one cums, she cums full tilt!"

"Guys, you should feel her cunt." This from Dave who watched her vagina pulse where his finger entered her. "Does she ever get tight in here!"

"Hey man, I can't wait to fuck this one!"

"I second that motion."

Tina didn't hear a word. She was blind to everything except the waves of pleasure emanating from her young pussy. Her own masturbation couldn't begin to compare to what she was feeling now! If this was what sex was all about then she wanted as much of it as she could get! She didn't care that a stranger had his hard cock in her mouth; she didn't care that another had a finger up her previously virgin cunny; she didn't care that five men were about to fuck her; all she wanted was more of this kind of pleasure.

Her orgasm subsided, and Howard let her head drop back to the carpeted floor. Tina just lay there panting, not noticing the men shifting position around her. She felt her legs being spread wide, and realized that Tom was now looming over her.

"Okay, honey, I'm gonna fuck you now. Here it comes," and without further introduction he pushed the head of his cock into her pre-teen cunt.

"Uh," was all Tina could say, still not recovered from the orgasm that had left her drained and helpless.

She felt his cock stretching her pussy-lips, moving up inside her body; felt his pubic bone hit hers; felt his coarse hair rub against her hairless mound. It felt good, and Tina moaned with the sensation.

"Like it, baby? Like that cock, hah little girl? Oh, yeah...Here we go..." and with that he started to fuck Tina hard, pounding on her little body, bouncing her head with each thrust.

Tina felt something hot on her cheek and turned her head to see what it was. There was the man John, leaning over her head, aiming his huge cock at her mouth.

"Here, baby. Take this too."

He shoved his cock at her lips, and Tina let them part, allowing the spongy head to be shoved into her face. John's cock was so large that only the head could fit past her lips. No matter how she tried to open her mouth wider, or how hard he pushed, the rest simply could not fit into the 11-year-old's mouth. John didn't seem to mind. He proceeded to fuck her face with what he could get in.

"Man, look at that little bitch go!"

"Yeah, she sure loves hard cock!"

Tina was being overwhelmed, with two cocks in her pre-teen body, she felt totally stuffed at both ends. The man fucking her hairless cunt was moaning to himself, obviously ready to blow his hot load into her. John was pumping her face faster, his muscular body pistoning up and down right over her face, like he was doing push-ups over her. Two other men grabbed both her hands and she found each hand holding a hard cock. Each hand clamped her little hand down over a hot penis, and used her hand to jack them off. Little Tina now was servicing four cocks at the same time, and she was starting to like it. Her mouth hurt because it was too small to take the large penis being stuffed there, but her vagina felt good as Tom fucked her with long slow strokes, his initial pounding having been toned down so John could get in her mouth.

"Fuck her man. Shoot her full, dude…"

"Oh fuck...I'm gonna blow...I'm gonna blow in her mouth...Here baby...oh MAN! Here baby...Eat my cum, baby...Here you GO, BABY! DRINK MY CUM...OH...NOW! NOW, BABY! DRINK MY CUM!!!"

John's cock expanded inside the little girl's mouth. He shoved hard and rammed the tip of his cock up to her small throat. He grabbed his cock and jerked it off in the 6th grader's mouth. He felt his load shooting out, filling the little girl's mouth and dripping out the sides; white rivulets of cum flowing down both sides of the youngster's face and getting into her hair.

John bellowed like a bull as he pumped more and more jism into Tina's mouth. The youngster couldn't get away from the onslaught of semen being pumped into her mouth. Her head was pressed into the floor because John was letting most of his weight rest on the huge member that penetrated her mouth.

The girl couldn't breathe; couldn't swallow; couldn't do anything but hope she didn't black out before this man was through fucking her mouth. Sperm was sliding down her throat, down her face; some was even being forced up her nose! It was hot and salty and sticky. And it made Tina feel special, in a small way, that she was the one getting it.

Finally, John lifted his weight off the pre-teenager's face and pulled his cock out of her mouth. Tina gasped for breath as soon as his wang popped clear of her mouth. It was obvious that she'd not been able to breathe. John grabbed his cock and stroked it over the gasping little girl, rubbing it on her lips and cheeks, stroking the last bits of ropy white cum onto her pretty young face.

"Here, little girl, this'll make you even prettier. Hot cum is good for little girls, right guys?"

"Oh, yeah!"

"You bet!"

"I gotta load for you, sweetheart!"

John jerked his cock in her face a little longer, and then lifted himself up. In an instant, Dave had taken his place, his hard cock much skinnier than John's huge pecker, but just as long. Without preamble he grabbed the back of her head and shoved his cock into little Tina's still gasping mouth. "Suck me good, baby, and maybe I won't fuck you in the ass."

He yanked on her head hard, and his erection was instantly at the back of her mouth, forcing its way into her throat. He pulled on her head with both hands, thrusting with his hips at the same time, determined to stuff his full length into the little 6th grader's mouth. He shoved a few times and decided the angle was wrong.

"Hey, Howard, grab that cushion off the couch...Yeah, that one...Here. Lift her up and put it under her...No further down. Yeah...That's perfect."

Tina was lifted for a moment off the floor and then put back down, only this time, her hips and back were on the cushion from the couch, but her head fell back unsupported. For Dave, this put her mouth right in line with her throat, and he quickly move around so that his thighs were on either side of the dazed youngster's head. He pushed her forehead down with one hand so that Tina found herself gazing at his balls.

"Okay, baby...Open up now. I'm going to throat fuck you!"

Tina didn't obey right away, so he reached down with one hand and pressed on her throat. The pain of his thumb pressing on her vocal cords made her open her mouth soon enough.

"That's it, little girl. You do what you're told or things get rough. We can make you feel good, but first you gotta make us feel good." And with that he again shoved his erection into her pretty face. This time, instead of stopping at the entrance of her throat, he shoved it hard, pushing her head back until it was straight upside down, the back of her head jammed against the sofa cushion. With a painful pop, his cock humped past the entrance to her throat and didn't stop until his pubic hair pressed against her young lips.

'GOD, HELP ME...HE'S GOING TO KILL ME!' was all Tina could think. She couldn't breathe because, not only was her glottis blocked, but his balls hung loosely down, covering her nose, allowing no air to get in. The fact that Tom was still fucking her so hard made her body bounce against the invading member. The little girl was being bounced between two hard cocks, her slender body, barely able to accommodate the invading members.

"Fuck her, Tom! Oh man, I don't even have to move. You're doing it for me!" Dave said, feeling the way the girl's throat moved up and down his cock whenever Tom fucked into her. He had a perfect view of Dave's cock sliding in and out of the 11-year-old's hairless cunt. He could see the way her lips puckered in and out with the motion of his fucking. The sight was a total turn-on for him. That and then feeling little Tina begin to gag on his cock made him start rocking his penis in and out of her throat.

'Thank you, God!' thought Tina as Dave started to fuck her mouth. Now that his cock was moving she had small chances to breathe between thrusts of his cock. The man fucking her was really pounding on her. His swollen cock felt huge inside her small vagina as it pushed deep into her, shoving its way up to her cervix on each thrust. Tina felt her little body being rammed back and forth between two giant cocks. Each time her pussy was rammed, her young body was pushed up to meet the down stroke of the cock now fucking her mouth. As the pole in her cunt found its deepest penetration, the prick in her mouth was also at its deepest point. Tina was fully impaled. She wondered how long this would go on.

She didn't have to wonder long. All these men had been turned on watching Tina on video, long before she arrived, and now, actually fucking this tiny 6th grader was too much for them to last long. Tom, fucking her tender snatch, began to pant and declare that he was ready to cum.

"Yeah, do it Tom. Let's blow a load into this little bitch from both ends!" said Dave in encouragement.

Both men looked down at the 11-year-old helplessly skewered between their cocks; her small body still held open by Howard and John on either side. Both could see the outline of Dave's cock as it filled her throat. Both could see the bulge in her lower abdomen with each thrust of Tom's organ. Both were ready to flood her with hot jism, and both did.



Both organs expanded in the little girl. Both men shoved themselves deep into the 11-year-old's mouth and cunt. Both men began to pump their ropy offerings into their pre-teen slut. Dave had shoved his cock deep down Tina's throat, and the little girl gagged on the blasts of spicy jism. Tom's load shot deep into the child, filling her small cunt and oozing out all sides. Each man roared with pleasure at shooting their large loads into a young, innocent girl. These men liked to fuck little girls, and Little Tina was one of the youngest in a while.

Their bodies jerking, and twitching, both men spent themselves in Tina, and slowly began to ease the pressure on both ends of the little girl. Tom pulled his cock out first, and fell backwards, away from her, looking down at his cum-covered cock and her small, wet pussy; still not believing that this child could fit his immense wang into her tight hairless box. Then Dave pulled his cock out of Tina's face. It was still hard, but the man was totally spent. He too fell backwards on the floor panting.

As the men on each side let go of the her, Little Tina immediately rolled on her side, coughing and gagging, trying to clear her throat of the load of hot sperm that had been shot there, and trying to catch her breath, now that she could finally breathe again. Tears were in her eyes as she tried to recover from the pain and fright of the double fucking she'd just had. She coughed up some cum and it hung on her lips. Most of it she swallowed. The taste was sour, spicy, and Tina was getting very familiar with it. She even sort of liked it, but not the way it was just delivered. She could feel the dampness on her cunny and bottom as the load of cum delivered there oozed out and coated her entire hairless crotch.

She cried to herself, frightened of what had just happened, and scared of what might happen next.

Chapter Eleven

When she'd finally managed to catch her breath and swallow all the sperm left in her mouth, Little Tina looked up - - only to see a video camera with Mr. Phillips behind it, staring her right in the face.

"How'd you like that nice double fuck, huh Tina?" he said behind the camera. "Do you like having two cocks in you at once, baby?"

"It hurt."

"What hurt, sweetheart?"

"It hurt when he pushed it in my mouth! It hurt my throat."

"Oh, come on, baby. You've had cock in your throat before, right. It didn't hurt then, right. Here. Reach up and feel your throat right now. Go on...Do it...Now...tell me where it hurts. Show me where your throat hurts."

Tina put a hand on her throat, but for the life of her could not pinpoint where her throat hurt. In fact, it didn't really hurt at all. Tina just looked up at the camera and didn't say anything.

"It didn't really hurt at all, did it? You just got scared, right. You got scared because it was your first double fuck and you didn't know what was happening, right baby?"

"I...I guess so..." she said, still sniffling, trying to sort out her feelings. "I was scared!"

"I'm sorry, sweetheart. We didn't mean to scare you, did we guys?"

"No way!"


"Hey, we're sorry, Tina."

"We wanted to double fuck you, and you gotta admit you like to fuck right?"

"Well...yeah," she replied in a small voice.

"And you like to suck cock, right?"

"It's okay, I guess..."

"So okay then; now you did both at the same time."

"But you forced me...I didn't like it."

"Okay, baby. We're sorry. We won't force you to do that again. But hey, you came, remember? Just before we fucked you! How was that?"

"I...It was...nice"

"NICE!? Nice...Tina, you were going crazy! We got it on film if you want to see it! You're one hot little girl, baby, and we all really like hot little girls. I guess you just turned us on so much. Hey, I got an idea. Why don't us guys all turn you on, and make you cum again. Sound like a good idea?"

To Tina, doing anything that would make her have an orgasm was a good idea. She nodded her head.

"All right. Here...Get up. Since Dave did it to you, you can do it to him! Fuck his face with that nice little cunt of yours."

They helped Tina get up and walked her over to where Dave still lay on the floor. They guided her over him, and had her kneel down onto his face, her hairless cunt mashing down into his mouth.

"Okay, Dave, you gotta make it up to little Tina here. You fucked her mouth, now she fucks yours...Only fair!"

Dave couldn't agree more, and nodded his head to show it. In an instant his mouth was open, and his tongue snaked out and began licking the 11-year-old's tiny snatch from top to bottom. Sperm still dripped from her small vagina, but Dave didn't mind that since he liked young boys as much as young girls and had drunk his share of cum in his time. But having his face humped by a hot little, hairless pussy was one of his favorite turn-ons. So he lapped at her, paying particular attention to the clit swelling at the top of her hairless slot.

Tina's body reacted instantly to the feel of Dave's rough tongue on her clit. A wave of pleasure emanated from her cunny and made her whole body tingle. The deep fucking of her throat and her rough treatment were instantly forgotten. She felt hands all over her body, particularly on her ass. She felt a finger hit her small anus and begin to massage the small hole, not penetrating, just massaging. It sent more tingles through her small body. Her hips began to gyrate, moving her pussy around on Dave's mouth. She let her knees spread more, increasing the pressure on the man's face and mouth.

'Yeah...I can push down as hard as I want 'cause he did it to me!' she thought, and again pushed down on Dave's mouth. Tina wanted to hump Dave as hard as he had humped her. She didn't know that that would simply be a turn-on for the man she was humping. The youngster leaned forward, putting her hands to the floor and lining her clit up perfectly with the man's mouth. She then began to hump him as hard as she could; hitting the underside of his nose with her bald pubic bone. His tongue danced on and around her clit, and his lips were mashed against her hairless lips. Dave reached up and grabbed her humping ass to pull even harder on the little girl. His erection was rapidly re-inflating.

Little Tina's eyes were closed. She was really enjoying the sensation of being in control, of being able to hump this grown man as hard as she wanted, when something bumped her face. She opened her eyes and saw a cock being stroked just and inch in front of her open mouth. She looked up; never stopping her hips, and saw Jim Phillips kneeling in front of her masturbating in her face. "It's yours if you want it, Tina. You're in control now. You can suck it if you want, baby, but you don't have to."

'Oh wow!' she thought, I really am in control! She kept humping her hips into Dave, but her eyes were fixed on the purplish swollen erection being stroked in her face. It looked so big. She knew that Jim Phillips hadn't cum yet. 'He must really be turned on,' she thought. And she knew that it was HER that had turned him on. Her cunt was on fire. She knew that she'd be cumming soon.

She leaned her face closer to the penis in front of her. She let the head rub against her cheek, felt the heat coming from the large cock. Pre-cum fluid was oozing from the tip, and Tina let this be rubbed on her face. She brought her mouth up to the tip of his cock and let her tongue push out to taste the oozing fluid. The taste was warm, and salty, and familiar.

Jim kept stroking his cock in the 11-year-old's face, watching her tease him. He wanted to shove it into her mouth and make her swallow his hot load, but it was more important now that Tina feel in control, that she understand what it felt like to want to fuck someone hard, like Dave and Tom had fucked her. And it looked like she was taking to this little lesson quite well.

She was humping Dave with her hips, as hard as she could. Jim knew that Dave was going to have some bruised lips when this was over, but he also knew that Dave loved it. So he kept stroking his cock into Tina's face, being careful not to thrust forward.

He felt her lips around the end of his swollen erection, and felt her tongue probing the small hole in the end. He carefully kept his hand away from her head so she'd feel no pressure to go further, but watching her get fucked, and watching her fuck Dave had turned him on enough that he knew either way, he was going to blow a large load into her mouth or onto her face. It didn't really matter which.

Tina was close to cumming. Her cunt juice was flowing into Dave's mouth and already, pre-orgasm contractions were starting. The 11-year-old girl loved the feeling of fucking Dave's mouth, and the feeling of her lips on the tip of Jim's cock. It felt good to know that Mr. Phillips wasn't going to ram his cock into her mouth. It felt good to be in control. She let more of his hot penis slip into her mouth. The head of his penis slid easily into her mouth, and she let it sit there, oozing fluid into her mouth. She didn't suck; just letting her tongue glide around the tip lazily. It felt good in her mouth, but it was all getting to be too much.

"Tina...I'm gonna...cum, baby..." she heard Mr. Phillips say. "Do you want it in your mouth?"

Tina was just about ready to cum herself, and all she did was nod her head and moan, "UMMM UMMM," around his prick. She wanted to feel him cum in her mouth; to feel it blast out from his cock into her mouth and not her throat. She wanted to taste his cum, and know that she was the one who made it happen.

"Oh...yeah...TINA! I'M CUMMMMMMMIIINNNNGGG," and his cock began to explode in her mouth.

And that did it! Tina moaned loudly, and her own orgasm took off. Jets of white cum shot into her mouth, but the little girl was in her own convulsions. Her body whipped back and forth on Dave's face; her clitoris mashed down hard, and her pussy spasmed on him, forcing more of her young juices out to coat his face. She never let go of Mr. Phillips' cock, as it filled her mouth with cum. She thought to swallow some of it, but most just leaked out around her lips and down her chin to fall on the floor.

"UMMMMM UMMMM UMMMMM UMMMMMM," she moaned, accepting Mr. Phillips' love gift as she hunched her small pussy on the other man's face.

Slowly...slowly, Tina's orgasm subsided. Mr. Phillips' cock had stopped jetting semen into her mouth at some point, but Tina didn't know when that was. She let the organ fall from her mouth. "Ohhhhh godddddd..." was all she could say. The little pre-teen was spent.

On her hands and knees, she let her head fall down and her weight collapse on the face of the man under her tired pussy. Finally, she rolled off Dave and fell on the floor, totally relaxed.

"Way to go, TINA!"

"How was that, sweetheart?"

"Man, Tina, can you ever hump!" This from Dave, as he rolled on his side and reached out to stroke her young body.

"Hey, Jim...She really drained you, huh?"

The youngster looked around and saw Jim Phillips lying on the couch a step or two away. The look on his face was total satisfaction. He looked at her. "Tina, that was fantastic. Thanks for taking my cock! I really needed to cum. How about you...Did you enjoy that?"

"Yeah..." she sighed, languidly. "That felt great!"

She lay on the floor surrounded by naked grown men, and realized that she loved sex. She thought that it would be great to come here every day to suck and fuck and hump and cum!! 'Oh man...those other girls don't know what they are missing!' she thought.

The whole naked group lay around for a few minutes, relaxing, all spent except for Howard, who'd not yet had his first orgasm. For once, the video camera was off and ignored. It had been passed around from person to person during their little orgy and all the action had been captured on film, but right now, no one wanted to deal with it.

After about five minutes, the doorbell rang. Jim got up and grabbed a robe off the back of the couch to go and see what it was. They heard the door open, and some muttered voices. The door closed, and Jim returned to the living room, but he wasn't alone. Following after him was young David Wallace, the boy Tina had been playing "Doctor" with when this whole thing had started. His eyes scanned the room and landed on the slim form of Tina lying naked on the floor.

"Hi, David," said Tom. The other men greeted the young boy too. It was obvious to her that they all knew each other.

"Tina, you know David, right! Say Hi."

Tina who didn't mind lying naked in the middle of a bunch of strangers was suddenly embarrassed to be seen like that by someone she knew. After a short hesitation she said, "Uhh…Hi." There was nothing to cover up with, all her clothes having disappeared. Tina didn't know what to do.

"Uh...Hi, Tina," said David.

"David came over to join in the party. David likes sex as much as you do, Tina. Here, watch, we'll show you. Strip off your clothes David. Join the fun."

Tina watched as David obeyed Mr. Phillips and stripped off his clothes. His 14-year-old body was slender, but well-muscled. His pubic hair was light, and not fully grown. He had no hair on his chest yet, and his skin was smooth and pale. When he was done stripping off his clothes he stood up and faced Tina. She could see that his cock was already hard. It was much skinnier than the men around her, and it bobbed up and down, jerking to the rhythm of his heartbeat.

"Come here, David," said John, the large muscular man sitting in an easy chair, his legs splayed wide and his cock hanging limply between them. David walked over and stood in front of the man, who reached up and took hold of the youngster's wrist, pulling the 14-year-old to his knees between his spread legs. He then reached up and put a hand on the back of the boy's head, pulling him downward until his face touched his limp cock. "Suck me, David. Suck me off."

And David did! He reached up and took the limp prick in one hand; guiding the tip into his mouth as he began to suck on the man!

Tina's eyes almost popped out of her head. She had never heard of homosexuality or bi-sexuality. All she knew was that boys and girls did it with each other.

Jim Phillips eased up next to her, putting his mouth to her ear and whispering, "What do you think of that, Tina?"

Tina whispered back, "He's not supposed to do that."

"Why not?"

"He's a boy!"


"I...I don't know. They're not supposed it with another boy."

"Tina, I told you, you have a lot to learn. You've done so much, and learned so much, but there's still a lot more. Hey, little girls aren't supposed to do it with grown-ups, but you do! Right! Little girls aren't supposed to know how to fuck and suck, but you do. So why aren't they supposed to enjoy sex with each other?"

"I don't know. They're both boys."

"When it comes to sex, it doesn't really matter does it? - - Unless you want to make babies! - - You just do what feels good. And from the size of John's cock right now, I bet David is making him feel real good!"

It was true. John's cock had gotten completely erect in David's mouth. David was no stranger to cock sucking and was stroking his hand up and down the erect penis in time to the movement of his head. John had a hand on both sides of David's head, and was setting the pace.

Tom had gotten up off the floor and moved over behind young David, reaching between his legs and stroking his bobbing cock. Tom's own erection waved obscenely between his legs as he manipulated the 14-year-old boy. He turned around to Howard and said, "Hey, Howie...Throw me the K-Y, will you?"

Howard grabbed a tube of something off the side table and tossed it to Tom, who opened it and squeezed the lubricant into the palm of his hand. He then stroked his hand up and down on his cock until it glistened. Then he rubbed his hand up and down within the crack of the 9th grader's ass. When he was satisfied that all the parts were sufficiently lubed, he took his cock and guided it to the crack of young David's butt.

Tina turned to Jim Phillips and the whispered conversation started again, "What's he doing?"

"He's gonna fuck David, sweetheart."

"You his bottom?"

"Yup. That's exactly what I mean. Remember I said that you could fuck in your bottom? So can anybody! Watch..."

It took Tom a couple of seconds to get his cock lined up with the boys anus, but eventually he started pressing the head into the boy's brown opening. The cockhead popped in and David's head gave a jerk upward, but John continued to hold him down on his cock, pulling the boy's mouth even further down onto this cock. A moan escaped from the boy as Tom slowly pushed the rest of his cock into the tight rectum of the 9th grade boy bent over before him.

Tina couldn't tell if David was moaning in pain or pleasure. She watched as Tom humped and John fucked her friend in the mouth. She realized that just a short time ago it had been her who had two cocks in her, and that it must have looked something like this. Two grown men, holding onto the body of a much younger child, each thrusting their distended penises into an orifice; each looking to ejaculate into a younger mouth or ass.

Tina saw the looks of pleasure on the men as they humped David. It turned her on. Without knowing it, her hand reached down and slowly rubbed her own hairless pussy. Jim Phillips next to her was stroking her with one hand while his cock grew.

"Oh, man...I'm gonna pop, David...Right in your mouth, boy. Oh...Oh...YEAH...HERE IT COMES, BOY...OH FUCK...! EAT IT!! EAT IT! YYAAAAAAAHHHHHHHH."

Tina saw John pull down hard on David's head. She saw his body convulse and his balls churn as they pumped young David full of hot cum. She knew what David was feeling; knew what he was tasting. And it turned her on. She saw cum leaking from David's mouth and knew that he couldn't swallow with a prick in his mouth any better than she could.

"OH FUCK, DAVID...ME TOO...ME...UHHH...TOOOOOOOOOO AAAAHHHHHHHH" And Tom began to spray the inside of David's rectum with cum. He pulled on the boys hips, and bent down over him, his butt clenching and unclenching with each shot of sperm into the 14-year-old's ass.

For his part, David couldn't do much except take what was shooting into him from both ends. He moaned a little and both men thrust into each end of his body. Tina understood what he felt, or at least thought she did.

Finally, both men let go of the 14-year-old boy, and their limp pricks came out of each end of his body. David was breathing hard and he rested his head in John's crotch until he had recovered his breath. Finally, he looked up at Jim Phillips as if to say, what do you want me to do next?

Chapter Twelve

"Come over here, David..." Mr. Phillips said, motioning with his hand. David crawled across the floor to Mr. Phillips, next to Tina. The young girl was still a little embarrassed to be naked in front of a boy she knew, but the scene that had just played out in front of her had lessened that considerably. "David, would you like to fuck Tina?"

"Yeah, you bet!" he said, looking at the 11-year-old's slender body.

"Tina, would you like to fuck David?"

"Uh...I don't know. I guess."

"Good. David, why don't you go down on Tina first to get her ready? Then you can fuck her while we watch."

"Okay," the boy said, and slid between Tina's legs, spreading them so he could get access to her tender pussy. Her hairless snatch was a turn-on for him, and he had to lift himself up on his knees to keep from grinding his erection into the carpet.

Jim Phillips took Tina by the shoulders and laid her back down on the carpeted floor, kissing the child with deep thrusts of the tongue into her mouth, while David started licking the little girl's small slit. Tina loved the feel of a mouth on her cunny and immediately reached down to put a hand on David's head, pulling him deeper into her young slit.

David was in heaven. He had wanted to fuck little Tina West since he had first seen her. He'd been seduced by Jim Phillips two years ago, and had finally mentioned his desire to the older man during one of their sex sessions. Jim thought he could arrange it, if David would cooperate, and true to his word, here was Little Tina, spread out before him, pushing her hairless cunt into his face.

The boy loved the feel of her bald pussy against his face, the smooth wet lips almost sucking on his chin as he licked her swelling clitoris. He could feel her cunt throb as he licked her, and knew he was turning her on. He couldn't wait to jam his prick into her and feel how tight her little twat would be on him. He wanted to shoot his cum into her and look at her face as he did it. And today, he was going to get his wish.

Tina was thrusting her young pussy into David's face now, her hips moving without conscious effort. She loved the feel of a mouth on her most intimate area. She loved the way a tongue felt on her clit, the warmth, and the moisture; the feeling of resting her hand on a head between her thighs. She was going to cum soon from it, she knew.

"Okay, David. Come up here and fuck her now. Fuck this little girl."

David didn't need any urging. He lifted himself up and crawled up Tina's body. She, in turn, opened her legs willingly, wanting to feel his hard prick enter her small opening and stretch her until she came. She was close to cumming now; it wouldn't take much more to make it happen.

David loomed over her now, fumbling with his cock to find the opening to her cunt. Jim Phillips reached in and guided the tip of the boy's erection to the 11-year-old's opening. David immediately thrust himself into the little girl, eliciting a gasp from her. He couldn't wait for her to recover from his penetration, but immediately began to fuck her hard, holding himself off her with his arms; the slap, slap, slap of their two young bodies the only sound in the room.

Tina was a little disappointed that David's cock was so small. She was a little surprised when he first rammed home into her, but once he started fucking her she realized that he wasn't near as large as the men that had fucked her so far. Tina was a little disappointed, but not for long. What David lacked in size, he made up for in speed. He fucked her fast and hard.

Tina felt her ass bouncing off the floor as David fucked her, slapping her hairless sex hole with his nearly hairless hips. The tingle in her cunt was growing again, and it would only take a minute or two of David's fucking to bring her off.

For the men in Jim Phillips' living room, the youngsters were putting on a great show. 14-year-old David, slamming his teenage prick into the 6th grade pre-teen, was a real turn-on. Every man in the room had an erection, just watching the kids fucking each other. They all slowly left their seats and formed a circle around the two kids. They all knelt down around the youngsters and began stroking their cocks over both of the kids. Tina and David didn't know it, but they were going to be the objects of a cum shower, when they were done fucking.

David came first. He felt his balls tighten and then felt a mighty internal heave. He moaned incoherently and his penis started to pump his semen into the 6th grade girl. He fell forward onto Tina, and his hips continued to hump her involuntarily. He pumped his full load into her, and then an amazing thing happened. Little Tina, feeling David pumping his sperm into her sex hole, began to cum too. Her pussy clamped down on David's invading penis, massaging it and prolonging his orgasm until he was blind with pleasure.

Tina let out a yell of pleasure, "AAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH FFFUUUUUCCCCCKKKKKK MMMEEEEEEEEEEE!!!! AAAHHHHH! AAAAAAHHHHH!" She clutched at the jerking boy, reaching down to his ass to try and pull more of him into her young body. The two children humped each other blindly, each in the throes of their own orgasm, each pleasuring the other without even being aware of it.

As each child's orgasm began to subside, they became more aware of reality again. Almost simultaneously they both looked up and became aware of the men gathered around them, jerking off over them.

David pulled his penis out of Tina and rolled to one side, propping up on his elbow next to the little girl. Both children looked up at the monster cocks pointed at them, and realized what was in store next.

"Oh...Man...Yeah...Here I Cum...Yeah...YEAH...NOWWWW!" and Tom blasted his sperm at the two youngsters. The first shot hit David in the face, causing the boy to jerk his head back. It dripped from his face onto Tina's face, hitting her in the lips. Tom's next ropy white shot landed on David's chest, and proceeded to drip down to where his chest leaned on Tina's.

"Oh...Gawd...Me TOOOOOO! YAH! TAKE IT KIDS...TAKE THAT HOT CUM!!" The older Dave, looming over Tina's head, shot his jism lengthwise down her little body. It landed in a white line starting on her hairless young vaginal lips and snaking up to her left nipple. His next shot did not have the same energy, and it just landed on her chest. He aimed his cock at David, and the next spurt struck the boy on his face and hair, coating his forehead in creamy sperm.

Almost as soon as the older Dave started cumming, John shot his wad on the 14-year-old boy's back. He didn't have much left; having cum in both Tina and David, but what there was dripped down the boy's back, and coated his butt.

Jim Phillips was not to be outdone by his friends. His load shot out and hit David's penis, dripping off the young boy, and pooling in little Tina's hairless slit. He moved his cock back and forth as he came, splashing both kids with a copious amount of white, sticky semen.

Tina and David didn't know what to do, so they just lay there as the four men covered their young bodies in sperm. The hot fluid landed everywhere on the youngsters, dotting Tina's chest and face with drops of jism. David was getting coated too. He took several more blasts of white cum in his face, closing his eyes when they hit. Cum landed on Tina's belly, and spread down either side of her slender body. The cum that landed on David's front, soon dripped down and landed on Tina, what with him still being propped up next to the little girl.

When the last drop of semen had been shot onto the children, hands reached down to spread the white lotion all over both their bodies. Tina felt hands spreading the semen on her chest and stomach, and rubbing it into her tender young cunt. David felt hands smearing the semen on his back, while other hands reached down to jack his cock; getting it liberally coated in cum as well. When both youngsters were covered from head to toe, the men stood up and one by one knelt down next to Tina's head.

"Suck it clean, sweetheart..." said the first man, hold his deflating cock out to the 6th grader.

Tina opened her mouth and let the flaccid penis in. She sucked, and a last few drops of semen oozed out the small hole in the end. She swallowed this, and the cock was removed from her mouth.

"You too, David..." And the same cock was offered to the young boy. He too, took the man's cock into his mouth, and sucked.

In turn, each man offered his prick to both children to be sucked and licked clean. Tina and David did not hesitate in any case; David, because he'd done this ritual before, and Tina because she didn't know what else to do.

"Hold on a minute!" said Howard after the ceremony was done. He had been designated camera man for most of this orgy, and so had not had a chance to cum yet. "Hey...We still got some business to take care of!" This last he said as he held his large erection in one hand, and eyed the two kids with the other.

"Okay, Howie...What do you want to do?"

"Well, I notice that little David there still has a hard-on...How about a sandwich?"

Tina wondered why Howard would be talking about food, when she thought everyone wanted sex. She guessed maybe that's how Howard had gained all that weight, thinking about sandwiches all the time.

"Sounds like a good idea to me, but do you think she can take it?"

"Oh...I think so...It'll be tight, but I like 'em tight."

Tina didn't have a clue as to what was going on, but figured she'd go along. After all, she'd gone along with everything so far.

"David, lay down on your back. Okay, now. Tina, I want you to get on top of David and fuck him. Climb on your knees and put his cock in your cunny..."

David had lain down as soon as he was told to, his still erect cock sticking up from his body and twitching. Tina looked up at Mr. Phillips giving her directions, and complied when she understood what was wanted. 'Oh, good...We get to fuck again!' she thought. She could not get enough of fucking, and knew before she even mounted the 14-year-old boy that she would have another orgasm just from having his dick in her. She lifted her bottom after straddling David, and reached down for his cock. She guided the head of his penis between her tender lips and let her weight push his cock up into her body. David helped with a thrust of his hips, loving the feeling of the girl's hairless pussy sucking his teenage pecker.

Once again, the men gathered around the fucking teens, only this time they pushed Tina down until her chest met David's. Two men held her there, putting pressure on her back with one hand and holding her wrist with the other. The girl didn't like it much, because she couldn't move enough to fuck herself on David, but fortunately he kept fucking her by thrusting his hips up into her. His penis felt good inside her, and she relaxed and let herself be fucked by the boy.

Suddenly, she felt a cool sensation on her anus as a hand rubbed some kind of lotion on her small rear entrance. A finger began to probe her small brown hole, which was completely exposed in this position, and with almost no delay it was thrust up into her rectum.

"Ow! Hey...what are you doing?"

"Just checking it out, Tina honey," said Howard.

Tina couldn't lift herself up and close her bottom to his probing. "That hurts...Stop...Please..."

"No, baby. I got the lucky draw, sweetheart, and I'm gonna fuck you in the ass!" And with the last word, he shoved his whole finger up into the 11-year-old's tight anus.

"OOWWWW...No...Please No...Ow...Stop...Please..."

The little girl was begging. She couldn't imagine being fucked in the ass. Just the finger in there felt huge. She kept begging to be left alone, that it hurt, that she was scared, but her cries fell on deaf ears.

"You gotta do it someday, honey...May as well be now."

Howard had removed his finger from the child's bottom. He positioned himself behind her, aiming his cock at her virgin rear entrance. The head of his cock touched the puckered rear hole, covering it completely. Howard looked down at where his dick met the 11-year-old's anus, and wondered aloud if she could take it.

"Man, do you really think she can take this thing?"

"Sure, man...Hey remember that 10-year-old last year. She took John for Christ sake...Do it, man. Fuck that tight virgin ass!"

"Okay...Here goes..." And he began to pressure his penis forward, pushing in Tina's rectal orifice.

The young girl was shaking with fear. Her ass cheeks were being held apart by one man, while Howard concentrated on impaling her ass. With a sudden pop, the head of his cock broke through the resistance of her young sphincter, and he felt her anus clamp down on the head of his prick.

"OOOOOOOOOOOOOOWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWWW ... IT HHHHHUUUUUUURRRRRTTTTTTTSSSSSSSSSSS ... PLEASE DON'T..." Tina screamed, but Howard kept pressing forward, amazed that his fat cock could slide into this little girl at all!

Slowly his cock disappeared between the little girl's spread ass cheeks. The heat and tightness of her rectum were unbearable. Her cries and sobs and struggles, just added to the sensations in her fantastic bottom. She couldn't move because she was held down by Tom and Dave. And John was holding her ass open to Howard's advancing cock.

Slowly the fat man pressed on. With only an inch of cock to go, the going got tough. Maybe there wasn't enough lubrication, or maybe this 6th grader didn't have enough room to hold two cocks at once. It didn't matter to Howard, who leaned over the little girl and gave one last hard thrust.


Tina screamed at the blinding pain in her bottom. She couldn't move, couldn't get away, and could barely breathe because the two men held her down so hard to allow Howard to thrust into her. The pain of having her rectum stretched to fit this huge erection was unbelievable. Tina completely forgot that David's still erect penis was deeply imbedded in her small cunt. Compared to the pain in her ass, the pleasure of having her small pussy filled with a reasonable sized cock was nothing. Tina couldn't understand how David had managed to take a cock in his ass before without screaming!


Howard had managed to fit his whole erection inside the 11-year-old girl. His cock was in a warm vice. It almost felt as if he wouldn't be able to pull it out, but he did, just a bit, and then pushed home again, into the little girl. 'OH MAN...THIS WON'T TAKE LONG!' he thought to himself.

The thrill of deflowering this tight anus was almost enough to bring him off. He had to concentrate not to shoot off in her right then and there. Hell, he wanted to fuck her a little bit, since he was the first. And so he did. Pulling and pushing his large cock between the bottom cheeks of this 6th grade school girl. He fell forward onto the pre-teen, resting his weight on her back; humping her for all he was worth.

"OW...OW...OW...OW...OW..." Tina chanted on each in stroke of his cock into her small bottom.

The blinding pain of initial entry had subsided, and was reduced to a burning sensation deep in her rectum. His thrusts hurt, but she didn't feel like she was going to black out from the pain anymore, and she didn't feel the need to scream protests anymore. She tried to pretend that she was passing a large turd, but the sensation was like nothing she had ever experienced. This fat man was on her back, humping her, his hairy chest resting on her back. She could still feel David under her, making feeble attempts to thrust into her cunt from below, though he was pinned worse than her, having to carry the weight of both people.

'He might be worse off than me...' she thought. I wonder if he can breathe? And the more she thought about other things, the more the pain subsided, until it was just a dull ache that sharpened slightly whenever the fat man rammed into her.

'Okay...Okay...I can take this...Okay...' she thought over and over to herself to re-assure herself. She still said "OW" each time the grown man fucked into her virgin anus, but now it was mostly ritual and she did it unconsciously.

The other men had stood back now, no longer needed to hold down the 11-year-old, and watched as Howard fucked her small bottom, while young David tried to fuck her in the cunt. The boy's face's was red, and it didn't look like he was breathing too easily, but his hard-on never wavered, and it could still be seen easily penetrating the little girl's cunt. The sight was a turn-on, but the men were pretty much spent.

Jim Phillips started to get a hard-on again, and figured, 'What the hell...' He walked over to where Tina's head hung down, forehead touching the floor, and lifted her chin up. It was awkward, because the 11-year-old was almost completely covered by the man fucking her ass, but he managed to offer his cock to her mouth. The youngster seemed glazed out and far away, not really noticing his offered erection, so he pushed it into her mouth without waiting for her to notice. The little girl accepted it, and actually seemed to suck on it, once she became aware of what was in her mouth.

Little Tina concentrated on her mantra to make the pain in her small ass go away. Suddenly, she felt something poking at her mouth. She opened her eyes and realized that one of the men wanted her to suck his cock. The semi-hard penis slipped between her parted lips, and Tina realized that sucking this cock would help her ignore the cock that was invading her aching young bottom. And so she sucked.

The sight was amazing, and John made sure to grab the video camera to record every angle. Here was an 11-year-old school girl, down on her knees, every hole filled with cock. The camera zoomed in on where two cocks at the same time entered her young hairless body. The cock thrusting into her ass caused her anal opening to cave in with every thrust, and extrude out with every retraction. The cock in her cunt barely moved, but you could tell the boy was trying his best to contribute to the fucking of the 6th grader. The camera moved around to the front and got a shot of Jim Phillips pushing his cock into her innocent face. Her eyes were open and she watched the penis disappearing into her as best as she could. The camera moved to the side and showed the entire scene, two men and a boy, jamming there erections into every hole of the tiny, slender, pre-teen girl. Each blind to the other and they used this child as a receptacle for their hot loads of cum.

"NOW! NOW! NOW...! YAAAAAAHHHHHHHHH!" Howard came suddenly. His penis expanded and blasted his white hot seed deep into the little girl's overstretched rectum. With each blast he slammed his hips forward, trying to impale himself as deeply as possible into the sweet young child whose ass he was fucking. He thrust so hard that he rammed her body upward, and David's cock popped free of her small cunt. His erection bobbed up and pushed into Howard's hanging testicles. Slamming Tina forward had the opposite effect on Jim Phillips. Her mouth suddenly engulfed his entire cock, and he felt the head of his prick slide deep into her tight throat. Howard kept bellowing and moaning and cursing as he flooded the pre-teen's bottom with his semen. He finally collapsed on the little girl, his penis still twitching in her anus, but rapidly deflating.

"Howard...HEY, Howard!! Get up, will ya! The kid can't breath!" One of the other men came over and assisted the spent fat man in getting off of little Tina and David. The men had noticed that poor David could barely get enough breath and had to rescue him.

"Jesus, Howie. What you trying to do? Crush these kids?!" they ribbed him while he recovered his senses after his blinding orgasm.

"Nahhh." was all he could reply.

Jim Phillips had removed his cock from Tina's mouth right after she was forced to deep throat him. He figured she had enough to worry about, with Howard shooting off in her like a bull on a calf! He was amazed that Tina had managed to take his cock in her ass, he'd not really been sure himself, and he went back to check out her anus after they hauled the fat man off the two kids. He spread her cheeks and looked as her anus began to recover its normal shape. It looked red and stretched, but he didn't see any bleeding, so he bent down and kissed each of the young, tender ass cheeks before leaning up to talk to the two kids.

"Hey...David...You guys never got to finish that fuck...Roll her over and finish it...she's all yours!"

Tina was beyond words. The pain in her ass was gone, and the tension drained away from her. She had not realized how tense she'd been, while getting her ass fucked. Maybe if she'd relaxed a little it wouldn't have been so bad. Well...lesson's learned for next time. And she surprised herself with that thought, because she realized that there would be a next time. That she would get fucked in the ass again because that's what men liked to do, and she liked men! That's when Tina realized that sex was a whole world of men and boys, and maybe even girls that she was ready to explore. She could handle anything! Or well...most things...

She felt herself rolled over; her aching bottom pressed to the floor as her pussy was entered once again. She looked up, and saw David looking down at her.

"Do you want me to fuck you, Tina?" he asked, wanting to make sure she wanted it.

He knew what it was like to have your ass fucked for the first time, and he remembered being dazed afterward too. He wanted to be sure that Tina wanted to fuck, and not just curl up and recover. He felt sympathy for her, and wanted her to know it.

"Yes...I want you to fuck me, David...Make me cum! Fuck me, hard!" Tina wanted it now, more than anything. His penis in her young snatch had re-awakened the feelings in her clit, and rapidly took her mind off her aching bottom. "Yeah...Fuck me...Fuck me, please!"

And the young boy did!

The men watched as the teenager and the pre-teen fucked each other, each obviously enjoying the other's body, and the sensations in their own. The men loved to watch kids fucking, and David and Tina put on quite a passionate show.

But with the quickness of youth, it was over all too soon. Tina shouted her pleasure at David, yelling the fact that she was cumming and wrapping her legs around the young boy's humping butt. The throbbing of her pre-teen pussy around his young cock sent David over the edge and he too moaned his pleasure and his penis spat its load of boy cream into the little girl.

Finally, both youths lay on the floor in each other's arms, spent and panting. Both sets of eyes closed.

"Guys, I'd say it was a successful party!"

"Oh, man...the best."

"So, what do you say, huh...Do it again next week?"


"You bet!!"

"And John, next time bring your two daughters, okay? No use making poor Tina there do all the work!"

"Hey, man. You got it. I know Julie and Jennifer are ready for another party. They didn't like being left out of this one, and hey, guess what? Next week is Jennifer's 9th birthday. We can have a real party!"

"All right!"

"Yeah...That'd be great."

Jim Phillips looked at Tina and David. "What do you say, kids? Wanna come to a birthday party next week. Plenty of cake, ice cream, and fucking for everyone!?"

Both Tina and Dave looked at Mr. Phillips and nodded. Each was grinning in anticipation.

Chapter Thirteen

Jim Phillips had to make a trip out of town for a week, so Tina was not able to make her daily visit with her older lover. The little pre-teen had to satisfy herself with her newly learned skills at masturbation. Every night she put herself to sleep with multiple orgasms as her fingers beat a staccato rhythm on her small, hairless cunt. It was frustrating because she had to hold back when she came for fear of making enough noise that might wake her 9-year-old sister Mary, sleeping in the bed across the room. She'd never resented sharing a room with her little sister, but now it was a distinct frustration.

Then on Thursday evening, her mother summoned her after opening the mail.

"Tina...I just got a letter from Mr. Phillips up the street."

Tina's heart skipped a beat. What would he be writing in a letter to her mother?

"He said that his little niece is having a birthday party, and that she and her father are new to the area, so she hasn't made a lot of friends yet… He's inviting you to her party on Saturday afternoon."

Tina's heart started again. The PARTY!! She was really looking forward to that.

"I guess it would be okay for you to go. Your father's going fishing again. Fishing...HAH!" She was taking that sarcastic tone again when Tina's father was mentioned...Looks like another fight tonight! "And I have to shop for some new clothes before I go to the hair dresser...hmmmm...I guess I can drop you off there before I go, Sound okay?"

"Oh yeah...I'd love to go to a party."

"Okay...I'll make sure I can get a sitter for Mary...Good. I'll call Mr. Phillips and let him know you're going to be coming."

That night Tina's orgasms were particularly strong, thinking about Jim Phillips, sucking and fucking her...At one point she almost died trying to suppress her moans when she heard her little sister shifting on her bed just as she was cumming, but Mary didn't wake up, and so Little Tina fell asleep with visions of hard adult cocks filling her thoughts.

On the day of the party, Tina's mother insisted that she wear a party dress and patent leather shoes. "But Mommm...This makes me look like a little girl..."

"Well, you are a little girl, sweetheart, and I want you to look nice if you're going to a party. Now, you know to be polite, right?"

"Yeah...I know...'Please' and 'thank you' and 'May I'..."

"That's right. Mr. Phillips was nice enough to invite you; so you be sure to thank him right that?"

"Yeah...I got it," she said. 'I'll be sure to say thanks for you for getting me out of your hair for the day too', she thought to herself. It's not that Tina's mom was a bad mother...she was just...preoccupied with herself. Today she was going clothes shopping and hair dressing; expeditions which normally entailed dragging Tina along in the long and boring pursuit of the perfect look! Tina was just as glad not to have to go this time.

At 2:00 in the afternoon, Tina's mother took Tina to Jim Phillips' house. Both Tina and her mother went to the front door, but a small sign on the door said, "PARTY IS OUT BACK...COME ON AROUND!!" so both mother and daughter walked to the back of the house. The yard was decorated for a kid's birthday party, with crepe paper and HAPPY BIRTHDAY signs strung from the back deck to the nearby trees. Jim Phillips was just lighting the barbeque grill. There were several adults sitting in lawn chairs and a group of youngsters who were attempting a game of badminton, though with little success.

"Hi, you must be Tina's mother! I'm Jim Phillips." He came walking over to Tina and her mother; hand outstretched and smiling. "It's so nice to finally meet the mother of this sparkling little girl!" he said taking her hand and shaking it.

Tina's mother, was instantly bowled over by his charm, and smiled back, "Oh, yes. I'm Livina West...just call me Livvy. I'm glad to meet you too. It was very nice of you to invite Tina to this little party."

"Well, I'm glad she could come. I see your daughter when she cuts through the yard on her way home from school. She's always so bubbly and friendly. She seemed like such a nice young lady that I thought of her right away for this."

"Tina, you shouldn't be cutting through people's..."

"No...No...Honestly, I don't mind. I used to cut through my old neighborhood all the time when I was a kid. Shortest distance between two points and all...Besides...It means that I finally get to meet her charming mother!"

"Oh...well...ahh." It had been so many years since anyone had been charming to Livvy that she didn't quite know how to handle it. She was going to have to make it a point to get to know Jim Phillips better. "Well...ahh...I want to thank you again for inviting Tina."

At that moment a rather handsome muscular man walked up to the trio and introduced himself. "Hi...I'm John...Seems Jim here wants to keep you all to himself!"

"John, this is Livvy, Tina's mother. Livvy, this is John, father of the birthday girl."

"It's nice to meet you," said Livvy.

"Nice to meet you too…Upps...Can't talk long...see that woman over there...the one giving me the evil eye...That's my wife Evelyn...She always watches close when I talk to another pretty lady!" and with that he chuckled because his wife was just grinning and waving at the group, knowing what her husband always said to new, female acquaintances. "Well, I have to run. It was nice meeting you. And don't worry, Tina can walk home, I have a sitter at the house till this evening. Take care, and thanks again!"

"'re welcome. Don't worry; I'll be sure she gets home safe."

Livina West left the party thoroughly charmed by Jim Phillips and his friends. She didn't give a second thought to how Tina would be spending the rest of her day. She did, however, begin to have thoughts about spending time with a certain charming neighbor while her husband went fishing.

"Come on, Tina. I'll introduce you to everyone!" said John, taking the pre-teen by the hand and leading her over to his wife. "Evelyn, this is Tina. The one I told you about."

"Tina, I so glad to meet you!" she said, taking hold of the 11-year-old girl and giving her a hug from her chair. Tina didn't know what to think. She had expected a party of a completely different type. How were she and Jim Phillips, or even she and John going to get any time alone for sex play if John's wife was here?

"And Tina, this is Cathy," John said, introducing her to another woman sitting next to Evelyn.

"Nice to see you, Tina. I'm Betty's mother...The little one trying to hit that badminton."

Tina turned around to see a very young girl holding a badminton racquet, and swinging wildly at the shuttlecock, while the other girls giggled at the attempt. Her long blond hair shone in the light, and she too giggled in her futile attempts.

"Let's see, you already know Dave, Tom, and Howard," and each man nodded at Little Tina as he said their names, "so I guess I better introduce you to the rest of the kids! Hey kids...Come on over...This is Tina!"

Tina was instantly surrounded by a group of laughing young girls, most younger than her.

"Tina, this is Betty, she's the baby of the group…"

"I am not a baby! I'm 6 years old and I hate being called the BABY!" she said, but she grinned the whole time she was saying it!

"Whooooaa...Okay! I'm sorry little princess...I won't let it happen again!" And everyone, including the adults chuckled. "And this is Trisha, she's Dave's niece."

"Hi, Tina."

"Hi, Trisha"

"And this is Julie, and finally the birthday girl, Jennifer."

"Hi, Jennifer, Happy Birthday!"

"Thanks. Hey...wanna play badminton with us? You and me against Julie and Trisha!"

The little girl in Tina immediately jumped at the friendliness in Jennifer's voice, and at the chance for play. "Sure..."

"Okay. Betty, you're the referee!"

And the small knot of little girls ran off to play, while the adults turned back to the barbecue.

Tina really enjoyed playing with her newfound friends. There was a lot of laughing and squealing as the little girls played at badminton, mostly mock arguing over who got a point, or if it was 'out,' etc. After about half an hour, the girls were called over to eat, and everyone sat down at various tables to enjoy Jim's attempt at Cajun chicken. It wasn't long before all the girls opted for the hamburgers instead, causing much ribbing of Jim's cooking abilities from the other adults.

Eventually, the meal was finished and Jim announced that the party was going to be moving inside. In the next few minutes, everyone made their way into the house to the living room.

"Okay, everyone, since this is Jennifer's birthday, I've put together a special video of the birthday girl that I thought you'd all love to see. Come on, gather round the TV here. Okay, here goes!"

Jim popped a cassette into the VCR, and took a seat next to Tina. Tina noticed that each of the girls was seated next to one of the men, with little 6-year-old Betty sitting on Howard's lap. Jim Phillips took a seat next to Tina, and urged her to sit on his lap, which she did. The two women were seated on the love seat together, talking in low tones.

The video started, with the title, 'Jennifer at 6'. It showed a very young Jennifer, sitting on her father John's lap, smiling at the camera.

"Hi," said the child on the tape. "I'm a big girl now, right Daddy?" she said, looking back at her Dad.

"That's right, honey! Why don't you show them what you can do?"

"Okay!" and with that the child jumped off her father's lap and began to pull her clothes off. She struggled a little, getting her tee-shirt off her head, but eventually managed to get all her clothes off except her small cotton panties. "You do it, Daddy!"

"Okay, honey!" And John reached out and pulled the 6-year-old's panties down her legs until she was revealed completely naked.

Tina was surprised. She looked over at Evelyn, Jennifer's mother, and saw that she seemed to be enjoying the film of her little daughter being stripped by her father! Tina had never heard of incest, and hadn't imagined the concept until just this second. But no one in the room seemed to think it was strange. In fact, each of the men had snuggled closer to the nearest girl, and was starting to pet them lightly, while the video played on.

The little naked 6-year-old stood proudly in front of the camera.

"Come here, honey," said John, reaching up and pulling the tiny girl back into his lap. He reached over her head and took one of her knees in each hand, and pulled her legs apart. Laying the girl on his lap with her head leaning on his stomach, he lifted her legs into the air, and exposed her tiny pussy to the camera.

"Show them what you look like, Jenny!"

He held the girl open to the camera, which zoomed in on her small hairless pussy. Her small cunt was so tiny and pink; the inside glistened a little from moisture. Little Jenny giggled at being held open to the camera like this, but didn't protest in the least.

After a minute, the youngster on film said, "Your turn!" and John released his grip on her.

She turned around and began to help her father out of his sweat pants. He stood up and his erection popped out over little Jennifer as she pulled his pants off first one leg, then the other. Then little Jennifer stood up, and John's erection was right at the level of her face.

"Okay, honey...Show them what you can do!" he said, touching the child on the shoulder, and pulling her closer to his hard cock. Little Jenny smiled and reached up for her daddy's penis bobbing inches from her face. With both hands she was barely able to encircle the erection. She stroked on John's penis for a moment or two, and then leaned forward and kissed the end.

Tina could feel Jim Phillips' erection beginning to grow under her bottom. His hand was wandering up and down her thigh, slowly making its way closer to her own hairless cunt. Looking around, Tina noticed that everyone's hands seemed occupied, even as they watched the video unfold.

Fat Howard, already had his hand inside 'baby' Betty's panties, and was whispering in her ear. She giggled at whatever it was he suggested, but never took her eyes off the TV screen. Even Evelyn and Cathy, the two adult women, were beginning to fondle each other while watching the screen.

On screen, the 6-year-old Jennifer, was using her tongue to taste the pre-cum fluid that was seeping from the end of her father's hard-on. At one point, as her mouth came away from John's penis, a string of fluid maintained a connection between the adult cock and the little girl's lips. When it snapped, Jennifer grinned up at her father, whose face was now out of the picture, but whose hands, reached down for the child's head, and slowly pulled her mouth onto his cock.

"Open your mouth, honey...As wide as you can..."

The child complied, opening her mouth as wide as she could; still keeping her teeth covered. Slowly, the head of John's penis slid into his 6-year-old daughter's mouth. It looked huge, and if little Jennifer had not opened her mouth as far as possible, it never would have gone in. The camera pulled back for a second to show the full length of this man's hard cock as the head disappeared into the child's mouth. The picture was amazing. A little 6-year-old girl, jaws stretched open, with a pole of hard, veined meat pushing into her small mouth; her lips were stretched tightly around the penis in her mouth.

"Ready, Jenny?" And the little girl bobbed her head up and down a little. "Okay, sweetheart, here goes!"

John placed one hand behind the small girl's head, grabbing a handful of her brown hair. He held her head still as he began to slowly push his hips at her face. Unbelievably, another half inch of hard cock pushed into the 6-year-old's mouth. Jennifer winced a little, but made no move to protest or struggle.

Slowly, John began to fuck his young daughter in the mouth, holding her head in position, and swaying his hips to and fro, pulling his cock out until the head was completely exposed, and then pushing it back into little Jenny's mouth, until no more would fit into the child.

By now, Jim Phillips had worked his hand up into Tina's panties, and was slowly running his finger around her young cunt, sending small shivers of pleasure up her young body.

Again, looking around, Tina could see that everyone else in the room was similarly occupied. Howard was in the process of removing little Betty's panties, and Trisha had a hand in Tom's open zipper, stroking his member while he whispered encouragement. Over on the love seat, Cathy was stroking Evelyn's crotch, while that woman watched her 6-year-old daughter servicing her husband on the screen. John had the real Jennifer sitting on his lap and was whispering in her ear while stroking inside her panties. Jennifer was smiling and nodding her head to whatever it was that her Dad was telling her.

On screen, John's pace was accelerating. He no longer pulled his cock all the way from his daughter's mouth. Instead, he was fucking her mouth harder, and pulling out until just the ridge of the head of his cock could be seen surrounded by her tightly stretched lips. On each inward stroke, this ridge could be clearly seen outlined in the 6-year-old's cheeks as it was pushed deep into her mouth, stopping near her jaw line, and pausing while John pulled on her head in a futile attempt to shove his whole cock into the child's mouth. Jennifer winced now and again, and you could tell that she was taking care to coordinate her breathing with his out strokes, but she didn't protest, or struggle. The slender 6-year-old simply stood there, hands on her father's thighs, letting him fuck her small mouth.

"OOOOOOhhhhhh...Okay, sweetheart...Get ready..." His movements were getting jerky, and his inward thrusts more forceful. Jennifer opened her eyes and tried to look up at her Daddy, knowing he was getting ready to come.

"Yeah...uh...Yeah...Yeah...BABY! UHHH OH SHIT!!! HERE IT CUMMMMMMSSSSS!!!!" and he pulled his cock out of her mouth, holding the end pointed at her face, as the first gush of semen shot from the end of his penis, spraying little Jennifer's nose and cheek with white ropy strands of cum.

Jennifer, for her part didn't flinch from the spitting cock in front of her. She kept her mouth open, and thrust her tongue out to catch his hot sperm as shot after shot splattered her face and mouth. John's cock shot load after load of cum onto his small daughter's face, coating her with his juice. It ran down her face, and fell onto her chest, where it rolled down her flat body.

Finally, as the last of his sperm dribbled from the end of his cock, the man pushed his throbbing penis back into the 6-year-old's mouth, "Suck it all out, sweetheart! AAAhhhh."

His body flinched as the little girl complied, sucking hard on his now less than rigid cock. They remained that way, both father and daughter, standing; the little girl not even having to bend over to take his penis into her young mouth; the man shivering now and then as the 6-year-old sucked on the end of his rapidly deflating cock, sucking the last of his hot semen. As the camera closed in on Jennifer you could see her throat move as she swallowed her daddy's sperm.

Finally, John released her head, and his prick fell from her mouth. The scene faded with a close-up of little 6-year-old Jennifer's cum covered face smiling into the camera.

"I remember that day!" said Jennifer, loudly.

"So do I!" exclaimed her Dad, and the whole room erupted into giggles, laughter and applause.

"Well, then you'll really remember this next scene," said Jim, and all heads turned back to the screen. Well, most heads, it seems that Trisha had finally managed to extricate Tom's large cock from his pants, and was kissing the tip. Tom for his part, let his hand rest on the back of her head, and watched the next scene unfold on the TV.

Chapter Fourteen

The screen title said, "Jennifer's First Time - Age 7" and opened on a scene where little Jennifer lay in bed naked next to her mother, who was also naked. Evelyn and Jennifer were kissing, and the mother was stroking her daughter's exposed little pussy. The little girl was holding her legs open, with her tiny hairless vagina exposed to the camera. The moisture on her little pussy was clearly visible, and it was obvious that the small girl was beginning to enjoy the stroking of her cunt, because her hips were undulating in time with her mother's stroking fingers.

Her mother broke off the kiss and said, "Are you ready, honey?"

Jennifer looked into her mother's eyes and said, "Yes mommy. I really want to!"

"Okay, sweetheart. It's going to hurt some, so you be brave, okay?"

"I promise! I'll be brave."

And with that her father John entered the picture. He was stroking his already erect penis, and the tip was moist with pre-cum in anticipation of fucking his virgin 7-year-old daughter. Jennifer's mother laid her back on the bed, and told her to spread her legs wide. She then positioned herself at her daughter's head, in a yoga sitting position, laying the child's head in her lap. Jennifer looked up at her mother and gave a small fearful smile as John positioned himself between the tiny girl's legs.

"Give me your hands, sweetheart," said Evelyn as John began to rub his hard cock against the little girl's hairless cunt.

Jennifer complied and her mother pulled back on Jennifer's arms, pinning them to either side of her knees, holding the little girl down so she couldn't struggle, should she so desire. From the back, the camera was able to see the head of John's cock as he rubbed it up and down between his little girl's hairless vaginal lips. His large cock almost completely covered the small opening between Jennifer's legs. As he rubbed his prick against the tiny child, her small cunt lips spread out around its head. He rubbed his pre-cum up and down in her pussy, stimulating both Jennifer and himself in the process.

Finally, Evelyn looked up at her husband and said, "Fuck her, John! Fuck her HARD!"

John positioned his hard cock at the center of the 7-year-old's opening and shoved hard. The tiny slit pushed inward with the head of her father's erection, but gave way as he forced it hard into the small child. Jennifer cried out, but neither John nor her mother paid her any heed. John used all his weight to press his erection into his second grade daughter. On his first shove he was able to press half of his 8 inches into his daughter's tightly stretched cunny.

The little girl was crying, sobbing, "It huurrtts!" over and over again, and throwing her head from side to side in her mother's lap.

John looked up at his wife, and the look on her face was pure lust. "Go on, Darling, Fuck it in her!! Fuck that hairless little pussy, like my father fucked ME!"

John leaned up and kissed his wife passionately, leaning more weight on his large cock, and sliding another fraction of an inch into the sobbing little girl. Jennifer was crying softly now, having overcome the initial pain of her brutal penetration.

But now, encouraged by his wife, John was determined to feel his young 7-year-old daughter engulf his entire cock in her virginal cunny. He began to buck his hips up and down, grunting with the effort of pushing his adult penis into a small, badly stretched 7-year-old vagina.

With each down thrust and grunt, Jennifer cried out again, feeling her insides stretching before the invading member. The camera had moved to the side and now zoomed in on the little girl's face. Tears were clearly running down the side of her cheeks as she cried out her pain, "...OOOOWWWWW...OOOWWWW...Please...OWWWW!...! UH...UH...OHH...OW!"

Nothing coherent was coming from anyone in the picture. John, like a bull, kept thrusting and grunting. Evelyn kept a firm grip on their daughter's hands, pinning them to the bed; her face contorted in lust and she watched her husband's full length disappear into their daughter's now bleeding vaginal cavity. And Jennifer still responded to each thrust with an "OW" of pain or surprise.

Tina was a little shocked at the scene. How could Jennifer's Mom and Dad do that to their own little girl? The scene was hot, and it was turning Tina on...well, Jim Phillips' continuous rubbing of her clitoris probably had a lot to do with that as well.

Tina looked over at Jennifer, but the little girl was just watching the scene; sitting on the floor with her dress up around her waist, her panties pulled down and her legs spread. Her Daddy, John, was pushing his finger in an out of her small hairless cunt, his eyes also on the scene unfolding before them.

Tina looked over at Evelyn, Jennifer's mother, and was surprised to see that the woman was completely naked with the other woman, Cathy, on her knees between her legs, licking her cunt. It seemed that this video was a real turn-on for Jennifer's mother, and Cathy was going to assist her in enjoying it to the fullest.

"Let's slip your panties off, Tina," said Jim as he began to pull on the waistband of Tina's white cotton panties.

Tina complied by lifting her butt off his lap while he used both hands to slip her panties off her bottom. Then she lifted each knee in turn and Jim deftly skinned the panties off the 11-year-old, thus giving him full access to his young lover's bald cunny. He took full advantage of this access; he began to caress her with one hand while kissing her ear.

Tina shivered as the man caressed her. She could feel his erection throb under her small bottom.

On screen the deflowering of Jennifer continued. The girl was bleeding, but that seemed to help the process. The blood provided enough lubrication that John's immense penis was finally making progress into the 7-year-old's tight hairless passage. With one final grunt, John managed to ram the last inch of his cock into his small daughter.

Jennifer was sobbing, but not as much as previously...

Her mother looked down at the little girl. "You did it, honey! Look...Look down...It's all in you now, sweetie!" And Jennifer raised her tear-streaked face and looked down to where her father's hairy crotch met her smooth, bald mound, with none of his cock showing between. "You did it, Jenny!" her mother continued to praise the little girl.

Finally, the 7- year-old looked up and tried to smile when she said, "I did it..."

"Yes you did, sweetheart!" said John. "Now I can fuck you whenever I want, baby! Isn't that great?"


"Fuck her now, John. Shoot inside her. Make her feel what it's like to have a man…her own daddy… cum in her." Evelyn encouraged. "You want that, right Jenny? You want Daddy to fuck you, right? Fuck you whenever he wants, right?"

"Uh...huh..." and in a real small voice the child said, "Fuck me, Daddy."

And so John began to pull back on his hips. Jenny gasped as her father's cock stretched her torn hymen again. Then he surged back again. The girl was hurting less now, and didn't cry out as loudly when he began to rhythmically thrust his cock in and out of her. The camera pulled back to show all of John fucking the tiny second grader.

With each in-thrust, her small body would slide up the bed, bumping her head against her mother's belly. With each out-stroke, the tightness of her small cunt on John's larger than average cock would pull her body down the bed slightly. Her belly could be seen expanding as his penis was shoved up into her little girl body.

Eventually, little Jennifer stopped crying out as her father fucked her, and she began to watch him for signs of his oncoming orgasm. She didn't have long to wait. John's fucking became even more determined. He slammed his erection into his little girl, bouncing her legs widely, and pushing her down into the mattress.

Jennifer's mother was chanting an encouragement to him as he slam-fucked his daughter. "That's it. Fuck her hard! Fuck her, John! Fuck that little girl...your own little Jenny...your own little girl...Fuck that little slut...Shoot her full of cum, John...7 years old and you're fucking her, John...Push it all the way into her...She's never had a cock in her before, John...She wants you to fuck her, John...Use her...Use her mouth! Use her ass! Use her little cunt...! " It went on and on...

Finally, little Jennifer looked up at the man fucking her and said, "Cum inside me, Daddy! Please...I want to feel it! Shoot your cum in me..."

It was too much for John to bear. He slammed his full length into little Jenny, and bellowed out his orgasm, "AAAAHHHHHH ... CCCCUUUUUUUUMMMMMMMMIIIINNGGGGG ... AAARRGGGHHHHHH ... AHHH ... SSSSHIIIIITTTTT ... FFFFUUUUUCCCCKKKKKK ... AAAHHHHHHHHHH..." he yelled as his cock sent stream after stream of hot spunk deep into his willing 7-year-old daughter.

He collapsed onto the child; still humping her as he shot wad after wad of sperm up into her hairless twat. Her small vagina couldn't hold John's load and so it seeped out around his cock, dribbling down into her ass, mixing with the blood there to form a brown stain. The child had completely disappeared under the collapsed man; all that was showing were her arms, still pinned to the bed by her mother. Evelyn finally let go of Jenny's arms, and the little girl wrapped them around the still humping, spasming body of her father as he shot the last of his semen into her.

John continued to twitch for a minute, but finally regained enough wits to lift himself off his daughter, to give her room to breathe. "GOD, JENNY!! - - That was un-fucking-believable! I don't think I've ever cum so hard!!!"

Slowly, he pulled his cock from the young girl. It came out covered in semen and blood. He moved up the bed and kneeled over his daughter's face, offering his cock to her. She took it wordlessly into her mouth and began to clean it with her tongue.

John turned his head and said to his wife, "Oh...honey...we should have done this years ago..."

Evelyn laughed. "Are you crazy?? You just barely fit her NOW!! A year ago you would have KILLED her!! - - God, you're such a sex maniac!"

And with that, both adults laughed and rolled to the side. Jennifer sat up on the bed and looked at her parents, chuckling and tussling on the bed, and then at the camera, still running and still focused by the unseen cameraman.

A small smear of blood and semen was on her cheek from her father's cock. She gave a quick smile to the camera and then turned to make the wresting match on the bed a threesome.

The last thing heard as the scene faded was Jennifer saying, "Tickle him, Mommy. We always win when you tickle him!" and then the sound of John's laughter!!



The men and women in the room broke into shouts of approval. They all turned to Jennifer and her Dad, and applauded. Tina too, though she was still a little shocked by the scene, clapped for brave little Jenny. For her part, the little girl stood up and took a bow to each corner of the room.

Someone shouted, "Speech...Speech..." and she looked very serious for a second and said, "I'd wanted to fuck my Daddy for a long time. It did hurt the first time, but now my Daddy is the best lover in the WORLD!" And with that she turned and hugged her father. John took his daughter in his arms and hugged her in turn, slipping both hands under her party dress and grabbing her naked butt. He pulled her to him and kissed her deeply, fondling her ass as they kissed.

"Hey, you two!" shouted Jim Phillips. "We got one more scene to go here!! Settle down...settle down...Hey Trisha...better save that for the contest!"

Little 8-year-old Trisha looked up from sucking on Tom's hard cock and said, "What contest?"

"You'll see...just don't let him cum while you watch this next scene! Got that?"

"Okay," said the little girl as she proceeded to fondle Tom, but stopped sucking him.

Tom just raised his eyebrows at Jim, but didn't say a thing. He knew that Jim Phillips always planned his parties well, and if he had to restrain himself now, he knew it would come to something interesting later.

"Okay, folks...last little tribute to Jenny, the birthday girl!" and Jim Phillips hit the remote again!

The scene opened with Evelyn, Jennifer's mother, lying on the bed nude. Her shapely, well-tanned body was fully exposed to the camera, except where a small, slender girl lay between her legs, obviously licking her pussy.

A title superimposed on the scene: "DILDO GIRL!!!" - - and as the title faded, Evelyn reached down for the little girl's head with both hands and pulled her face tight into her cunt.

"Yeah...Ohhhh...Yeah...That's it...Lick me...! Oh God!! HARDER!!"

She was using both hands to rhythmically pull the small girl's face deep into her cunt. The little girl looked to be about 7 years old, and was having a hard time getting a breath since both her mouth and nose were buried deep into Evelyn's cunt.

Fortunately, it didn't take long for Evelyn to cum. Mashing the child's face deep into her open cunt she began to moan, "Ohhhhhh YEAH! ... Ohhhhh ... Cummmminnnnnnngggggg ... AHhhhhhhhh ... Oh, yeeeeeeaahhhhh … Oh yeah ... Keep moving your tongue ... Oh yeaaaahhh..."

It wasn't a violent orgasm, but it certainly looked pleasurable. As she relaxed, Evelyn released the little girl's head, and the child was able to breathe again.

After a minute in which the girl kept licking her cunt, but not as hard, Evelyn said, "Come up here honey...Give mommy a kiss!"

The little girl rose up from between her mother's legs, and crawled beside her to receive her kiss. Now you could see that once again, the little girl was Jennifer; much the same age she had been in the previous scene, 7-years-old. Her body was small and slender, almost skinny. She had no hair on her small vaginal opening and no breasts under the flat nipples on her chest. Her hips had no roundness, and in fact looked a little bony. She lay down beside her mother, who proceeded to kiss her deeply, making a show of inserting her tongue in the little girl's mouth.

After a long kiss, she looked at Jennifer and said, "Would you like to be pleasured too, honey?"

"Yes, Mommy."

"Okay, sweetheart. Roll on your back. That's right...Now me and my little helpers are going to make you feel real good..."

The youngster had rolled onto her back, her body looking very small and vulnerable on the large bed. Her mother reached over to the side table and grabbed what looked like a shoe box. She opened this and took out a vibrator, which she immediately turned on. She then looked off-camera and said, "Okay...send them in."

There was a pause for a few seconds while off-camera a door could be heard opening and closing, then Evelyn spoke again, "Come here, kids. Come on...don't be shy...Little Jennifer needs our help..."

From the left of the screen, two naked young children walked into view. The first was Julie, Jennifer's older sister, and the second was a young boy of about 6 years of age. Julie had been involved in kiddy porn since she was 3 years old, and so didn't pay any attention to the camera, but the little boy walked into the picture and turned to face the camera, not knowing what to do.

"Eric, come on...It's okay, baby...We're gonna take some pictures, but right now, we're going to have some fun with Jennifer here. Come on, climb up here next to your Aunt Eve..."

As she patted the bed next to her, little Eric turned and ran over to the bed, climbing on and bouncing up next to his aunt.

"What we gonna do?" he asked, looking down at Jennifer.

"We're going to have some fun with Jennifer! Here...Climb onto her chest with your knees on each side...That's a good boy. Now push your pee-pee close to her mouth...That's good. Jennifer, why don't you lick Eric's pee-pee for him...Yeah...That's good."

The camera moved around to show little Eric straddling Jennifer's slender chest, his small, baby penis pushed up into her willing face. Little Jenny was licking the 6-year-old's penis and small balls. Eric seemed to like what his cousin Jennifer was doing because he pushed his penis closer to her mouth.

"Suck him, honey...You can suck his whole cock, sweetheart," directed Evelyn, pushing on the little boy's rear end to bring his tiny organ into full contact with her daughter's mouth. Jennifer opened her mouth and let the little boy's penis slide in. The size of his organ was easy for the 7-year-old to handle, considering that she'd sucked on many adult cocks in her few short years. "Push it into her mouth, Eric. That's a good boy. Push it in as hard as you want! Jenny likes to have a boy's pee-pee in her mouth. Feels good, doesn't it?"

"Uh...huh..." Little Eric was enjoying the sensations Jenny was giving him. He tentatively thrust his hips at her face, and his small penis slipped fully into his cousin's mouth. He fell forward, winding up on his hands and knees and started to hump the little girl's face, not knowing exactly what he was doing, but knowing that he liked the sensation. The camera showed his small, tight ass moving up and down as he pushed his little erection into Jenny's mouth.

Evelyn reached down to fondle his small butt for a few seconds, letting her middle finger slide into the crevice of his tiny ass and feel his small rectal opening. After a second of this, she called to Julie, "Come up here, Julie...between Jenny's legs...That's it...Here...Take this," she said, handing the 8-year-old the vibrating dildo from the bed. " stick it in Jenny while I hold her pussy open..."

Julie bounced up into position, and immediately bent to the task of inserting the vibrator into her younger sister. Evelyn placed one hand on each of Jennifer's hairless cunt lips and spread them apart. At first Julie had some trouble inserting the vibrator into her younger sister.

"Lick it and spit on it so it goes in..." suggested her mother. Julie licked the vibrator, and left a gob of spit on the end. She then re-aligned the device with her little sister's cunt and began to push it in.

Jennifer reacted immediately to the insertion of the vibrator. A muffled "MMMMPPPPHHHHHFFFFFF" could be heard from her end of the bed, but nothing intelligible could be heard because 6-year-old Eric was happily humping her face with his little hard-on. He wasn't old enough to have an orgasm, not quite yet, but he loved the sensations emanating from his little penis, and wasn't about to stop.

Julie, for her part, worked the vibrator slowly up into her sister, twisting and turning it as she pressed it in. Jennifer's pussy lips were stretched thin around either side of the man-sized device. They moved in synch with each twist of Julie's wrist; and buckled inward with each forward thrust. Slowly, the vibrator disappeared into the 7-year-old, inch by inch, until only three inches of the end were left hanging outside her pre-pubescent little cunny.

Once the vibrator was fully inserted, Evelyn reached into the shoe box again, and pulled out an anal probe. This was much skinnier than the dildo in Jennifer's tight little pussy, but just as long. She handed this to Julie, who took it without a word.

Then Evelyn straddled Jennifer, her butt bumping little Eric's over the little girl. She reached down and grabbed one of Jennifer's ankles in each hand and pulled them up to her, placing them under her arms. Jennifer was now bent at the hips, with the white end of the vibrator hanging obscenely from her pussy.

Having pinned Jenny in this fashion, Evelyn reached down and spread the 7-year-old's ass cheeks, exposing the small brown hole of her rectum. "Julie...Lick her asshole and get her wet...Go on...lick it so we can shove that other dildo into her."

Julie bent down to lick her sister's rectal hole. The camera couldn't find an angle that showed her tongue on Jenny's rectal orifice, but you could tell that she was licking her sister's ass. At one point, Evelyn reached down and pushed on the back of Julie's head saying, "Push your tongue into her...Get her wet on the inside...She likes to have her asshole licked..."

The white vibrator stuck out from little Jennifer's cunt, just above where Julie's face was planted against her sister's ass. The little 7-year-old was squirming and moaning; obviously aroused by all the attention being lavished on her small hairless genitals. Julie's tongue up her ass made her squeal, but it still came out as a muffled, "EEHHhhhhhmmmmmmmmpppff," because little Eric was still humping his hairless penis into Jennifer's face.

"That's enough...let's stick it in her!" said Evelyn, touching Julie on the back of the head as a signal to her to stop licking Jennifer's small asshole. "Here...Give me that," she said referring to the anal probe that Julie held.

Julie handed the slender rubber rod to her mother who immediately pressed the head into Jennifer's tiny rectal opening. More muffled squeals could be heard coming from Jennifer as her mother worked the probe up into the 7-year-old's bottom. The probe was pushed inward. The child's small rectum puckered around it as it was pushed up into her rear entrance. Jennifer's mother didn't hesitate to push the slender dildo completely up her daughter's small ass, inserting and rotating it into the 2nd grader until the handle was firmly pressed against little Jenny's tight butt!

"Okay...Eric...Come here, sweetheart...Aunt Eve is gonna make you feel good now..."

The little boy stopped humping Jennifer's mouth and climbed off of her.

But there was no respite for little Jenny. Evelyn immediately moved her body up the bed until her own hairy cunt was hovering above Jennifer's face. "Lick me now, Jenny!" she said, and lowered her pussy onto the child's open mouth.

She then told Julie to stand and hold Jennifer's legs up and spread. Little Eric was placed standing over Jennifer, facing his Aunt Eve, who immediately lowered her face to his crotch and began to suck the 6-year-old's penis into her own mouth. Using one hand to support herself, she grabbed the end of the vibrator penetrating her daughter and, after a push of a button, began to move it in and out of the small child. Jennifer's reaction was instantaneous; she started to squirm and muffled cries could be heard from where her face joined her mother's crotch.

In the meantime, Julie had dropped to her knees between her sister's legs. Placing one leg on each shoulder she reached down with one hand and grabbed the dildo wiggling up and down in Jenny's small butt. She began to pump it in and out of her sister, causing more moans. Little 7-year-old Jennifer was being fucked in both her tiny holes by dildoes sized for an adult! The second grader couldn't protest or encourage because her lower face was completely covered in her mother's wet pussy.

Evelyn was getting so turned on from sucking the precious little penis offered her by Eric and fucking her own daughter's hairless cunt with a vibrator that she began to hump her little Jennifer's face; pressing her sopping cunt down onto the girl, who did her best to keep licking.

As the scene progressed, Evelyn started to moan as her orgasm approached. By now she was humping Jennifer's face, and thrusting the vibrator harder into the little girl. Jennifer too, appeared to be getting ready for an orgasm. Her small body was squirming under her mother's humping hips; her legs were quivering in the hands of her older sister, who held them apart so the camera could clearly see where the large white vibrator entered the child's small hairless cunt. The vibrator pulled at the little girl's cunt lips; in and out, in and out; turning the outer lips red with friction. The probe in the 7 year's bottom bobbed up and down with the contractions on her tiny rectum.

Finally Evelyn took her mouth off little Eric's cock and moaned, "I'm cumming...Oh...God YEAH! LICK ME, JENNY ... LICK MOMMY'S CUNT!!! AAAHHHHHMMMMMMpppfff..."

She plunged her mouth back down onto little Eric's erection, sucking the 6-year-old boy's penis hard as the waves of an orgasm passed over her. Her hips smashed down onto her 2nd grade daughter's face, bruising the youngster's lips as they were pushed hard against her teeth. She humped Jennifer's face once...twice...and then her whole body contracted to force as much of her cunt into her daughter's mouth as possible.

Little Eric started to lose his balance on the bed, and his only alternative to falling was to grab the back of Evelyn's head with both hands.

The camera pulled back to show the entire erotic scene; A little boy pulling on the head of a grown woman, pushing his small penis deep into her mouth as she shuddered in orgasm, smashing her cunt into the face of a slender 7-year-old girl who was having her own orgasm from the vibrator that Evelyn now had jammed hard into her hairless little cunny, and the probe that her older sister was still working back and forth in her anus. Everyone in the picture was moaning. It was wonderful!

As the scene had played out, more clothes were removed from the various members of the audience. Tom had managed to strip little Trisha down to nothing, and had the little 8-year-old sitting in his lap, with his cock sticking up between her legs where he slowly rubbed it back and forth on the 3rd grader's small exposed cunt, letting his pre-cum lubricate her hairless lips; pleasuring both himself and the small blond child.

Little Betty, too, had been stripped, except for her white socks, and was now lying with her head in Howard's lap. He'd taken his pants off and was stroking his erection in the 6-year-old girl's face, holding her face in place with one hand on the back of her head, while he stroked his cock against her lips. Betty, for her part, kept her lips slack, and frequently would dart her tongue out to lick the head of the large penis that was being stroked against her mouth.

Jim had not attempted to strip Little Tina any further than removing her panties, but his masturbation of the girl had intensified. He was now pushing his finger deep into her young vagina, stroking her clit with his thumb as his finger probed her warm, tight little pussy. Tina was close to cumming from his ministrations as the erotic scenes played out on the video before her. Just a few more seconds and she knew she was going to come, regardless of the crowd around her.

On the TV screen, Evelyn's orgasm was winding down, but she wasn't done with the scene yet. She climbed off little Jenny and reached for the box once more, this time pulling out a life-like plastic cock that flopped in her hand as she rubbed juices from her own pussy on it to lubricate the plastic member.

"Eric, take the vibrator...That's it...Take it and push it back and forth...Good boy...! Yeah...That's it...Push it in deeper, honey. You have to make sure she feels it!"

Under Evelyn's guidance, little Eric began to fuck Jennifer with the vibrator, obviously fascinated with the white plastic tool disappearing into the smooth hairless lips between 7-year-old Jennifer's legs. You could almost hear his thoughts, 'I wonder where it's going in there????' The small boy was obviously happy with his assignment, and soon began to really fuck the 2nd grader hard with his new tool. Julie, in the meantime, was still fucking Jennifer's anus with her probe, sometimes in time with Eric's manipulations and sometimes in purposeful counter-point; doing her best to make her little sister feel good while being plugged with two plastic peckers.

Evelyn shifted her position on the bed and lay down next to little Jennifer, her face inches from the child's lust-flushed face. "Are you gonna come, Jenny? Are they fucking you good? Hmmmmmm? Tell Mommy that if feels good, honey...Come on...Does it feel good?"

The child was now holding her own legs up, one in each hand, holding herself open to the prodding of the little boy and girl between her slender hairless legs. Her breathing was ragged and it was obvious that she was close to cumming from the teasing her small cunny and bottom were taking.

"Uh...Yes, Mommy...It feels...good."

"You like it when they fuck you, don't you Jenny?"

"Yessss...I like to be fucked!"

The 2nd grader's flat chest was beginning to flush red; her breathing was ragged.

"Open your mouth, sweetheart. I want you to have all your holes filled!"

And Jennifer obeyed, though she could hardly keep her mouth closed while she panted. Evelyn fitted the tip of the plastic penis into young Jenny's mouth and slowly pushed it deep into the 7-year-old's face. Inch after inch of the pseudo-penis disappeared into the child's face, bulging the sides of her mouth and then the top of her throat as the ersatz member hit bottom.

"Swallow it, honey! Pretend it's your Daddy, sweetheart! Pretend your Daddy is fucking your little cunny and your mouth at the same time, sweetheart. He's pushing it into you at both ends, baby. Your Daddy's going to fuck your throat and make you cum!!" And with that Evelyn pushed even harder on the fake cock in her daughter's mouth. The muscles on her arms became more visible as she applied obvious pressure on the end of the dildo, forcing the bulge at the top of young Jennifer's throat to go deeper.

Jennifer had closed her eyes and was trying to imagine the scene her mother described. Since that first part of the film was made, she'd since been fucked many times by her father. And the youngster loved the feel of his long cock embedded in her small cunny; loved the way it stretched the skin of her hairless vagina tight over her clitoris. She almost always came when her father fucked her. She'd also sucked his cock many times, and though it wasn't as pleasurable as fucking, it made her glad to know that he enjoyed fucking her face and that he loved to shoot his semen into her mouth.

So the picture her mother described was a perfect turn-on for young Jennifer. She started to cum just as her mother forced the plastic penis beyond the entrance of her throat. Her body convulsed with her orgasm, the pleasure from Eric's thrusts into her young pussy enhanced by the feel of the probe up her tiny bottom. Her orgasm swept over her, and she couldn't control the urge to cry out. But this only opened her throat for greater penetration by her mother. The rubber cock surged down her small throat, bulging her neck out and cutting off her air.

Jennifer's orgasm came at the same time as she started to gag. Her 7-year-old body squirmed wildly on the bed, both wanting and not wanting the three invading members to continue abusing her young openings.

From the camera's point of view the scene was really hot. Jennifer was spread wide open and was obviously cumming and gagging at the same time. Her hips twitched, and her flat belly bulged outward each time the little boy shoved the vibrator into her small cunt. Her sister's hand was a blur as she pushed and pulled the anal probe rapidly to and fro in Jennifer's bottom. Jennifer's face was turning red from the orgasm and from choking on the fake penis shoved into her throat. Her lips were stretched tight around the ersatz cock.

"Yes! Yes, Jenny...It's your Daddy fucking you! Fucking your mouth!! Fucking his LITTLE GIRL!!! Take your Daddy...NOW!" and with that Evelyn gave one last shove on the dildo, and it disappeared further into the little girl's throat, stopping only when Evelyn's fist was tight against little Jennifer's mouth.

Watching the scene, Tina began to cum. Jim Phillips' stroking of her small cunny had finally had the desired effect. Her body stiffened in his lap, and she moaned out loud, causing some heads to turn her way. But she was blind to anything but the finger which rubbed deeply on her clitoris, sending wave after wave of pleasure throughout her 11-year-old body.

Jim Phillips held the little girl around the waist with one arm as he continued to stroke her convulsing body. Her spasms caused her tiny bottom to push up and down against his still clothed cock, and he thought for a second that he would cum right there in his pants. Little Tina was one of the hottest little cunts he'd added to his kiddy harem, and he loved to make her cum!

On screen, the little girl's orgasm was ending now, and the struggle to breathe was becoming more important. Jennifer began to twitch, and her hand flew up to her mother's hand. Evelyn relented and pulled the rubber cock slowly from her daughter's mouth.

When it popped free, Jennifer gasped for breath, coughing as she tried to breathe.

Evelyn reached down and stopped little Eric and Julie from further battering the 7-year-old's crotch.

She stroked Jennifer's forehead saying, "That's my girl...That's my baby...It's okay now, sweetheart!" She kept muttering endearments until Jennifer had stopped coughing and caught her breath. Then she whispered in the little girl's ear.

As the camera zoomed in for a close-up of the 2nd grader's face, the youngster looked straight into the lens and said, "Would you like to use my mouth too? I like sucking on a hard cock! I'd really like to suck yours!"

And then the scene faded to a THE END sign.

The adults in the room erupted into applause. They all turned to the birthday girl and clapped, with calls of "HOT" and "FANTASTIC" from some of the men.

Jennifer, now completely naked, stood up and took a bow. She turned and bowed to all sides, showing her slender naked bottom to all sides in the process, her hairless vaginal lips peeking from beneath her anus as she bowed deeply.

John, sitting on the floor next to his daughter, took the opportunity to reach up and stroke the child's bottom, rubbing each tight little ball of flesh and stroking his middle finger over the girl's small exposed rectum. Jennifer simply turned around and smiled at her Daddy, loving the way he looked at her small body.

Chapter Fifteen

When the applause died down, Jim Phillips moved the recovering Tina West from his lap and resumed his job as master of ceremonies. The room was filled with panting bodies; both adult and child. Little cotton panties lay where they had been dropped by the men removing them from their little girl lovers. Some of the man had managed to slip out of their pants to give the youngsters better access to their hard cocks.

Little Jennifer still stood in the center of the room, and Jim walked over to her; putting his arm around the child. "Okay, folks. That was the first bit of the night's entertainment. And, seeing as how our birthday girl has already donned her birthday suit, I suggest that we all join her and get comfortable!"

And with that everyone in the room began to strip off the remaining clothes they had on. Tina was a little embarrassed at first; after all, this was only the second time that she was going to take her clothes off in front of a group. But since no one else seemed to hesitate, she began to undo the laces on her shoes. Jim Phillips walked over to her and helped her with her shoes. He then helped her pull the dress up over her head, and laid it over the back of the couch.

The little naked sixth grader then looked up at him as he took her hand and laid it on his belt. "Help me undress, will you, Tina?!" he said.

Tina didn't hesitate at all, but immediately undid his belt, pants and zipper. Jim nearly lost his balance as she tried to help him out of his pants, and both of them wound up laughing as he hopped around on one leg while the little girl tried to get the other leg free. Next she helped him strip his shorts off, and when she looked up his hard penis waved only inches away from her face.

He put his hand on the back of her head, pulling the child's face toward his erection and said, "Give me a little kiss, huh, Tina!"

And with that his hard-on butted up against her smooth lips. The salty pre-cum coated her lips, and Tina gave the end of the man's cock a kiss, darting her tongue out after that to taste the fluid on her lips. The pressure on the back of her head did not ease off, so Tina figured that he wanted her to kiss his cock again. She did, only this time, she let the head slip between her lips and sucked on the very tip of Jim Phillips' erection.

"Ohhhhh...Man...Better stop this, Tina, or we'll ruin the next part of the party!!"

He let go of the little girl's head and walked back out to the center of the room. By now, everyone in the room was naked. Each of the men had a large erection, and each of them had a small young girl next to them that they were fondling.

"Okay, folks. Seeing as how this is a birthday party, we gotta have a birthday cake...RIGHT?"


"Right on!"

"Can't have a birthday party without a birthday cake!"

"That's right; and I had one all made up special, just for young Jennifer here for her 9th birthday. So...CATHY," he called out to the kitchen, "Is that thing ready?"

"Here it is!!" The woman Cathy came out of the kitchen pushing a cart with a large chocolate cake on it. The cake had chocolate candy flowers on it, and was inscribed with the words, 'Happy 9th Birthday, Jennifer!' but the candles weren't lit.

"Hey, you forgot to light the candles!" squeaked little Betty from Howard's lap.

"That's right, Betty," said Jim. "We gotta light the candles, but first I gotta explain something about this cake. It's made special for all you little girls! But it's missing the one ingredient I know you all love."

"What?" said Trisha.

"Loads of hot semen, that's what!" and he laughed. Everyone in the room chuckled, even little Betty.

"So here's what we're gonna do. Jennifer, Trisha, Julie and Tina, you all come over here and sit at the four corners of the table here." Cathy had produced four folding chairs after pushing the cake out from the kitchen. The little naked girls complied with Jim's instructions and each one sat in a chair next to a corner of the chocolate cake. "Now, here's what we're gonna do, each of you lovely little beauties will pick one of these handsome men to be your partners."

"I want my Daddy!" said Jennifer right away.

"Okay, sweetheart. Now, it's going to be your job to use your mouth to get your man to cum. Guys, it's going to be your job to try to put out the candles on the cake when you cum! Does everyone get it? Girls, you have to try your best to get your man to cum as fast as you can, because the candles will be burning and getting shorter. Guys, you have to have a good aim when you shoot to try and get as many candles as possible! I've got prizes for the little girl who makes her man cum first, and the guy who's the best shot and puts out the most candles!!"

"Hey...What about me?" the 6-year-old, Betty said.

"Oh, you get the best job of all, Betty. After each man shoots off, you get to be cleanup girl and suck ALL the cocks clean. You get to taste them ALL. How's that, sweetie?"

"Okay. I like tasting cum."

"Good, honey. Now...Jennifer's already chosen her partner. Let's go in order of age...Trisha, you're 8, who do you want as your man?"

The little 2nd grade blonde put on a serious expression for a minute and looked at the hard erections that surrounded all the children like she was choosing sides in a school yard game. "Tom!" she said finally, grinning up at the man, one missing baby tooth showing a gap in her smile.

"All RIGHT!!" said Tom as he walked over next to Trisha, his penis bobbing up and down.

"Okay..." said Jim. "Julie, you're 10 and you're next...Who's it gonna be?"

"I want Trisha's Daddy, Dave! I think he's ready to cum already!"

"You're right about that, Julie...Just wrap that sweet little mouth of yours on my cock and I'll put out a burning building!!" Everyone laughed at this as Dave took up his position next to the little girl who was going to suck him to orgasm.

"Okay, Tina...You're the oldest...Who's do you want to suck?"

"" she said in a small voice.

Tina had never experienced such open sexuality before. Her last visit to Jim's house had ended in a gang-bang with all the men using her small body for sex. But this laughing and playing games was completely new to her. It began to dawn on the little girl that sex didn't have to be serious all the time, and that it was fun to have fun with sex as well as pleasure!

"Good choice, little lady!! Okay, Howard...That makes you, Cathy and Evelyn the judges. Remember everyone...NO HANDS...just mouths and dicks...Yeah, that includes you Tom!" He took a slap at Tom's hand as he began to rest it on the back of Trisha's head.

"Hey...I was just making sure the aim was right!!!"

"Yeah...Right. Howard...anyone who uses their hands, except to aim at the candles is disqualified. Okay?"

"You got it!"

"Okay. Girls are you ready?"

"Uh huh."


"Okay...Guys are you ready?"

"You bet!"

"Ready, Captain!"

"Engine's HOT!"

"Okay...we're about to give a new meaning to the idea of blowing out the candles on a birthday cake. Ladies, if you'll light the targets!"

Cathy and Evelyn both reached in from the side with lighters and lit the 9 candles on the cake. Howard stepped up and said, "Ready, set...GO!"

At the go, four little girls immediately plunged their young mouths down over four erections. Howard wondered to himself if he was really going to make a good judge, since he couldn't keep his own hand from stroking his hard-on at the sight of this 'group blow-job' between adult men and four pre-teen little girls. Their young mouths stretched to hold the erect members that were thrust into their faces. The men had a hard time keeping their hands off the youngsters' heads as they tried to push their cocks deep into the girls' mouths. The girls had a hard time keeping their hands off the large cocks that were being pushed at them.

Tina tried sucking on Jim's large cock, but she was much less experienced than the other girls. Her young mouth was not as used to being penetrated by a full sized adult cock as the youngsters around her. So after a futile attempt to suck on Jim's erection, she settled into a rhythm of bobbing her head and moving her tongue as Jim swayed his hips, slowly rubbing the head of his penis back and forth in her pre-teen mouth.

Peeking at the other girls, Tina could see that each of them had a very different style of sucking cock. Although eight-year-old Trisha was the youngest of the little girls sucking on a man's cock, nevertheless she seemed to work at it the hardest. Tina could see that the little blonde 3rd grader would push her face as hard as she could down onto Tom's 9-inch cock. With each down thrust, her face would turn red as the little girl tried her best to force more of the adult erection into her mouth. The top of her throat actually bulged as she fought to deep throat the hard penis that Tom obligingly shoved into her face. Once out of breath, little Trisha would move her mouth back until just the tip was between her small lips and, taking a quick breath, plunge down on his cock again. Her blonde pony tail swayed back and forth with each attempt by the little eight-year-old to swallow the erect penis in her mouth. It was an obvious effort on Tom's part not to grab that swaying shock of hair and use it to force more of his hard meat into the little pre-teen.

Julie, being 10, had two years' growth and experience on Trisha. She didn't just try to fuck Dave's hot cock with her face, instead she varied the strokes to the penis in her mouth; at first letting just the head sit in her mouth while she rubbed the underside with the flat of her tongue; and then slowly pushing her face down onto his hard penis; letting it slip into the tightness of her more experienced throat, until her lips touched the pubic hair at the base of his 7-inch erection. There she tried to hold it until she needed a breath or could no longer fight the gag reflex, at which point she would quickly slide off Dave's erection until the head was back in her mouth, where she would start the process all over again. It was obvious that this little 5th grader had been sucking off men for years, and had her own technique for getting them to fill her warm, pre-teen mouth with spurting gushers of semen.

Jennifer and her father seemed to have a little trouble getting coordinated at first. When the little 9-year-old had first opened her mouth and plunged down on her daddy's hard penis, he'd thrust his hips hard into her face. The result was a gagging little 4th grader who almost, accidentally, took a bite out her own daddy's hard cock.

"Daddy!" said Jenny between coughs.

"Sorry, Baby...Here...I'll hold still...You suck me...Ahhhhhh Yeah...That's it..."

Once started, the birthday girl's technique was a combination of Trisha's and Julie's. At times she would just try to fit as much of her father's cock into her young mouth as she could, and at other times she would just tease the head of his erection with her mouth and tongue.

Words of encouragement could be heard from all four men as they all enjoyed the sight and feel of these slender pre-teen youngsters sucking their hard cocks.

"That's a girl...Ohhh yeah...Yeah...Now deep..."

"Oh man...I feel your throat, sweetheart...Push it in harder, sweetheart."

"Ahhhhhhhhhhhhh...God that's TIGHT!"

At one point, young Tina felt a hand on the back of her head, urging her head down deeper on the organ penetrating her face, slowly pushing it past the entrance to her throat.

"HEY!...! NO HANDS!!" yelled Betty, and she swatted at Jim Phillips' hand on the back of young Tina's head. " carried away," said Jim kind of sheepishly.

"Uhhh...Penalty...Gotta stop for 5 seconds." This from Howard who had missed the infraction while watching to see if little 8-year-old Trisha would actually manage to deep throat Tom's boner. "Okay...Okay..." said Jim as he pulled his hard meat out of Tina's mouth. It pulsed an inch in front of her face, gleaming wetly with her saliva, seeming to count the seconds.

Cathy and Evelyn, both giggling, took up a count down. "5...4...3...2...1...SUCK!!!!" and with that, the wet penis pulsing in front of Tina's face was pushed back into her mouth, where she started to suck once more, hoping to elicit Jim Phillips' hot sperm.

The words of encouragement began to turn to moans of pending orgasms. The men, already primed by the hot video of little Jenny's various violations, were getting ready to unload their hot cum into the mouths of their young pre-teen lovers.

"Ahhh...Just a little more, honey..."

"Oh...Fuck...Suck me, harder, baby...! Ahhhhh!"

"Ummmm Ummmm Ummmmm..."

Each man was fucking his own little girl's mouth harder, using the small girls as jack-off devices. They were beyond caring if the youngsters could take their adult cocks, all they wanted to do was to shove their erections into the warm mouths of these pre-teeners, and fill them full of cum.

"Hey...GUYS!! Remember...The Candles...Ha ha ha," Cathy laughed as she reminded the men of the point of the exercise before any of them could flood any of the little girls' mouths with cum.

"Oh...yeah...OH...YEAH...OHHHH YEEEEAAAAHHH...NOW!!! YEAH!!" and with that, Tom pulled his throbbing cock out of little Trisha's mouth and aimed the head at the nearest candle on the cake. He stroked his cock, once...twice, and the first gush of his white semen came spurting out the end, hitting the candle, but missing the flame. The second gush passed through the flame with a little sizzle and wound up as a white rope across the face of the cake. The third spurt smacked the head of the candle dead-on, and the flame was winked out. Before he could line up on another candle, Tom gushed again, sending sticky ropes of cum across the chocolate icing on the cake. By the time he got aimed at the second candle, his orgasm was reduced to a dribbling stream that ran down the end of his cock and onto his hand underneath. He let as much as he could drip onto the cake, and then dipped the end of his penis into the icing.

Before he could even recover his breath, he felt a tapping on his hip. He turned to see tiny 6-year-old Betty standing there, "I get to be the clean-up girl!!" she said, looking up into his face and then down at his cock which was now covered in chocolate and sperm.

"Oh...(whewww) all means, little darling," said Tom as he turned to offer his still weakly pulsing penis to the sweet little 6-year-old girl with the long, golden blonde hair.

Betty just stood there and opened her mouth, her eyes gazing up into Tom's. He took his cock in hand and guided the end to her widely opened young mouth, where he pushed it into her sweet young mouth and let the little girl suck the last of his sperm into her. Betty was so small that she didn't have to stoop to suck on Tom's cock; she just stood there with her mouth open until he pushed the chocolate covered wiener into her face.

The 1st grader loved the taste of his semen and the chocolate together. She never took her eyes off Tom's face because her mother, Cathy, told her that men loved to watch a little girl's eyes while the little girl sucked their wieners.

But after a minute, there was no more chocolate, and his cream had stopped leaking out the end, and besides, the 1st grader could hear the moans that meant there would be another wiener to clean up in a minute. So she let Tom's penis slip from her mouth.

"Thanks, sweetheart!" said Tom, stroking Betty's long blonde hair.

"You're welcome!" said the always polite Betty before she ran, giggling to the other side of the table where John was about to take his turn at playing fireman.

"OHHHHH FUCK...Yeah, Baby...Here IT COMES!!!" and John too, pulled his cock from the 9-year-old birthday girl's mouth, but just a second too late, because the first blast of cum splashed from the end of his penis across Jenny's cheek and onto her shoulder, where it began to slowly trickle down the little girl's flat chest to her belly.

"NO!! NO!!" she squealed, "the CANDLES!!"

And so John took his best shot at the cake, though once again, coating the cake with spurt after spurt of hot sperm proved easy while hitting the flame of a birthday candle proved much harder. He managed to douse one, and gutter another, but it gamely stayed lit, and eventually he too ran out of fuel for the fire hose.

"Sorry, sweetie," he said to his daughter.

"That's okay, Daddy. It was fun!"

So John too, dipped the end of his cock into icing and offered his rapidly deflating penis to 6-year-old Betty, whose slender form easily slipped between father and daughter to suck the sweet offering.

A few seconds later, and almost at the same instant, Jim and Dave both began their attempts to play Smokey the Bear.

What Dave lacked in accuracy, he made up in quantity as he blasted spurt after spurt of cream over the surface of Jenny's birthday cake, striking several candles, but not managing to douse a single one. Jim on the other hand seemed to have the accuracy of Wyatt Earp as his first huge spurt doused one candle, and his third spattered the life out of a second.

Little Betty ran to Dave first, but had to pointedly remind him to dip his "wiener" in the icing first, otherwise she wouldn't suck him. Having just cum strongly, and being none to stable, Dave nearly fell over laughing at the sight of this tiny, naked little 6-year-old standing there in front of him, arms akimbo, telling him he had to cover his cock in chocolate before she she'd suck him clean!

"OKAY!! (chuckle)...OKAY!!! Hey, you're the boss, sweetheart," and with that he swiped the end of his still erect penis deeply into the chocolate on the cake and offered it to the demanding 1st grader.

"Thank you," Betty said, trying to sound strict, before she opened her mouth wide and began to suck on her chocolate covered penis treat! When she finished with Dave, she looked around to where Jim was standing, but found him collapsed on the couch.

"Over here, little lady," Jim said, waving his penis with one hand and spreading his legs to give the youngster access, "I got it all ready for you!" And indeed he had. Not only had he swabbed the end of his cock in chocolate icing, but he dipped his finger and covered parts of his balls as well. "Come on over and get a treat from the bestest, if not the fastest, dick in the west!"

"Ummm looks good!" said the slender little 6-year-old as she walked between Jim's parted legs and knelt down in front of the man.

First, she took the end of his penis into her small mouth and sucked the remaining semen and chocolate from the end of his prick, and then she started to lick his balls; her long blonde hair cascading down her slender back to just above her small bottom. The tiny 1st grader licked Jim's large hairy testicles with long strokes of her small tongue, starting just above his rectum and working her way up to the base of his cock. She held his semi-flaccid cock in her small hand to keep it from resting on the top of her head while she worked.

Howard, who had a particular fancy for very young girls, could hardly contain himself at the sight of the tiny 6-year-old avidly licking Jim's balls. He made a mental note to himself to try that chocolate trick sometime and then said, "Okay!! Contest is over...The judge declares the following winners. Trisha wins for getting her man to cum first!"

And everyone applauded little Trisha for the 8-year-olds cock-sucking skills.

"And Jim for putting out the most candles! Now, uh...Jennifer...before those candles burn all the way into the cake, why don't you make a wish and blow them out the more traditional way?"

The little girl did, making a big show of making a secret wish before she put out the remaining five flames.

"Okay...So what did I win??!!" asked Trisha, as soon as Jenny had put out the candles.

Little Betty had finished "cleaning" Jim's penis and balls, though she had a significant amount of chocolate on her face to show that she had more enthusiasm than accuracy, so Jim sat up and said, "Well, honey. You just won the starring role in my next big video production!"

"Oh...Really! You mean like that one you made with Lisa three months ago? Where she got to Disney Land!!??"

"That's right, honey, only this one's not in Disney Land. This one's gonna take place at the Grand Canyon."

"OH WOW!!! DADDY," she said, turning to Dave, "CAN I REALLY GO, PLEASE...CAN I??"

"Sure, honey. School's over in a month anyway, so you've the whole vacation to travel the west with Jim."

The other girls were impressed! Of them, only Julie had starred in one of Jim Phillips' special "full-length" kiddie porn productions, though they all knew about them except Tina. Jim Phillips made about one major production a year with locations and scripts that went far beyond his living and bed rooms. The youngsters knew that any young girl that starred in one of his big pictures got to travel to the locations and see all the sights, and generally got treated like a queen. They also knew that the "star" of the film had to fuck and suck A LOT of strange men, and usually had to do things that didn't happen around the neighborhood. When Julie had starred in a film at the age of 7, she'd gotten introduced to bondage and golden showers. They all envied little Trisha.

Jim had told all the adults in the group what the "grand prize" was going to be for the kids before the party had begun, so he knew that no matter which girl had won, he already had his next little star. The only problem would have been if his newest young lover, 11-year-old Tina, had won. But he hadn't expected her to since she was still pretty new to this game; and not used to group sex just yet. Now he knew that Dave's youngster, little 8-year-old Trisha was going to be his next young star. His script was nearly complete, and many of the arrangements had been made with some of his contacts in the west. Little Trisha was going to explore the Grand Canyon with a group of men that Jim was lining up, and, in keeping with the mode of transportation in the Grand Canyon, was going to learn an awful lot about the sex organs of a donkey!! That pony tail of hers was going to look nice hanging down next to the long dong of an excited donkey.

"Hey...So what's the man's prize?" asked Jennifer.

"Well, since I won, I guess I get to be in the movie too!" and everyone laughed because they all knew that, like Alfred Hitchcock, Jim always made an appearance in his big video productions, even if it was just from the waist down!

Chapter Sixteen

Tina was amazed at the prize that little Trisha had won. Like any young girl she'd always had dreams and fantasies of becoming a movie star, but never realized that the reality could be so close to home. Of course, she wasn't too sure that she'd really want to become a "star" in one of Jim Phillips' films, seeing as he had already tricked her into "starring" in one. But still, a trip to the Grand Canyon sure sounded nice!! Maybe next contest she'd try a little harder.

"Okay, kids...Before you dive in and eat that cake, the guys get to eat their desert first...YOU! So come on over here and line up on the couch. Come on...You too, Betty!!"

All five little girls walked over to the couch and sat down next to each other, wondering what Jim had planned.

"Okay...Now you all put your rears toward the front...Slide forward! That's good. Guys...Hey...COME AND GET IT!!!"

With that, Jim knelt down in front of Tina, grabbed one of her knees in each hand and lifted them up and apart. Tina fell back with a squeak as her slender legs were parted; revealing her hairless cunt to Jim's gaze. He wasted no time, but immediately dipped his face down to contact her bald mound; probing her hairless pussy lips with his tongue and immediately concentrating on the small clitoris that peeked out from the top of her smooth slit.

"All RIGHT!" said Howard as he made a bee line to Betty, grabbing a small leg in each hand; almost lifting her off the couch and planting his face into the 6-year-old's tiny crotch. Betty squealed that it tickled and squirmed under Howard's attack on her tiny vagina, the lips so smooth and small that his tongue covered her entire opening and actually stretched her labia as he probed her tiny recess with his oral probe. There was only one thing Howard liked better than licking a very young girl's smooth opening, and that was having them lick him until he blasted their faces with his hot cum. For Howard, the younger the better, and no holds or holes barred.

The other men quickly joined in the group cunnilingus fest with much giggling on the part of the little ladies involved. Cathy and Evelyn looked up from cutting the cake to watch the scene before them; five slender naked little girls, all lined up on the couch, legs held in the air and tender hairless cunts exposed to five adult men, who kneeled before them as before an altar, each man tasting the juices that his pre-teen's pussy offered. For the little girls, the giggling soon stopped and the moans soon began as each man did his best to give his little girl an orgasm.

Tina quickly lost her shock at the assault on her little cunt, and began to feel the waves of pleasure from her small pussy. After initially concentrating on her clit, Jim had moved to massaging her entire pussy with his tongue, pushing it deeply between the folds of her hairless labia while putting pressure on her clit with his upper lip and teeth.

Tina reached down and stroked his head between her upraised legs, trying to send the message that she loved what he was doing to her. After a minute, he reached for one of her hands and placed it on her own leg, showing her that he wanted her to hold her own slender legs in the air. Tina did it, placing a hand behind each of her knees, freeing Jim's hands, and immediately the man began to probe her small cunt with his fingers as well as his tongue.

With one hand he spread the small bald lips of her 11-year-old vagina while inserting his finger slowly up into her cunt. Tina could feel her young passages stretching to allow his finger access to her interior, probing her inner reaches like a small cock. It turned her on to feel the grown up man's finger manipulating her inexperienced pussy. The lips of her pre-teen opening were held open by his other hand, exposing the coral inner reaches of her cunt to his hot breath, sending shivering sensations through her young body.

Next to her, 9-year-old Jennifer was beginning to breathe hard, and without even realizing it, she took Tina's hand in hers and held it tightly as Tom licked her closer and closer to orgasm.

The scene on the couch was a young lover's delight; five small girls, the oldest only 11; each with her legs waving up in the air and moaning while five grown men licked and fondled their small, hairless pre-teen cunts. Some of the men held the youngster's legs apart as they moved their faces up and down on the child's smooth pussy. Jennifer and Tina each held their own legs up, knees spread and back while their young vaginas were probed and prodded by their older lovers.

Howard used one arm across both of Betty's small legs to hold them up in the air, while his tongue probed her tiny cunt opening, and the pinkie finger of his other hand tried to enter her impossibly small rectum. The 6-year-old gave a little "OH!" of surprise when her sphincter finally succumbed and Howard's pinkie finger entered her back door to the first knuckle. Howard, with visions of ramming his throbbing erection in either of Betty's 6-year-old openings, licked the youngster all the more. Even though she was too young to have an orgasm, Betty still enjoyed the sensation, and knew that she was turning Howard on by giving him access to her privates. She also knew that later, Howard was going to make sure that the 1st grader got his pent up load of hot cum in her mouth!! The tiny blonde child looked forward to it.

All at once, Julie began to cum; her moans getting louder and turning into a screech as her hands flew to Dave's head and pulled his face deeper into her hairless pre-teen opening. "GUHHH GUHHHH GUHHHHH," she grunted as the spasms of orgasm jerked the 10-year-old child.

Her head snapped forward and back with each spasm of her cunt. Dave pushed his face deeper into the 5th grader's pre-pubescent vagina, loving the way the inner walls grasped at this probing tongue, and the way her sweet pre-teen juices coated his cheeks and chin!

Julie's orgasm seemed to set off a chain reaction with first her sister Jennifer starting to spasm, and then Trisha groaning as if in pain, but instead was actually in ecstasy.

Jennifer opened her mouth, but no sound came out - - her eyes flew open, but didn't see anything. Her hips bucked up and down and it was all John could do to keep his lips in contact with her twitching pre-teen cunt. She squeezed on Tina's hand so hard that it brought Tina back from the brink of her own dance with convulsive pleasure.


Cathy was amazed that an 8-year-old could cum so hard, and said as much to Evelyn. Both women were amazed at how hot the little 3rd grader was as they watched her slender legs straighten and bend with the rhythm of her pulsing cunny.

Even Betty seemed to be really getting into having her tiny sex opening licked and massaged by Howard; the 6-year-old had one hand on his head, holding onto his hair, while the other hand had reached back under her bottom and was firmly grasping one of her small ass cheeks, holding her tiny ass open so that Howard could probe even deeper into her unbelievably tight rectum with his pinkie finger. Her body squirmed under the fat man's assault on her small sex organs.

The whole couch was filled with small girls, thrashing and convulsing in orgasm; pouring out the juices of their pre-teen cunny's to the waiting mouths of these men who loved sucking and fucking little girls.

Tina could stand it no more; her head snapped backward and her mouth opened in a long deep moan as immense wave after wave of pleasure radiated from between her open legs to travel up her body, through her belly and flat chest, and explode just behind her eyeballs. Her legs snapped straight out, the muscles taut; her chest flushed deep red; her jaw twitched but no coherent sound came out.

"AHHHHHHHRHRHRRRRRRRGGRGRGGGGGGHGHGHHHHHHHHH," was all she could say, and then she began to convulse; her hips moving in short, sharp jerks up and down into Jim's mouth.

Jim could feel each convulsion on his finger, now inserted deeply into her fresh, school-girl cunt. Her vagina was sucking on his finger - - in...out - - with each contraction of pleasure that wracked the little girl.

Tina, without realizing it, was now squeezing back on Jennifer's hand as hard as Jennifer had been squeezing hers. In a small part of her mind, Tina thought that it felt good to have the company of other little girls when having sex, this being the first time that she'd ever had sex with another little girl around (not counting of course her masturbation in the same room she shared with her little sister). It made her feel less strange to know that she wasn't perverted for letting a grown man lick her pussy to orgasm, and that she wasn't the only pre-teen girl to like having orgasms with grown men.

Tina was the last to begin recovering from her shuddering orgasm. When she brought her head back to a normal position and looked down the couch, all the youngsters were panting and letting their legs fall down on their older lovers. The men, for their part, had stopped their intense oral manipulation of the children's cunts, and were now mostly just rubbing their partner's hairless opening with their hands and fingers, and commenting to each other on how the kids had cum so hard. Tina still didn't have the concentration to pay attention to what was being said, other than to get the impression that it was complimentary!

After a minute or two of post-orgasm recovery, Cathy and Evelyn announced that the cake was cut up and ready for consumption. Betty, of course, was the first one up to grab her piece of cake. She was still just barely too young to have an orgasm, and so did not have to recover her wits like the other girls. But one by one, each of them got up off the couch and went to get their piece of cum covered birthday cake.

"Damn, that was nice Jim! How is it you always manage to plan the best little parties?" asked Dave.

"Hey, creative mind!! And besides, I get a lot of ideas from the other film makers I've met."

"Speaking of which," said Dave, "how long before your next trip to Amsterdam to sell a new batch?"

"Well, I was planning on going at the end of the month," he said, turning away from the VCR where he'd just popped in a fresh tape of kiddie porn. "But now I think I might hold off a little and see what kind of material I can work up using Tina. I think Tina has some real potential, and just the right looks - - you know with the school uniform and all - - to really sell well?"

"Yeah, she's hot alright. Hey, if you need any help in that department, let me know."

"Count me in TOO!"

"Hey...Me too!" All the men piped up. When it came to fucking or sucking Tina, all these men were anxious to help in her belated introduction to every sexual perversion that could be captured on film.

"HEEEYYYY...Have I ever forgotten you guys? Don't worry about it. Believe me, if I need the help, I'll call you guys first."

On the other side of the room the little girls were having their own conversation.

"You can't even taste the cum on this cake."

"Yeah...I know. I can see it, but it doesn't taste like anything when you mix it with the chocolate."

"You can taste it if you lick straight from a man's wiener!" said little Betty, who knew whereof she spoke. This comment evoked general laughter from the kids, and comments that Betty must know what she's talking about. The little girls, being children, quickly consumed their first portions of cake and most asked for a second, smaller piece, semen coating and all!

Tina sat down next to Jennifer, wanting to ask the girl some questions about the videos she'd seen her in. "Ahh Jennifer...ahh didn't it bother you to, like, have someone film you all those times?"

"No. I been on film LOTS of times; since I was four years old, in fact."

"But...well, it seemed like they hurt you pretty bad. Didn't that bother you?"

"Well...uh. Yeah. I guess it hurt sometimes, but most of the time my Daddy or the other men treat me real good. My mom says that sometimes men like to hurt little girls 'cause it turns them on, so when it hurts, I just think about how much it's turning my Daddy or whoever on, and it never lasts very long anyway. Mom says it makes me more attractive to men when they know I'll do whatever they want. Doesn't your Dad ever hurt you?"

Tina felt suddenly embarrassed. Her Dad didn't even know Tina knew anything about sex, let alone ever HAVING sex with his little girl. One part of Tina knew that this was normal, but the other part wanted to fit in with her newfound group of friends and found it awkward to explain that she DIDN'T have sex with her father. "Well...uh...My Daddy never...I mean...We never..."

Julie jumped in to save Tina, knowing what she was trying to say.

"She doesn't do it with her Dad!"

"Why? Don't you love him?" asked Jennifer.

"Well, Yeah I love him, but he never even wants me to learn about anything. I don't think he'd want to, you know, do it with me."

"Oh," said Jennifer. Now it was her turn to be a little embarrassed. She'd been involved with sexual activities with her father and others from the time she started to talk! She'd always been told NEVER to discuss it outside the home because there were lots of people who weren't as loving as her family and that those other people weren't normal, even if they were the majority! She never expected to meet someone from one of those families at one of Jim Phillips' parties, especially when that someone was sitting next to her naked and eating chocolate cake with semen splashed all over it. "I guess that's okay, I mean I love my Daddy a lot, so I'll do anything he tells me to. Maybe your Daddy will love you like that someday too, but I guess it's okay for now."

Then she brightened, "Hey...You got US! We can all do things together, I mean at least for today, and if you can ever come over to our house our Daddy would love to do things with all of us."

Tina thought it a strange invitation, but liked the feeling of instant acceptance from Jennifer and her sister Julie. It would be nice to be part of a really loving family, especially if it involved orgasms and more sex. Her own family was starting to look shabby in comparison to the loving attention that everyone paid the little girls in Jim Phillips' house.

"Yeah...I'd like that..." she said, and the children exchanged addresses; Tina realizing that Jennifer and Julie lived only two blocks away, across the park.

"How come I never saw you in school?" asked Jenny.

"I go to Our Lady of Grace Catholic School," Tina answered.

"Oh...No wonder. Hey!! Look at this!!" she said, pointing at the TV screen.

On screen a little, naked, dirty-blonde girl of about 5 was standing in the middle of a group of six men. Each of the men were each stroking their large cocks, some rubbing them against parts of the child as they masturbated over her.

One man reached down and grabbed the child by the hair, not pulling, but controlling the movement of her head. He pushed her face forward until her lips were pushed up against the head of one particularly large penis, the head of which was purple and looked ready to pop. And pop it did, sending a geyser of white semen into the 5-year-old's open mouth.

Spurt after spurt of cum shot from the large erection, and the man moved his cock all over the pre-schooler's face as he covered her pretty features in his sperm.

No sooner had he shot his last than the child had her face pushed up against another man in the group, who immediately shot a wad of jizm into the child's right eye. The 5-year-old flinched back, but could not escape the onslaught that splashed onto her face. Her small hand reached up to rub her eye just as a third man began to spray the left side of her face, hitting the side of her nose and even sending a spray of love juice into her left ear.

Still, the man didn't let go of the little girl, moving her to face another man who was masturbating furiously. The little pre-schooler managed to get her eye clear just in time to have the fourth man shoot an immense load of cum across the lips of her mouth. Someone reached in and pulled down on the little girl's chin, reminding her to open her mouth, and the child obeyed, as a second large load shot right inside, missing her lips completely. The man's accuracy and volume both dwindled quickly, and the rest of his load wound up on her neck and chest, where it rolled down her body.

The fifth man stepped up to the little girl and tried to shoot his load into her mouth, but instead of shooting from the end of his cock, his semen seemed to dribble out the end, coating the man's own fingers more than getting on the small girl standing, waiting for his cum. Finally, the man just rubbed his cock on the girl's face, and rubbed the semen from his hands onto her forehead where it began to drip down over her left eye.

When that man stepped back, the sixth man moved around to the front of the child. He never lost his grip on her head, and as he jerked he pulled her mouth closer to the end of his swollen erection. The youngster's eyes moved from watching the cock being beating off in front of her to the face of the man jerking off over her. He must have given her some verbal instructions because the girl opened real wide, and the man shoved his penis into her pre-school mouth. He pulled on her head once...twice, and though only the head of his cock would fit in her mouth, you could tell by the jerking of his large organ that he was cumming in the 5-year-old's mouth.

The youngster's eyes were wide open, focused on the base of the erection that was shoved into her stretched mouth. Her head jerked a little, moved by the spasms of the spitting penis in her mouth.

Suddenly, an explosion of sperm shot from the side of child's mouth. It seems that the man had flooded her mouth with the first load, and the second had nowhere to go when it was forcefully pumped into her little mouth. Sperm was running from all sides of the 5-year-old's mouth, coming in waves as it was pumped into her from the churning testicles of the man towering over her.

Finally, the man backed off from the girl, shooting one last load onto her upper lip. The youngster coughed up some semen that had gone down the wrong pipe, and then the hand that had never left the back of her head, turned her to face the camera. Her sweet, smooth 5-year-old face was covered from top to bottom in a rapidly drying coating of male cum. Large strings of cum were dangling from her chin, some falling to the floor, and some sticking to her flat, almost sunken chest, where it rolled down to the hairless crevice that peeked out from between her skinny legs.

The scene faded to black, and then the next scene in the montage tape started.

Chapter Seventeen

"Do you know who that was, Tina?" asked Jennifer.

"I know!! I know!!" said Betty.

"Hush...I asked Tina!! Can you guess?"

"Uhhh...Was that you?" she asked Jennifer.

"No...It was ME!" said Julie. "That's like one of the first times our Dad let me on tape! Uncle Jim filmed it right here...well, upstairs anyway."

"How old were you looked real young?"

"I had just turned 5! It's like Jenny said, Daddy started loving us when we were real young so I already knew what cum tasted like. He wanted me to taste different men, so we had a bunch of men come here and I did it with them. Not bad for my first time on film, huh?" she said with obvious pride.

"You got to do a movie with Mr. Phillips one time too, didn't you?"

"Yeah. I got to go to North Carolina; to the Smokey mountains. Jim had rented a cabin way back in the woods where we stayed and we'd go to see all the sights. I liked the swinging bridge on Grandfather Mountain the best!"

"What was the movie about?"

"Oh...It was all about how backwoods people used to live before there was electricity and all that stuff. We all got dressed up in real old clothes and stuff, and pretended we were backwoods people. I was the only girl in a family with 8 really big brothers...they weren't really my brothers or anything, it was just the movie. Anyway, in the movie I got, like, caught by each one of the brother's, and they all forced me to do different things."

"Tell her about the deer!!"

Julie laughed, " time we were shooting this scene where two of the brothers chased me into the woods and were like ripping my clothes off...they were both naked already, and we were filming this scene and all, and this deer comes running out of the woods and like almost trips over one of the guys! I don't know who was more scared, that guy or the deer. He let out a scream and fell backwards on his ass and rolls over trying to get away from this deer. The deer sorta spins around and shoots off in another direction faster than I've ever seen anything run. So everyone cracks up, we're laughing an all, and suddenly this guy is yelling and jumping up and down holding his bottom. Everyone runs over to him and he's bleeding all over the place from a cut on his ass!"

By now, all the other girls are giggling because they'd heard the story before and Julie is laughing while she's telling it, so Tina begins to chuckle along too.

"Anyway, they all decide he needs stitches, so we all get dressed in our real clothes, walk back to the car and drive to the local hospital half an hour away. We're all sitting in the waiting room, waiting, when this doctor comes out and asks Jim what happened. Jim says that we were all sitting on the porch and that this guy leaned against the rail and it gave way, and he musta cut himself on a nail or something. That's the story we all agreed on, when we drove into town. The doctor looks at Jim for a second, not saying anything, and then he says, 'Uh huh. Okay...That's what he said, and I guess it's none of my business, but I sure can't imagine how he managed to get a cut that needed 20 stitches on his butt when there's no sign of a hole in his pants! Sure beats me.' Then he starts to walk off, but just before he goes through the door back to the surgery area, he turns to Jim and says, 'By the way, that porch of yours. You might want to cut back some of the vegetation a bit. Seems your friend not only got hisself a nasty cut on the rear, but somehow, he's managed to get poison ivy all over his utensil on the other side, if you know what I mean. And there ain't no hole in that side of his pants, either!' And with that he walks back into the other room. So anyhow that guy didn't get to be in any more scenes in THAT movie, if you know what I mean!"

All the girls cracked up, Tina with them. Julie had told this story a dozen times and had it down perfect. The adults across the room looked up at this explosion of laughter from this group of naked little girls, and wondered, briefly, what was so funny, but they quickly went back to their 'adult' talk, mostly a running commentary on the scene after scene of kiddie porn that was playing on the TV.

Jim had amassed an amazing collection over the years; not surprising considering that was how he made his living. His camera was almost constantly running, and every few months he would make a trip to see his friends in Amsterdam to sell them the latest clips. They paid generously for his loops, and even more for one of his 'features'. Jim might spend $10,000 in making a feature, though he recouped some of that by charging some of the men involved who wanted to be "actors".

His features were scripted, costumed, and filmed at various sites around the United States. The young girls he starred were invariably there with the permission of their parents. He always tried to come up with a theme for each film, and the plot and location revolved around the theme. Jim Phillips thought of himself as Roman Polanski at heart, with the only difference being that he wasn't afraid to use the little girls sexually in any way that he thought would sell. However, he drew the line at making 'snuff' films, though he'd been offered immense amounts of cash for that type of movie.

But just about anything else was considered okay. If bondage was required, then some small girl would get tied up. If a little pain was appropriate, then a young pre-teen would be sure to feel it. If the scene called for a really innocent girl, then Jim had ways of getting inexperienced virgins to use. Golden problem. Gang problem. problem. problem.

Age and experience didn't matter to Jim. The youngest girl he'd ever used had been 3 years old. He'd gotten a group of fifteen men to jerk off in her mouth, and then had tied her up to be fucked by a Great Dane! The oldest woman to appear in one of his films was 63, a grandmother who got off on using a whip on her own granddaughter while the youngster was being fucked by her grandfather. It was all grist for his roving video camera, and money in his pocket!

Jim, of course, had to be careful, as his pursuits weren't exactly legal. He kept all of his kiddie-porn on easily erasable video. He'd built a special room in which to store his collection. This room needed a combination to open, though there was no lock on the door. If the door was opened without the combination, then a transformer was tripped off that generated a powerful magnetic field in the room. In a second, every tape and disk in there would be 'de-gaussed'; erased, and no physical evidence would be available " be used against you in a court of law." Jim didn't worry about accidental erasure. He had copies of most of his stuff in a storage locker under a false i.d. If he ever needed to re-create the best parts of his collection, then he could have it all back and copied again in a week or so.

Jim's friends had a vague idea that this was how he made his money. They didn't pry, but they did enjoy the fruits of his labors. There was a core group of men that he would invite over whenever he had a new little girl that needed teaching, like Tina. Tina's education had really only just begun, and the men were all looking forward to helping her in her up coming lessons.

Everyone enjoyed talking for a while; no one bothering to get dressed. The kiddie-porn played on as a background, the way some people put music on in the background. Scene after scene played out with kids of all ages involved with men of all ages. There were scenes with single young girls and multiple adult men. Scenes with a young boy and adult women. Scenes involving light bondage; no real pain involved so that the party mood would not be ruined.

There was one scene where a grown man stood and pissed all over the front of a 12-year-old girl whose small breasts were just beginning to form; Tina had her back turned and failed to see that scene, otherwise she would have been shocked. The other girls had either seen such scenes, or been the targets of some hot streams of piss before, so they didn't think to mention it, even if they did see it. The effect on the men was to cause erections to begin to rise again, and thoughts to wander back to the group of small nude girls giggling on the other side of the room.

"Okay folks...As the official host of this party I guess it's time for the next little game. It's called 'Who's that?' Come on over here girls...Come on...gather round. Okay, here's how it works!" Jim said as he pulled a box down from one of the bookcases at the end of the room. "Each of you girls has to wear a blindfold."

Jim opened the box and began to take out a set of leather blindfolds as he spoke.

"Then you're all gonna line up here on the floor on your hands and knees. Then, us adults, and that means Cathy and Evelyn too, are gonna take turns fucking you. When you hear Betty say 'NOW!' you have to shout out who you think has their cock in you!"

"Uh...How are Cathy and it?" asked Tina in an embarrassed voice.

Then from across the room everyone heard, "TA DAAAAAA!!" from Cathy as she and Evelyn walked across the room proudly displaying their newly attached, rubber hard-ons. The fake dicks swung back and forth as the women walked across the room, and Tina's question was instantly answered by the sight of these strap-on dildoes.

"That's how," said Jim. "Now, here's the catch. Any adult who gets 'caught' twice has to drop out of the game! They lose if you girls can guess who they are twice. But you can't reveal that you are out of the game by talking. You girls lose if you guess wrong three times. The last two people left fucking will be the best guessing girl, and the hardest to guess adult! For them I have another little prize all set up. Sound like fun?"

"Oh, yeah!" "Sure sounds good to me!" "Wait while I disguise my dick!" Those comments from the adults standing around the clump of four girls.

"Okay!" said Jennifer, and immediately stepped up to be blindfolded.

The other adults each grabbed a blindfold and tied them onto the willing youngsters. All blindfolded, except for Betty, the four pre-teens were placed next to each other on the floor on their hands and knees.

"Now, Betty, when I point at you, you say 'NOW!', and then you girls have to guess who your partner is then. When all of the girls have guessed, we all switch partners again. I've got my darkroom timer set up where we can see it. You fuck for one minute, and then switch every time the minute hand reaches the top. NO TALKING!! Otherwise these bright little girls are gonna use your voice to know where you are! Okay, everyone got the rules?"

Everyone agreed that they had the rules pretty much down pat, and another minute was spent applying K-Y jell to hard ready cocks, and small, hairless, young pussies. When each of the little girls had been sufficiently prepared to receive a hard adult erection, Jim said, "Ready...Set...FUCK!" and the seven adults each made a bee line toward the youngster of his or her choice.

Needless to say, with seven adults ready to fuck, and only four pre-teen cunts to be filled, a little silent negotiation took place before each girl had an adult behind her, prodding her small opening with a long hard cock. Cathy, Jim, and Tom were forced to sit out the first minute of fucking, but still got to enjoy the sight of each of the little pre-teens gasping as their young vaginas were stretched by the invading members.

"AAAhhhh," said Tina, as she felt the cock that had been placed between her smooth 11-year-old labia, penetrate deep into her tight pussy.

A pair of large hands grabbed her slender waist and pulled her forcefully back onto the erection. Tina was not as used to being fucked as the other young girls, and so still felt immensely stretched by the hard adult penis being shoved up inside her. The cock seemed much longer than any she'd ever had before, and the large hands on her waist suggested to her that it was not one of the women with the strap-on cocks now starting to fuck the little 6th grader. Of course the give-away was the grunts of passion she heard close to the back of her head, as her partner leaned over, almost laying on Tina's back, as he began to hump her hard.

It certainly seemed like more than a minute, but after humping little Tina for a time, the man straightened up, and removed his hard penis from the youngster's soft young cunt. She was actually disappointed. The fucking had started to feel good, and for a second, she had forgotten that it was a game. It was strange to be fucked while blind-folded. It made the sensations in her young pussy feel that much more intense. But before too long - - a few seconds, really - - Tina felt another large pole being pushed against the smooth outer lips of her vagina. The head of the new cock popped past the entrance to her tight, young cunt and the shaft slid slowly into the small girl.

Suddenly, she heard Betty shout, "NOW!" and her mind went blank. 'Who was this?' It shocked Tina to realize that she was being fucked and she didn't have any clue as to who it was!!! Just a week and a half ago, she had been a good little catholic school virgin, knowing nothing about sex except for the furtive conversations between the other girls in her 6th grad class. Now, she was on her hands and knees letting anybody who wanted to, fuck her moist, pink, hairless cunny! With all these thoughts suddenly in her head, she didn't even hear Jennifer, as she went first to shout out her guess as to WHO'S THAT?!

"Wrong..." said Betty when Julie guessed Tom. "Now you, Tina."

"Uhhh Uhhhh...I don't know!!"

"You gotta guess!" insisted the little 6-year-old.

"Uhh...Okay...uhhh, JIM!"

"Wrong...Okay...Julie and each got one wrong. Okay...GO!"

And suddenly the person in Tina's pussy began to fuck her in earnest. A pair of slender hands grabbed her hips, and she suddenly realized that one of the women was fucking her. She could feel the leather straps holding the dildo in place as they pounded against her butt. The plastic cock stretched her insides, and she began to feel good again, when suddenly it was pulled from her clutching pre-teen cunt.

'Damn, this is frustrating!' she thought to herself. Just as it begins to feel good, the fucking ends and the adults all re-arrange themselves.

Large hands took hold of her small round ass cheeks and spread them apart as a hot cock bumped up against the lips of her small cunt. This man wasted no time in shoving his cock hard up into the 6th grader. He moaned, but that didn't give away his identity. Once again, Tina didn't recognize who was fucking her young cunt. Not until the man reached around the 11-year-old with one arm, hugging her small body to his much larger form. Then she realized that Howard, the large overweight man, was fucking her small body. He grunted as he humped, shoving his erection hard into the little girl, causing Tina to be jerked back and forth under him. If it weren't for the fact that he was holding onto her, Tina would have gone sprawling forward on the carpet from the force of his thrusts.

And, though the fucking she was getting was rough, Tina began to feel the pleasure starting once again. Howard's hard thrusts were stretching the skin of her labia and stimulating her clit so that Tina knew she could cum, if the fucking lasted long enough. But once again, they heard Betty shout, "NOW!"

This time, Tina didn't hesitate, and shouted out, "HOWARD!!" before anyone else. Jennifer and Julie quickly gave their guesses too, but both were declared wrong! Trisha guessed Cathy, and wasn't told that she was wrong.

Suddenly, Tina realized something and spoke up, "Hey...that's not fair. We know our scores, but what about the adults!!??"

"That's part of the challenge, Tina," she heard Jim's voice from across the room. "Even if one of us gets caught twice, we don't declare ourselves out of the game! That way, unless you've already been keeping count, you can't figure out how many of us are still back here ready to take our turns!! It means you have to fuck and think at the same time...and that's what makes it such a challenging game!"

"Ohhh MAN!" "AAwwwww," and other moans of sudden realization came from the bent over little girls. But before they could protest too much, each was being battered again by an adult, each getting fucked so that they couldn't keep all the necessary numbers straight in their minds.

Tina knew she had guessed right and that it was Fat Howard that was holding her around the waist, and humping her. His cock, felt good and, though each youngster had been liberally greased with K-Y before the game started, Tina could tell that her own natural lubrication was becoming more copious between her reddened labia. And once again, the man stopped and left the 6th grader panting and wishing that the fucking would not end.

Another set of hands on her hips, and another cock was inserted into young Tina. By this time, all the girls were getting turned on. Tina could hear them panting and moaning next to her as they too began to get turned on by the fucking cocks. She could hear the sound of small, round pre-teen butts slapping against the thighs of the adults doing the fucking as the young girls were pulled back hard onto the penetrating poles of hard meat. The men doing the fucking weren't silent either, as grunts of effort, and moans of pleasure could be heard all down the line. Tina's own pussy was starting to twitch, and she could feel that an orgasm was just around the corner, when once again Betty called, "NOW!"

Trisha blurted out Tom's name, and was called wrong. Jennifer guessed Evelyn, and was also called wrong. Julie took a stab and also said Evelyn, and this time, she wasn't called wrong. When it came to Tina's turn, she didn't have a clue. The cock in her had not stopped its slow rocking back and forth in her small cunt. She took a guess and said Tom, and was not called wrong.

"Gotcha..." she said over her shoulder, and was answered with a couple of hard thrusts into her young pussy.

The hands tightened around her waist again, and the pounding began again. The youngsters were really beginning to get turned on, and Julie was beginning to moan loudly with each breath. After another minute, the men all stopped again, and withdrew.

"NO!! Fuck me some more! Please keep fucking me!" said Julie, her pleading indicating that she was close to cumming.

Another switch in partners, and Tina felt herself in a powerful grip. The hands on her hips were large, and her slender body was slammed back hard onto a long pole of cock. The cock had no trouble entering the 11-year-old girl; her well-used pussy was lubricating copiously in reaction to the hard sex. The power of the slamming that Tina was getting made her lose all ability to THINK straight. She forgot about the game and concentrated instead on the orgasm building in her pre-teen cunny. The man humping her reached up with both hands and took her smooth shoulders, using them to drive the little girl back onto his hard cock.

"Nuuuhhh Nuhhhh Nuuuhhh," said Tina with each hard thrust into her body; the air was being driven from her lungs as the cock inside her used up every spare centimeter of space in her pre-teen belly. Suddenly, her cunt convulsed hard on the large erection, and Tina began to cum.

"AAAAAEEEEEIEIIIIIII," she cried as her small body spasmed hard, and the pleasure swept through her small frame.

Even Tina could feel the insides of her cunt gripping the large penis there, milking it, sucking it, and squeezing the hard member within her. Whoever it was had stopped slam fucking the little girl when she started to cum, and now he just kept his erection held deep within her. He held her shoulders, though it was difficult with the way young Tina was convulsing, and pulled the 11-year-old back onto his cock; making sure the little girl stayed skewered on his hot pole.

Down the line, Julie too was cumming and convulsing; her hairless pussy jerking hard as a large penis shoved into her 10-year-old form. Both little girls moaned and jerked and convulsed and shouted as their small pre-teen bodies were racked with orgasms.

Tina finally collapsed; her arms no longer able to hold her face off the floor. She let the front of her body hit the carpet, the nipples on her small pre-breasts just touching the ground. Her lover let her fall, but quickly grabbed her hips so that she wouldn't fall completely off his still throbbing penis.

Again, he began to fuck the little girl who was so helpless. The fucking got harder, and 11-year-old Tina was pushed about like a rag-doll, her face moving back and forth on the carpet as the man drove his cock into her hairless slit again and again and again. She could hear Julie sobbing as she too was continuously fucked through her orgasm.

'My GOD!' thought Tina, 'I really LOVE THIS!'

Nine-year-old Jennifer was saying, "Fuck me...Fuck me...Fuck me...Fuck me..." over and over again, obviously getting ready for her own orgasm.

"NOW!" said Betty

Trisha shouted out Jim's name.


And Cathy said, "Who, Jennifer? Who should keep fucking you?"

"I don't CARE! Fuck me...Uhh Dave!"

"Okay, sweetheart. You got me. I'm gonna FUCK...YOU...HARD," and with each word, Tina could hear that he slammed himself home into the 9-year-old birthday girl.

"Tina...who do you guess?"

Tina was still face down on the floor, and it took all the strength in her to lift herself up. Given the power of the wonderful fucking she had just received, Tina softly said, "John" and knew that she was right. Only his big powerful arms could have shoved her small 11-year-old body around like that, using her entire pre-teen form as a masturbation tool, as a hot, wet, tight clamp around his cock.

"Okay...Julie...Julie! You gotta guess."

Still panting from her orgasm, Tina heard Julie softly say Dave's name. From somewhere nearby, Jim said, "Sorry Julie, that's three wrong. You're out of the game. Here...Lemme take that blindfold off and you can watch the rest of the game."

He went over to the young girl and undid her blindfold. As soon as it was off, Julie turned to see who had screwed her to such an orgasm and was surprised to see Cathy looking down at her; the plastic cock still stretching her tight hairless cunt. Cathy put her finger to her mouth to silence Julie's gasp of surprise and removed the dildo from her. All the other girls could hear was Julie getting up and walking over to the couch to watch while the rest of them continued to play the game.

On the couch with Julie were Howard and Tom, both of whom had been found out twice already and so were out of the running. They wasted no time in starting to fondle the naked 10-year-old, and began to play their own game on the couch.

Meanwhile the three youngsters remaining in the game began again. After a few more switches, and a screeching orgasm by Jennifer, Evelyn, Cathy and John had been found out. Jennifer had also been eliminated so that finally, Dave and Jim were left humping Tina and Trisha in the middle of the living room. Betty had been enjoying her role as master of ceremonies, though she hadn't been keeping score, and one of the adults was always coaching her on what to say and when to say it. Now most of the group was enjoying the screwing being given to the little girls.

Tina was starting to get tired. Not that she wanted to stop fucking; the pleasure in her young cunt was still ever-present whenever a hard cock was being pushed into her. But her arms were tired of holding herself up in a kneeling position. She had two wrong points and so did Trisha. If either of them guessed wrong this time, the other would be the winner.

When Betty said, "Okay...NOW!" Tina was in a quandary. The person fucking her felt familiar, but she didn't want to be wrong! Being as how she had only been having sex for a week and a half, the only 'familiar' person to her would be Jim, and so that's what she said. And she was right!

Then when Trisha guessed, she said "Tom," who answered her from the couch, "Sorry little lady...but I'm way over here, and my dick doesn't reach that far!"

Tina was the winner for the girls and Dave was the winner for the Adults. Each man reached down and undid the blindfolds on the girls bent over in front of them, then leaned down and kissed them before withdrawing their still hard cocks.

"So, what's the prize?" Dave asked, as he helped Trisha to her feet. The 8-year-old wasn't too steady, having been fucking for the last 20 minutes with only short breaks between partners.

"Well, I guess that you and Tina here get to star in one of my short subjects! How's that sound, Tina...? Want to be the star of a short movie?"

"Sure," she said as Jim helped her to her feet and gave her a big hug.

"Great. I'll let you know all the details when I get it arranged."

Chapter Eighteen

"Hey, Man!" called Howard. "Like now that all the prizes have been given out, do you think I could have a chance to cum. I've been watching you guys all afternoon, and I'm ready to BUST!"

"Sounds good to us!" said both women; not surprisingly, since they hadn't managed to keep their hands from each other all day anyway.

"Hey...I'm ready to pop again."

"Let's go for it!" and similar comments were made by the other men.

"Okay, kids...I guess it's a free-for-all!" said Jim, and he immediately took Tina over to the couch. "Come here sweetheart. Now, lean over the back...That's good. Now spread your legs, honey."

He had guided the little elementary school girl to the back of the couch, and then made her lean over it, resting most of her weight on her stomach. Her feet left the floor as she fell forward and caught herself with her hands to keep from falling completely over the couch. Jim Phillips wasted no time in spreading her legs and pushing a finger deep into her bald pussy.

"Yeah, honey. Keep those legs spread for me. I'm gonna fuck you so deep, sweetheart, just you wait."

Tina didn't have to wait long. She soon felt his finger replaced by his much larger cock, which he slowly pushed up into the 11-year-old, spreading her hairless lips with his invading member.

"NUH," grunted Tina as Jim rammed his large cock home into her pre-teen, bald cunny. His hands held her small, bony hips firmly as his cock pistoned in an out of her roughly used little cunt. Even though her head was being jerked back and forth by Jim's thrusts into her small pussy, Tina had a good view of the rest of the goings-on in the room.

A glance to her left showed that Julie was pinned under the two women, Cathy and Evelyn. Julie's face was nowhere to be seen as Cathy had straddled the 10-year-old's face with her cunt and ass pressed down on Julie's mouth. She was jerking her hips back and forth across the girl's mouth, obviously enjoying whatever it was Julie was doing to her under there. Evelyn had her face in Julie's smooth crotch and was going down on the youngster with relish. Tina could see that Evelyn was pushing her fingers up into Julie's small twat, and was also working a finger into the girl's rectum as well. Julie's slender hips bucked under the invasion, but no sound could escape her mouth which was full of Cathy's cunt.

Just down the couch, Dave and Tom were both using 8-year-old Trisha for their pleasure. Dave had straddled the 3rd grader's flat chest, and shoved his large cock into her willing mouth. He held the back of her head with one hand and pulled her face rapidly on and off his cock, shoving it deep into the little girl's mouth with each stroke. His large thigh muscles pinned Trisha's small arms to her sides and his ass rubbed back and forth across her flat nipples as he rocked his hips in time to the pulling on young Trisha's head.

Tom, in the meantime, had one hand under each of Trisha's small knees, and had bent her legs apart and up till they were almost by the girl's sides. He let his weight rest on her legs, causing her small, hairless young opening to spread for his invading cock. Her clit protruded from the top of her bald slit, and the lips of her cunt were stretched thin and tight around him. He too, rocked his hips back and forth, sawing in and out of the 8-year-old snatch. His cock glistened with pre-teen lubrication as inch after swollen inch disappeared into the tiny 3rd grade girl.

From her vantage point, bent over the couch, Tina could not see John and Jennifer, but she could hear the 9-year-old birthday girl around the other side of the room, "OOOOOOOWWWWWWWWWWWWW, oooohhh slower, Daddy, please...OOWW...Please don't push it in my bottom so HARD OOOWWW...! Okay...Okay...Uh...Okay...Okay, fuck my bottom now..."

Jennifer was obviously getting her father's hard meat in her rear entrance. Tina could picture it in her mind; little Jennifer bent over, her brown hair hanging down into her face, grimacing as her small round bottom was spread, while a large cock pressed against the tiny brown hole thus exposed. The cock would bend under the pressure of trying to penetrate the pre-teen's small butt, but eventually, the large round head would slip past her sphincter muscles, and inch after large round inch would be pressed into the 4th grader's small hole.

Tina had only been butt-fucked once, and so wouldn't have believed it if she had been told that Jennifer had actually asked to have her small bottom reamed saying, "Please fuck my bottom, Daddy. I love having a large dick in my ass!" yet that was exactly what had occurred, and John was determined to fuck his little slut's ass until she couldn't walk right.

Tina's own cunt was reacting to Jim's violent thrusts. Though she was a little sore after the fucking contest that had just ended, the large erection plunging into her tight canal was starting to overcome the soreness and build her up to a new orgasm. Anyone watching the 11-year-old would have thought she was a total slut as she started to use her hands on the couch to press herself backward onto Jim's hard thrusts. She could hear the sound of his flesh slapping against hers and small "uh's" escaped from her mouth each time his penis pushed its way up into her small body, hitting and then stretching aside the entrance to her womb.

'Oh, God. I'm going to cum again!" she thought, and couldn't believe that her body would respond this way, when she was a virgin just a week before. Her school girl body, though slender and undeveloped, seemed to be built for sex, and she loved the feeling of a large adult cock being shoved into her hairless 11-year-old cunt.

Cathy was crying out and cumming; her hips pushing down hard on Julie's face. The woman writhed over the little girl; her breasts bouncing up and down as she stroked the child's face with her sopping wet pussy, over and over again. Meanwhile, Evelyn hadn't stopped performing cunnilingus on the pre-teen. She continued to lap the 10-year-old's smooth lips, concentrating her efforts on the swelling clit at the top of the youngster's adorable twat.

Dave's fucking of 8-year-old Trisha's mouth was becoming erratic. He was just on the verge of cumming and his hips bucked of their own accord, driving his large erection deeper and deeper into the little girl's mouth. Trisha was doing her best to stimulate the large penis that filled her mouth, but the speed of Dave's fucking, made it difficult, and she eventually gave up, finding it enough of a challenge just to breath under Tom's onslaught.

"OH FUCKING SHIT...AHHHHhhhh TRISHA! HERE IT CUMMMS," and suddenly, his cock swelled again, punishing Trisha's jaws to open enough to take him.

His first load of hot semen exploded into her mouth, almost drowning her with hot spicy cream. Trisha swallowed his cum, but before she could finish, his second shot of jizm poured into her mouth. There wasn't enough room for it, and so it seeped out around her lips, and began to dribble down, falling off her chin and coating her soft, flat chest. Dave's muscular thighs were soon coated in semen as burst after burst of his hot spunk filled the little girl's mouth and, what she couldn't swallow dripped down onto her chest, where his flexing thighs rubbed back and forth; fucking the child's mouth.

Tom too, was about to unload his pent up cum into Trisha's tight, warm depths. He still held her legs pinned back with both hands, and her small feet thrashed back and forth as his weight shifted, moving his cock rapidly in and out of Trisha's hairless sex hole. All at once, Tom stopped moving, his penis completely embedded in the 8-year-old girl. His butt clenched and trembled, and the cords of his neck stood out.


He was completely incoherent as his balls pumped spurt after spurt of cum deep into the fully impaled 3rd grader. His ass clenched and unclenched as he filled the little girl with his hot semen, flooding her insides to capacity with cum. Her immature body couldn't hold his load and it seeped from her stretched pussy and dribbled down to coat her small puckering rectum. Trisha couldn't respond to the throbbing penis in her because her mouth was filled with a spurting cock. The tiny girl's body was being flooded with two hot loads of cum; both shot deep into her tight immature pre-teen body.

Hearing the child crying in pain and fear turned Jim Phillips on and he began, once again, to fuck Tina's pre-pubescent cunt. His hands gripped her hips tightly, and pulled hard; smashing his erection deep into the 11-year-old's hairless opening. Jim had heard many little children cry and he'd always found it to be a turn-on. Now his own raging passion was going to be expelled into the innocent 11-year-old impaled on his hard cock.

He looked down at the girl he held, watched the way her small bottom opened and closed as he pulled her back and forth on his penis; watched the way her hair was flung back and forth as she swung her head in time with his strokes; watched her smooth slender back become taut and slack as she moved her body to gain pleasure from his fucking. 'OH FUCK! I LOVE FUCKING LITTLE GIRLS!' he thought to himself, and suddenly exploded into Tina.

Tina felt Jim's cock begin to throb in her cunt. She heard him whimper incoherently and then felt the hot flood of liquid spurt into her. Her doubts of a few moments before disappeared as she thought, 'OH GOD! I LOVE GETTING FUCKED!' She too began to convulse; her cunt muscles massaging the erection that was held within them.

"AAAAAHAAHHHHHHHHRRRRRRRRGGGGGGGGGGGGHHHHHH," the little slut screamed as both man and child began to orgasm into and onto each other. Tina's juices ran down Jim's thighs as his juices flooded her interior and coated the pink lips of her hairless cunt. Both man and child jerked as if they had grabbed live electric wires. Tina's arms gave out and she fell forward, her face hitting the couch seat and resting there as her stomach jerked and jerked.

Jim fell forward on Tina's upturned butt, mashing her two round orbs of flesh into his abdomen and rubbing his coarse pubic hair against her small brown asshole as it contracted in and out, in time with her cunt. It was quite a while before either man or girl was coherent enough to pay any attention to their surroundings, let alone begin to disengage their spent bodies.

When Tina did come back to reality, she could hear the climax of John and Jennifer's anal lovemaking around the other side of the couch. Jennifer was whimpering and crying out, but not protesting the fucking of her tight 9-year-old ass. Tina could hear the 'slap...slap...slap...' of John's flesh ramming into the pre-teen girl's small round ass.

"I'm CUMMING, BABY!! OH...OH...YEEEEAAAAHHHHHHHHHHH!!!" she could hear him cry.


Tina could hear both voices degrade into a series of loud moans and grunts. She finally heard the sound of two bodies, one large and the other quite small, hitting the carpeted floor completely spent and breathing hard. She gave a small moan of disappointment as Jim's half flaccid penis was pulled from the clinging lips of her smooth cunt.

He reached down and, putting an arm around Little Tina's waist, helped her stand again, and held her until she got her balance. Looking around, she saw a whole group of children and adults, all completely spent from fucking, sucking and cumming in and on each other.

John and Jennifer lay on the floor on their sides, him behind her, his now limp cock peeking out from between her slender thighs, dribbling the last of its white spittle onto her thigh.

Trisha lay spread-eagle on the couch, her chin and the top of her flat chest covered in drying semen. Her 8-year-old nipples were coated in the glistening goo and both of them were erect. Her eyes were closed and she looked as relaxed as could be. Between her spread legs, the lips of her smooth, pre-teen cunt were reddened from having Tom's coarse pubic hair ground against them. They too glistened from a mixture of her own little girl lubrication and his hot adult sperm. The two men both lay on the floor next to their 8-year-old conquest, their limp penises covered in child lubricant and saliva.

Evelyn and Howard both lay on the floor breathing hard. There was not a sign of Cathy and Betty, and Tina concluded that, even though she hadn't heard them, Howard must have had his way with the 6-year-old girl and that her mother must have taken her to another room to make sure she was okay. Tina didn't care though. She stumbled to the other side of the couch and flopped down next to the worn out Trisha wanting nothing more than to relax and catch her own breath after the fucking and shattering orgasm she had just undergone.

It was quite some time before anyone stirred themselves from the positions they had fallen in after sex. The kiddie porn video still played on silently on the TV; lots of little children sucking and fucking adults for an audience that was quite used up. Innocent faces covered with gouts of sperm; slender young legs spread to reveal tiny pink slits that were soon impaled by large erections; small round bottoms, spread by large hands and probed by fingers, tongues and cocks. The video played on and on, mesmerizing the exhausted watchers, lulling them into a relaxed state while at the same time filling their minds with visual images that would come back to provide stimulus to them next time their cocks got hard or their pussies got wet; providing both hypnotic relaxation and fuel for further debauchery.

"Hey, folks. I think she's gonna be okay." It was Cathy walking down from the upstairs, little Betty holding her hand. The child's eyes were still puffy and red from crying, and her free hand rubbed the front of her throat, trying to rub away a soreness that she felt on the inside. Howard immediately jumped up and walked over to the little girl he'd fucked orally.

"Who wants some ice cream?" said Evelyn, and several people agreed.

Jim began to play host again, making sure that everyone had either a beer or soda depending on age and preference. He wouldn't have cared if the kids drank beer, having frequently relied on getting young kids drunk in order to have sex with them, but he sure didn't want little Tina going home with alcohol on her breath and possibly causing a stir. It's a good thing CUM didn't linger on the breath! Soon the room again was split into two groups, children and adults, each talking about its own topics.

"I remember the first time I swallowed a whole cock," said Trisha. "I wasn't as young as you, Betty, and I still had a hard time. I threw-up afterward!"

"Yeah, so did I" remarked Julie.

"It hurt a lot, but I didn't get sick or nothing. Mom says I fainted and that's why I can't remember much. The biggest thing I remember was I couldn't breathe!"

"You gotta learn how! I couldn't breathe either til I learned how. You gotta time, like, when to take a breath and all. I think that's why I got sick my first time...I couldn't breath enough and I gagged … A LOT!" remarked Jennifer.

"How about you, Tina? How do you do it?" asked Trisha.

Tina didn't know what to say, so she simply told the truth. "I...uh...I never did it before last week. Jim Phillips did it to me last week, right here. And then the a few days later, Dave, and John did it to me too."

"Just last week!?" said Jennifer incredulously. "You mean you never sucked ANYONE until last week?"

"Uh, huh."

"God, that's amazing. We've been sucking our Dad for as long as we can remember," said Julie, nodding toward her sister.

"That's right. So have you, haven't you Betty?" asked Jennifer.

"Uh huh. I 'member I used to suck my Daddy's when I was three. I couldn't get it in my mouth then, but I used to rub my lips on it while he rubbed it and tried to shoot in my mouth. Most of the time I got it all over my face." This last she said with a giggle. This was amazing, thought Tina. Look what she'd been missing all her life.

The conversation went on in this vein, each of the youngsters recalling various sexual events in their life for the innocent and inexperienced Tina. Julie recounted how she had her first gang-bang at the age of 7, with fifteen men all taking turns humping her mouth and very small cunt. Jennifer recounted her first memory of her Daddy's cock; she didn't know the age, but he used to come in and masturbate onto her face when she was still in diapers, or at least that's what she thought.

Trisha told the tale of the time she got picked up by some four men who drove her to a remote spot to rape her and who wound up getting worn out by the little girl. They eventually drove her home after making her promise to meet them all again in a week. It had gone on for a month until one day the men didn't show up; Trisha never knew what happened to them since she was too young to take an interest in reading the paper. If she had she would have seen that immediately after their last sex session with the 6-year-old, all four men had been killed trying to beat a train at a railroad crossing. One was still wearing Trisha's small panties on his head when they extracted his body from the wreckage - - though that part was never printed in the papers.

"Hey, girls, why don't you go play out in the backyard for a while," suggested Jim. "We have another surprise, this one especially for the birthday girl, but you have to go out back while we set it up, okay?"

The five young girls agreed, though they all wanted to know what the surprise would be. Eventually, Cathy and Evelyn got them dressed and herded out the back door to begin again their disorganized game of badminton. However, this time the children were too tired to play for long, having spent a lot of energy in letting their young bodies be used for such hot sex. Eventually, all the girls wound up on the deck, sprawled out in the deck chairs there. They once more took up telling stories about their various sexual adventures. Tina may have been the oldest of the group at the tender age of 11, but Julie at 10 had the most experience in the group.

"What was the weirdest thing that ever happened to you?" asked Trisha.

"The weirdest...uh...I guess it was that time when Mr. Phillips wanted to make a movie with witches and stuff. So we all went out to this real old graveyard he'd found. These guys got all dressed up in, like uh...Halloween Devil costumes and these real gross masks and stuff. I was 8 years old at the time and they dressed me in one of those school uniforms, you know. You wear a uniform to school, right, Tina?"

"Uh huh. I hate it."

"Hey, my Dad says that he thinks girls in those uniforms are like really cute an' that they give him a real hard-on!" added Trisha.

"Really?" asked Tina.

"Yeah. He says it makes 'em look innocent and stuff. He even bought me one and he makes me wear it once in a while when he fucks me."

"Huh...So what happened in the graveyard?" asked Tina, turning back to Julie.

"Well, then they like filmed this ceremony where they killed some chickens and let the blood drip all over this altar they had set up."

"They killed them!?"

"Yeah. Cut their heads off with an ax. Anyway, four of these guys grab me and carry me into the picture. Jim told me to struggle a lot, so I'm kicking and squirmin' and stuff. Then they put me on this altar and tie my hands and feet with these ropes they got on the corners. Then this guy with a goat's mask on starts using a knife to cut off my clothes. I'm supposed to scream, and when I do, they gag me. They left it loose, so that wasn't too bad, and Jim told me to stop screaming, but to keep squirming in the ropes. Okay, so anyway, they get all my clothes off and I'm still squirming, and I got this chicken blood all over my back and stuff, and they kill another chicken and let the blood poor all over me!"

"Oh, GROSS!" said Tina.

"Oh, it wasn't too bad. It was warm and felt good because it was kinda cold outside and they all had clothes on and I didn't. Anyway, 'goat man' starts like chanting about sacrifices and stuff and all these guys drop their pants. Then 'goat man' takes my gag out and sticks his penis in my mouth. I can't see a thing because he's got my head falling backward off the altar and his dick's in my mouth. Next thing I know, one of the guys is fucking me while 'goat head' keeps chanting. One after another these guys all come up and fuck me and squirt their stuff all over my belly and chest."

"How many?"

"I don't remember. So when they get done, 'goat head' fucks my mouth until he cums on my face. I lift my head up and look at myself and I'm covered in blood and cum. I mean it was a real mess. So then they set up to shoot this picture where they cut me open and take out my heart."

"WHAT!" said Tina.

"You know, like in a horror movie. They fake all that know. Like Nightmare on Elm Street. It was kinda neat how they did it. First they took a picture of the knife slashing down toward me. They had this other knife that was sawed off halfway up and dull. They put that one against my belly so it looked like it went in. Then they took a picture of me screaming my head off with this knife sticking in me. Then they took a shot showing the knife from the side moving right up the middle of my chest. They got this tube on one side of it connected to this big bag of fake blood and its pouring out around the bottom of the knife so it looks like they are cutting me open. Then they shot the part where the guy reaches into me and pulls out my heart, only he just had his wrist bent so it looked like it was in me. He slowly pulls it out...they had this calves heart or something that they had covered in fake blood...and like, he's squeezing it to make it look like it's pulsing and all, and I like jerk around a few times and die. You shoulda seen it after it was all finished and they put it together. They added some real close-up shots of some guy gutting this deer and it really looked like they had sliced me open and all. Man it was grosser seeing it on film later than it was filming it. In fact, filming it was kinda boring 'cause they had to keep changing the camera angle to get everything set up and all. An' it was cold and all."

"And that's the end? They just kill you and walk away..." asked Tina, who hadn't ever seen this particular film.

"Nah. They stuck in some scenes where the guy with the goat head eats the heart...It was fake!" she said, seeing Tina's horror. "They had a fake one made outa...I think it was just colored bread or dough or something. Anyway, they did all that, and then 'goat man' starts to chant again about it being a good sacrifice and that now they had to purify the offering. So all these guys line up around me...and I'm playing dead so I can't move, and they all start to piss on me."

"Huh?!" said Tina.

"They all held their dicks out and like suddenly I'm getting all covered in hot piss. Jim's like reminding me not to move; and this one guy is peeing right on my face! I didn't move, but it wasn't easy...'specially when it went up my nose a little. I was soaked all over when they got done."

Tina didn't know what to think. Part of her kept telling her that Julie was lying; making up the story just to lead Tina on and try to shock her. But the other girls simply nodded their heads like they had heard of person peeing on another...before. 'No...People don't do that...' she thought. But another part of her reminded her that just the week before she didn't think that people sucked wieners and cunnies either. Before she could begin to question Julie more closely to see if she was telling the truth, a voice called from the back door.

"Hey, kids...Come on in, it's all set up!!"

Chapter Nineteen

Five little girls couldn't rush fast enough to get back into the house to find out what Jennifer's special surprise was going to be. At the back door, Cathy handed Jennifer a red ribbon and told her to follow it into the house. The 9-year-old birthday girl did just that, quickly reeling up the ribbon in her hands until she got to the living room and saw where the ribbon led. There, standing in a line before her, were nine men, each one naked, with the ribbon wrapped around the first man's erection and leading to the next man's hard-on, and so on down the line.

"Nine men for my nine-year-old little girl!" said John, urging Jennifer on to the first man. "Go on. Take a quick taste of them all. Right down the line!"

So the slim, brown-haired girl unwrapped the first penis and put her lips to the tip, letting the head slide into her mouth. The man shuddered a bit, but otherwise didn't move or say a thing. She moved to the next man, unwrapped his cock and took him into her mouth as well. She worked her way down the line until she'd taken all nine cocks in her mouth for a few seconds.

"Okay, sweetheart. Me and your mother both know how much you love the taste of cum, so, with Jim's help, we arranged for you to get all you need on your birthday. These guys are all gonna fuck you in the mouth and give you some large loads of cum! Right, guys?" he asked, turning to the line-up.

"You bet," "That's right!" and other affirmative signs were heard from the line-up of hard cocks.

What John had failed to mention was that each of these guys had paid $50 or more for the privilege of pumping their hot loads into a pre-pubescent girl. These guys weren't part of Jim Phillips' inner circle of pedophiles, but they were all guys he knew and who he sometimes hired as actors in his films. Today's little oral fuck fest was going to be filmed and later sold in Amsterdam at a nice price. The cameras were all set up, and Jim was watching a set of monitors so he could control the zooming-in for close-ups and cum shots, though most of those were going to take place in Jennifer's throat, if all the men obeyed John's instructions to fuck his 9-year-old daughter deep and hard in her willing, open mouth.

"Come on, sweetheart. Time to strip again!" said Evelyn, and Jennifer wasted no time in pulling off her little dress, kicking off her shoes and socks, and pulling her white cotton panties down to show this group of men - - her men - - her small hairless sex slit.

"Go ahead. The rest of you may as well not be the only ones dressed!" and the rest of the kids stripped off their clothes as well.

Some of the men, whose hard-ons had started to flag after Cathy and Evelyn's fluff job, grew back to full rigidity on seeing this group of small girl children, giggling and naked before them, their hairless labia peeking from between slender pale thighs.

However, one girl in particular held their attention.

Evelyn led Jennifer past the group, over to where a footstool had been set up in the middle of the living room. She laid her daughter down on it, and told her to hang her head backwards over the edge, thus putting her throat in line with her mouth for perfect fucking.

Trisha was led over to one side of Jennifer's head, and Julie to the other, both about two feet from the sprawled nude girl. Tina was taken and knelt about two feet directly in front of Jennifer's upside down face. Betty was led to kneel between Jennifer's spread legs, right before her 9-year-old cunt.

"Okay, Julie and Trish, you're gonna be the fluff girls. If anyone needs some quick mouth work to get hard, you do that. The guys will come to you if they need it, so just stay in the positions you're in now. Tina, your job is to stroke the balls of the man who's fucking Jennifer in the mouth. Just make them feel good so they can cum in her mouth. Betty, you lick Jenny's cunny, okay, sweetie. already know what to do...give her as much jism as you can. Okay, everyone. HEEEERRRRRREEEE WEEEEE GO!" and with that the men came walking over, dividing into two lines on either side of the laid back girl.

Two men in line knelt down on either side of Jennifer and took her wrists in their strong hands. They pulled down on her arms until her hands rested on the floor behind and below her. The first man in line knelt down in front of the 9-year-old and without a word began to push his erection into her willingly open mouth. He entered her slowly, letting her mouth get used to the size of his cock. Then he spit in his hand and rubbed it all over the four inches of his penis that remained outside the tender young pre-teen's mouth.

Leaning his hands on her flat chest, he shoved hard with his hips and the rest of his boner was jammed rapidly into Jennifer's throat. In reaction, her hands tried to spring upward, but they were pinned to the floor by strong arms, keeping the fourth grader from making any escape attempt. Her feet jerked out as well and were quickly grabbed by two men further down the line and held apart in the air, letting 6-year-old Betty continue her lapping of the hairless cunt before her. The man began to hump Jennifer's face, his cock stroking in and out of her mouth. His hands held onto the little girl's chest, one on either side, his thumbs rubbing back and forth on her small, pink nipples. From behind, Tina watched the man's hard butt clench and unclench, moving back and forth.

"You have to help, Tina!" said Evelyn in her ear. Tina jumped a little in surprise since she had been mesmerized watching the hard ass pumping her new friend's face. "Here, give me your hand. Now just reach through and stroke his balls."

Tina's hand had been guided between the man's thighs to touch his swinging testicles. Once there, her fingers began to stroke and fondle the swinging sack on their own.

"Yeah...That's it. Just hold them and rub them lightly. That'll make him cum a gallon! Just you wait and see!"

She had to be careful that she didn't poke Jennifer in the eye since the man's large balls were bumping against the fourth grader's face each time he pushed his cock into her. Tina couldn't see very much from her vantage point, but she could feel the man's nuts start to clench as, after only a minute of humping, he began to shoot his load of cum into little Jennifer's mouth.

"OH FUCK!" he said as he pushed in and held his position, his ass clenched, his hands gripping the small breastless ribcage before him. His testicles pumped and squirmed in Tina's grip and she swore she could feel the sperm gushing up through the underside of the man's penis to be sprayed deep in Jennifer's tight, 9-year-old throat.

After nearly collapsing forward on his victim, the man regained his balance and slowly eased his penis from the child's gripping mouth. His cock glistened with sperm and saliva, as it popped free from the girl's mouth. Drops of cum fell from the end and landed on her cheeks, but Jennifer didn't seem to care. She was in heaven; having taken just the first of what she knew would be many more loads of hot semen to come. She opened her eyes as the man stood up, seeing Tina upside down in front of her, and smiled at her new friend.

Jennifer's smiling face was quickly obscured from Tina's view when the second man knelt down in front of her friend and began to feed her his hard muscle. Tina reached between the man's legs and again began to stroke the balls she found there. Looking to either side of this man now humping Jennifer, Tina observed that Trisha and Julie were both busy doing their jobs. The men who were next in line were standing before the kneeling girls, and the girls were giving them the best blowjobs they could manage.

On her right, Trisha was holding a man's cock with one hand while massaging his balls with her other. The 8-year-old had to kneel up straight to get her mouth up level with his crotch. Tina could see the girl's tongue lapping around the head of the fat penis each time Trisha moved her head back. Then Trisha would push the fat log into her mouth and suck hard on the head.

Tina watched for a second and realized that there were skills in giving blowjobs that she had yet to learn. Turning to the other direction, she saw that Julie was having a rougher time of it. The man in front of her had grabbed her brown shoulder-length hair in back of her head and was savagely pistoning his erection in and out of Julie's mouth. No skill here; the man was simply using Julie's mouth to masturbate with until he could get his turn at her younger sister, Jennifer.

After a minute, the man in front of Tina grunted and he too shot a load of goo into the immature child's face. He stood up and moved aside and the savage man took his place. "Open up little whore! I'm gonna feed you good!" he said, as he slowly pushed his erection into Jennifer's mouth.

In contrast to the way he'd treated Julie, the man slowly pushed his hard cock down into Jennifer's throat. Never increasing his speed or thrusting it home, he just kept slowly pushing inch after inch into the restrained, 9-year-old's mouth. Tina couldn't see it, but everyone else watched as a visible bulge started at the top of the small girl's throat and sank lower toward her flat chest and belly.

When his pubic bone butted against Jennifer's lower teeth he let out a sigh, "Ahhhhhoooww - - Fuck, that's a tight little throat you got, whore. Swallow...go ahead...swallow my dick you kiddie whore!" He didn't move. He didn't flinch. He didn't do anything, and soon Jennifer was starting to gag.

Jennifer, who had been sucking cocks for some time, had learned how to breathe on the out stroke, but since this man wasn't pulling out, her breathing was all messed up and her gag reflex kicked in.

"MMMMMMMmmmpf...MMmmmmmpf..." was the only sound escaping from the 9-year-old as her throat clenched to expel the invader.

"OH YEAH...LITTLE WHORE! That's nice! My little kiddie whore wants to be FUCKED HARD, HUH? Okay, you little bitch...I'll fuck you. I'll fuck you good and HARD!"

And so he did. Collapsing forward on the tiny girl, the man held his face above her hairless mound, forcing Betty out of the way. His hands went back to grip Jennifer under each arm pit. His weight was completely on the fourth grader as his hips began to slam fuck the child in the mouth.

To Tina the sight of the man's muscled ass grinding up and down on her young friend was a turn-on. Without even realizing it, her free hand wandered down to the hairless cleft between her thighs and began to tease her small round clitoris. Her other hand reached out and stroked the clenched testicles that flopped up and down over Jennifer's stuffed face. Without thinking, Tina ran her hand upward to the base of the man's balls and beyond until the tips of her fingers ran over the man's anus.

"Oh, yeah, little girlie...Play with my ass while I face fuck your little whore friend," said the man.

Tina was hypnotized and she let the tips of her fingers wander back and forth along the crack of his ass, knowing that the man was enjoying it; watching his brown anal opening clench when her fingers brushed over the sensitive hole.

"Why don't you kiss my ass, sweet cakes? Bend on down and rim my asshole...Come on...Lick my ass you little teasing bitch!"

All at once, two of the men came to stand on either side of Tina. They each gripped one of her arms and quickly bent her forward, pushing her face between the humping ass cheeks before her. One man put his hand on the back of Tina's head and pushed down until her face was in solid contact with the bucking butt.

"Lick me, bitch!" she heard the man say.

"Go on...It's not so bad. Lick his asshole," one of the men beside her whispered in her ear.

Tina was not sure what to do. Her nose was closed because it was in contact with the skin of the man's ass. She was going to have to open her mouth to breathe eventually. She'd never kissed a man's ass before, though she'd seen little Betty doing it earlier in the day and everyone in the room had seemed to accept it. 'Try anything once...' she thought as she opened her mouth and let her tongue stroke the opening of the man's ass. It didn't taste bad, the man was clean; it was sorta pungent, but not in a bad way. Mostly sweat, she figured, and so she began to lick up and down in the crack of the man's ass.

"Oh YEAH! Oh, man, you're a little whore too, huh baby. Yeah...Lick my ass, girlie. Nothing better 'n having your ass licked by a little kiddie whore! Uh...You're gonna make me cum, bitch. You're gonna make me fill your little girl friend with cum, bitch. You want that? You want me to cum in the birthday girl for you?"

Tina didn't know if she liked being called a "whore" by the man. She'd heard the word before and it had always been meant as a bad word, something that you didn't want to be called, though the exact definition had never been given to her. She didn't know what it meant, but she could tell by the tone of the man's voice, the sound of his breathing, and the pace of his humping that he was getting turned on by what she was doing, and that's all that mattered at the moment. The feel of his ass against her tongue was strange. She could feel his rectum clenching when her tongue ran over it. It was strange to say the least, and kind of exciting.

The two men on either side of Tina had released her when they realized that the 11-year-old, pre-teen didn't need to be held down to give their friend a rim job.

Jim Phillips, watching from the side, was as surprised as the two men. It usually took him some time to get a new pre-pubescent girl to lick a man's ass without all sorts of protests and squeamish behavior. One or two had to be really forced into it. However, Tina seemed to take to it, no problem. Once again, he marveled at the ability of this innocent sixth grader to accept almost any kind of sexual activity, and even get turned on by it. He watched as she rested one arm on top of the humping man's ass, just above her forehead, and her other free hand once again found it's way between her legs to rub her bald gash. Tina was going to be very valuable to Jim Phillips in the future, not only as a sweet little sex object in her own right, but as a lure for some of the other little girls that Jim had an eye on, but hadn't yet figured out how to approach.

With a tight 9-year-old throat wrapped around his hard cock, and an 11-year-old slut willingly licking his ass, the savage man didn't last long. His chest jerked up off of Jennifer's belly and he bellowed as the first flood of sperm gushed from his heavy balls into the little girl below him.

"YYYEEEEAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHHRRRRGGGHH," he yelled as load after load of his white-hot cream shot into Jennifer.

Tina felt his ass cheeks clench as if they were trying to grab her face as he bucked downward with each shot of his semen. His rectum shrank inward with each pump, and at one point, Tina could swear she felt his balls clenching against her chin as another gush of sperm went into her young friend. Jerking and twisting, the man filled the fourth grader with his cum, humping until there was nothing left and he finally collapsed forward onto the slender little girl. His friends had to help him off when they realized he was totally spent, and once again Jennifer was starting to choke on his erection. They lifted their buddy off the little brown haired girl and let her breathe and cough for a minute by way of recovery.

Then, with military precision, the next man in line knelt down before the restrained little girl and fed her the next erection to suck. Having watched Tina do it once, all the men after the savage man wanted her to lick their assholes, while they had their cocks sucked by 9-year-old Jennifer. Having done it once, Tina saw no way to object and obediently bent forward to place her pink tongue against the brown rear openings. She found it interesting that each man's asshole would clench so hard as he came. By putting her tongue right on the rectal opening when the man came, she could tell how strong the orgasm was.

It was all so strange because it was her first time; it was almost a dream. Ass after ass knelt down in front of her. Man after man asked her to lick him. One after the other they all bellowed, and yelled, and shuddered, and humped, as they came. One after another, nine naked men came forward to kneel in front of the 9-year-old birthday girl, presenting erections of all sizes to her mouth. One after another, nine men pushed their throbbing hard-ons deep into the willing mouth of the small, brown-haired pre-teen girl. One after another, nine men man stroked his penis into her pre-pubescent throat until, one after another, they made the tiny fourth grader swallow their pulsing loads of hot semen.

Julie and Trisha each tasted those cocks before they were pushed up into young Jennifer, but each man saved his boiling semen until it could be spurted deep into the restrained 9-year-old's throat. Jennifer was totally worn out after the last man pulled his dripping penis from her mouth. Her face, covered in sweat, saliva and semen, was a shiny mess. Her hair, which some of the men had used as a rag to wipe off their dicks, was sticky and sweat-soaked. Even when the men on either side let go of her hands, they lay there, palms down on the floor, the 9-year-old girl being too exhausted to raise them.

Her father, John, came over and helped the naked, cum-covered girl to a sitting position on the footstool. The small child leaned her slender naked body against her father's muscular form, enfolded in his large arms. For a while, they sat like that, naked man and little girl, not moving, just allowing the youngster to catch her breath after having swallowed nine large loads of hot male cum.

Everyone else in the room seemed to be exhausted too, and they all flopped down on the rug or the various pieces of furniture in the room.

Everywhere Tina looked, there were naked men, some of whose cocks still glistened with Jennifer's saliva, laying about relaxing. Breaking the relaxed state of the room, Jim Phillips got up and said, "Well, guys. I want to thank you all for coming over and giving Jennifer her special birthday present. Believe me, next time there's a birthday, you guys will be the first to know."

"Hey, man. You're welcome!"

"My pleasure...and I really mean that!"

"Anytime, Jim."

The group of men stirred themselves and each wandered down to the den where all their clothes had been stored while the kids played in the back yard. While some got dressed, others socialized with Cathy, Evelyn, Jim and the other adults in the room. Each of them wandered over to where little Jennifer sat on her Daddy's lap and wished her a happy birthday. Jennifer, having recovered some energy, smiled at each man and thanked him for coming.

A couple of the men even thanked Tina for the way she had licked their assholes while they humped Jennifer's face.

Tina, a little embarrassed, muttered, "You're welcome," to each of them.

The men left pretty much as a group, and once again, the room was left to the five naked little girls and seven adults.

"So, everyone...How was that for a birthday party?"

"I had a great time!" enthused Howard.

"Best ever," said Tom.

"I hope we have a party like this on my birthday!" piped little Betty, walking over to where Howard sat and climbing into his lap to fondle his limp cock.

Other signs of approval came from the group, and Jim said, "Well, I'm really glad you all enjoyed it, but there comes a time when all good things must come to an end, and frankly, I'm all fucked OUT! Huh!?"

" too!"

"I sure am."

"Hey! I'm not! I sure would like to stick my dick in some cute little girl," said Howard, giving Betty a big hug and bouncing the naked 6-year-old on his knee. Betty smiled back at Howard, knowing that he wanted to fuck her skinny body, and pleased that he was so attracted to her.

"No way, mister!" said Cathy, in a mildly reproving tone. "You've had your quota on your dick today. This little girl is going home with me!"

A few of the people in the room chuckled at the big look of disappointment that Howard put on, even though he broke out into a grin immediately after. He gave Betty a final hug as the little girl clambered off his lap, leaving him with an erection that waved in the air.

"Anyone else want to come home with old Howard? Hmm?" he asked, in a mock begging tone.

"Trisha can go with you, if that's okay with her?" said Dave, Trisha's father. "What do you say, Trish? Wanna go spend the night with Howard and help him with his little problem?"


"Sure, Daddy," said the cute blonde 8-year-old. "I can help him out with his 'little' problem!"

"Hey! This ain't no little problem from where I sit!"

Everyone in the room was laughing by now at the pun's being used on Howard. Howard too, chuckled at his own expense, but was pleased to know that he would have a nice young 8-year-old companion for the night. He would enjoy fucking and sucking the small, blonde several times that night and in the morning too, before he had to bring her back to her father.

Howard and Dave had shared Dave's daughter before, and so this wasn't a new arrangement. As payment, Howard would always bring Dave in on a new conquest that he made on his own. Howard's conquests were invariably very young and very innocent, and there was nothing Dave loved more than joining Howard in a young girl's first double fucking session.

Having settled that, everyone began to get back into their clothes, and group by group, they drifted toward the front door. Dave and Tom left together, Dave saying goodbye to Trisha who left holding hands with Howard. Cathy took Betty out to the car and the little girl waved as they drove off. John and Evelyn said their goodbyes, with Evelyn telling Tina that she enjoyed meeting her. Jennifer and Julie re-stated their invitation for Tina to come over to their house after school some time, since they only lived two blocks away. Tina said that she would be glad to come over and promised to do so after she checked with her mother.

Chapter Twenty

Once they left, Jim Phillips and Tina were left alone. Jim closed the front door and turned to Tina saying, "Well, what did you think of the party, huh? A little different from any of the others you've been too, I'll bet!"

"Yeah," said Tina, "It was kinda neat!"

"I'm glad you liked it, Tina. You're a very sexy girl, and I kinda thought you'd enjoy our little get together. You sure seemed to like licking those guys' assholes. Tell me, what did you think of that? Did you like it?"

Tina was a little embarrassed; talking about it seemed harder than doing it.

"Uh...well. It was kinda, you know...weird at first, but it didn't, like...taste bad or anything. So I just kinda did it because they said it felt good."

"That's what it's all about, sweetheart. Feeling good! Hey, it's about time I got you home."

"I guess… Though my Mom probably won't be home for another couple of hours."

"Well, I have to clean up, and then there are some errands I have to run this evening, otherwise I'd just as soon stay here with you and fuck some more, though I was telling the truth about being pretty much worn out."

"I'm kinda sore down there too," said Tina.

"Well, I guess that settles that. You be sure to come back here in a few days, say...Tuesday after school, then we can have another little party of our own, just the two of us. Sound okay?"

"Okay!" answered Tina brightly.

"Here, let's wrap up some of this leftover cake for you to take with you, and then I'll drive you home."

"You don't have to do that," said Tina. "I can walk."

"No, honey, I want to. It's no problem."

With that, Jim Phillips led Tina out to his car, making sure that she buckled up, even though it was only a block down to her house. He drove her down the block to her house, stopping in front and getting out to open her door. Tina had never been treated so well, and it made her feel special.

She jumped out of the car and turned to say her thanks to Mr. Phillips when she heard a voice call out from across the yard.

"Hey, Tina...How was the party?"

Tina's little sisters came running across the yard from where they had been playing to greet their older sibling. Both little girls had light blonde hair, like Tina, though Lisa's was longer and had bouncy curls. Both 9-year-old Mary and 7-year-old Lisa came panting up to Tina, asking how the party was. Tina gave them a disparaging look, not wanting her few minutes alone with Jim Phillips interrupted by her bratty sisters.

"It was fun."

"Hey, what's this?"

"Oh, that's just some leftover birthday cake we had," said Jim Phillips, handing the foil wrapped package to Tina.

"Hey, can I have some?" asked little Lisa.

"Oh, I think there's enough to share, don't you, Tina? I think it would be nice if you gave some to your little sisters. It's chocolate with a special sauce I think you'll really like," he said, winking at Tina.

Tina caught Jim Phillips' wink and almost giggled with their shared secret about the special sauce on the cake. "Uh...Sure...we'll all have some after we get inside."

"Tina, why don't you introduce me to your pretty little sisters?" he asked.

"Uh. Oh, yeah. This is Mary and this is Lisa, she's the youngest."

"Hi, girls, I'm Jim Phillips, it's so nice to meet such pretty little girls! I guess good looks just run in this family! Say, Mary, how old are you?"

"I'm 9. I'm gonna be 10 in three months."

"That's nice, and how about you, Lisa. How old are you?"

"Seven. You live up the street, right?" asked the pert little 2nd grader.

"Uh huh, I sure do, how did you know?"

"Oh, I've cut through your yard to get to the park sometimes. I like to play in the creek."

"She's a Tomboooyyy!" taunted Mary.

"I AM NOT A TOMBOY!" shouted Lisa, the response coming back instantly because this was an old and well-used taunt by both of her older sisters.

"Hey...Hey...Such a pretty little girl can't possibly be tomboy? Besides, the creek's a fun place to play for everyone, doesn't matter if you're a boy or a girl. Mary, you shouldn't make fun of your little sister that way, you know." Jim Phillips' mild rebuke was made milder by the fact that he grinned while he said it, and gave Lisa a small wink when he met her eyes. "And you know, Lisa, you shouldn't be cutting through people's yards without their permission. That could lead to all sorts of problems." This time he gave a hidden wink to Tina, who knew what cutting through Mr. Phillips' yard could lead to. "Next time you want to cut through my yard to go to the park, just knock on my door and I'll be sure to give you special permission! Okay?"

"Uh...Okay? I'm sorry."

"Hey, sweetheart, no harm done. I just want to get to know the kids that use my yard so I can keep an eye on things. It's really not a problem."

Jim Phillips was turning on the charm again for these little lovelies that stood before him in their dingy play clothes. His mind's eye had already stripped young Lisa and Mary bare, and was imagining both little girls sucking on his huge erection and having his hard pole slip between their tender pink nether lips. Already he was planning how he would seduce each of the tiny pre-teens, and how he could use Tina to help turn these little girls into his willing sex slaves.

He thought how especially nice it would be to film some scenes with 7-year-old Lisa because little girls with long blonde curls always seemed to turn on his buyer in Amsterdam. Something about blonde curls on a small girl being fucked by grown men three times her size and weight really sent the price of a video up in that market.

And Lisa with her wide-eyed innocent look was going to be particularly fun to use. His dick began to stir just picturing her small face lying on a bed looking up at him with tears in her eyes as he pushed his fat cock deep into her virgin interior; and how she would sound as he broke her tiny hymen and gave her the first fuck of her life.

"Now you kids go on inside and share that cake, I have to go. Remember, Tina...Tuesday."

"I'll remember," she answered as Jim walked back to his car, then got in and drove off.

"What's Tuesday?" asked Mary.

"Nothin'. You guys want some of this," she asked, holding out the package.

"Yeah," they both said in unison. All three girls ran into the house, where Tina doled out the cake on three paper plates.

"You know you're gonna ruin you dinner," said Janice, their baby-sitter; but she made no move to stop the young girls as they each ate a slice of the chocolate cake with the semen sauce still on it.

"What's this stuff?" asked Lisa, looking the white cream that clung to the icing on the cake.

"It's a special sauce that the guys...uh...made at the party. Go ahead and eat it. It's good for you."

"Tastes okay, I guess. It's not very sweet. I woulda thought they'd put sweet stuff on a cake," commented Mary.

"It's mostly decoration," said Tina, who chuckled inwardly with the secret knowledge of what her two younger sisters were really eating.

"Well, I kinda like it," said Lisa.


That night, Tina fell asleep immediately, exhausted from her day's sexual adventure. However, by Sunday night, the young girl was beginning to feel horny again, and couldn't resist reaching down between her parted legs and her pulling up nightie. She then started to rub the small pink button of her clitoris. Her rubbing got faster and harder, and her breathing began to come in short pants. She almost moaned, but stopped herself because she didn't want to wake her 9-year-old sister Mary just across the room. Her small hairless pussy began to lubricate and she dipped her finger down into her inner lips to get some of the moisture there to rub over her now enlarged clit. It was coming to was going to be strong...strong...STRONG...

"MMMMMMPPPPPPhhhhhffffff...Mmm Mmmm...Oh...oh..."

"Tina?! Are you okay?" came a small voice from across the room.

Tina was still convulsing with her orgasm when she heard her sister's question. She tried to stop cumming long enough to answer, but her reply came out as, "It's oKAY...I'm...uh...Okay...uhhhh..."

In an instant, Mary was out of her bed and across the room. Tina's voice sounded so strange that she thought something was really wrong and she had to come help her big sister. She leaned over Tina's bed in the dark and put a hand out. Her hand landed on Tina's heaving belly, and Mary got even more frightened.

[Little Mary had been in a class one day when one of the other kids had had an epileptic seizure. The boy had fallen on the floor and convulsed violently for a few seconds before the teacher had come over and told the class to back away for a minute. The seizure hadn't lasted long, and afterward the teacher had taken a long time to explain all about epilepsy, and just what a seizure was; and that it was nothing to be afraid of, but Mary had still been very scared.]

And now her big sister was laying here, seemingly in convulsions of her own.

"I'll get Mom!"

"NO!" Tina snapped out of her orgasm at the thought of her sister bringing her mother into the room. "No!" she said much quieter, "I'm okay. Honest! Mom doesn't have to know."

"Know what? Tina, are you okay?" her 9-year-old sister asked again, genuinely concerned.

Tina was touched by the concern, but also afraid that her sister would tell their mother what happened. She decided that honesty was the best policy.

"Honest, I'm okay. I was just... Well, I was doing something's kinda hard to explain," she ended, weakly.

"What's hard to explain? I've heard you a couple of times in the last week or so at night. At first I thought you were crying or something and I didn't know what to do. Then I thought maybe you were in pain or something, but you always seemed okay in the morning...not sick or nothing." Then suddenly a horrible thought popped into the Mary's mind. "You're not...well, gonna have a baby, are you?"

"NO! God, Mary, you don't have a baby in two weeks! No I'm not pregnant or sick or anything."

"So what were you doing and why were you shaking like that?"

Tina decided she had to bite the bullet and confess, at least part way, "I was doing something that feels real nice, in fact it feels so nice that sometimes I can't help it that I make noise or shake."


"I was rubbing my cunny in a special way."

"Your cunny?" asked Mary in a disbelieving question. Like Tina, 9-year-old Mary had been taught that her "cunny" was an area of her body that was off limits for answers to any questions, and even off limits to questions. She'd come to think of it as kinda dirty, and so couldn't understand why her sister would want to rub it.

"Yeah. When you rub it a special way, it feels really good!"


"Well, you sorta take your finger and rub it near the top...there's a spot there that sorta sticks up...well, you rub it like up and down and it feels good."

"You're lying to me. Are you sure you're not sick or nothing, cause you gotta tell Mom or something..."

"I'm not sick!" Tina interrupted. She didn't want her sister telling their mother about Tina's discovery of masturbation. There was only one way to make Mary believe. "Here...look, I'll show you. Get up here on the bed with me."

Though it was night, the room was not dark. The girls had always slept with nightlights, and the combination of the streetlight outside and the full moon, cast light in both the windows of the room. Mary climbed up on the bed, and Tina put one of her legs on each side of the 9-year-old girl. Then she hiked her own nightdress up, revealing her spread, bald cleft to her little sister's skeptical gaze. Mary had seen her sister naked before, but never with her privates so brazenly displayed. She felt a little embarrassed.

"Okay...look...right here..." said Tina putting two fingers on her hairless labia and spreading them for her younger sister. "See the bump at the top. That's called your clit. When you rub it, it feels really good." Being spread before her sister's gaze became a turn-on for Tina and she began to stroke her hard clit while her younger sister looked on. "It really does feel good."

Mary watched as Tina began to masturbate before her. Not knowing what to say or how to respond, she simply watched, flabbergasted, as Tina's hand began to stroke faster and faster, sawing in and out of her bald slit. Mary could see Tina's vagina beginning to glisten with young pre-teen sex juice. Tina's breathing became ragged; the orgasm, which had so abruptly been cut short before was rapidly coming back. It was obvious to Mary that Tina had been telling the truth about rubbing her cunny being the source of the noise, but to Mary, Tina's heavy breathing and uncontrolled twitching didn't look like it felt good. But then, if it didn't feel good, why didn't she just stop. Mary was confused. A second later, Mary was surprised as Tina arched her back, suppressing a moan. Her legs on either side of Mary lifted, bending at the knees, shaking. Her stomach muscles went taut. Her hand flew in and out of her cunny as slowly, the moaning died down, and her older sister's legs flopped down on the bed.

"Are you okay?" asked Mary.

"...(pant)...Yeah...I told you...(pant)...I'm okay. That was great!" and then the thought occurred to her, "You should try it!"


"Yeah...You really gotta try it...You can't know what it feels like til you do."

"I don't know."

"Come on...What can it hurt? Here...Lay down..."

Tina was up and next to her sister, urging her to lay back. Mary did as directed, and soon, her older sister had her on her back with her nightdress hiked up to her small waist, and was tugging her light blue colored cotton panties off her small hips. Mary lay there embarrassed by her sister's attention to her privates and squeaked when she felt her sister's hand touch the smooth bulge of her mons and slip down into her narrow slit, probing her 9-year-old virgin cunny.

"Spread your legs a little, Mary. Come on. I gotta show you or you won't believe me!"

Tina had reached down with her other hand and pushed on the inside of Mary's thigh, spreading the little girl's slender legs just enough so that she could dip a finger in to her small cunt and rub her sister's small pink clit.

The instant Tina's probing finger found Mary's small clit, a shock of electricity went through the 9-year-old girl. A few stabs from Tina's finger, and Mary was jolted from her silence.

"STOP!" she said.

"What? Did you feel it? It feels good, right?" asked Tina.

"It...It's weird," said Mary, not really knowing how to characterize the feeling from her clit. Tina had stopped rubbing when little Mary had said, 'Stop', but her hand remained touching the 4th grader's small hairless cunt. Mary's whole pussy tingled from the touch of Tina's hand.

"Just let me show you how to rub it, and you'll see. It feels great!" and with that the 11-year-old began to masturbate her little sister in earnest. Tina had found Mary's small clit, and now she tortured it up and down with the middle finger of her hand, while holding the little girl's legs apart with her other hand.

Mary was again electrified by the sensations emanating from her tiny clit. Her smooth flat belly spasmed uncontrollably each time Tina's finger stroked upward on her cunny. It felt really strange, but at the same time, she didn't really want it to stop. Her small buttocks clenched with the tension building in her lower body, and without knowing it, she spread her legs more so that her older sister could have better access to her virginal opening.

Tina was fascinated by her sister's reaction to her constantly moving finger. She'd never touched another girl before, and it was interesting to see that she could make her little sister react just by touching her. She was kneeling over Mary's small body; her finger stroking the 9-year-old's clit at a rapid pace. She noted how Mary's butt had clenched and how her slender legs had spread. She even noticed that Mary's small cunt was beginning to get a little wet with excitement. She bent down to have a closer look as she continued to masturbate her pre-teen sibling. It was her first really close-up look at another girl's cunt, and she got close enough to smell the sweet aroma of Mary's small, virgin opening.

When Mary felt Tina's breath striking her hairless cunny lips and her hair touching her small, flat, naked belly, the slow buildup of tension in her loins suddenly began a rapid boil. Not knowing what to expect, Mary was suddenly scared and expectant at the same time.

"Tina...It feels...strange...uh...Tina...I feel I'm gonna...pee...or sumthin...uh..."

Mary was breathing harder now, and she didn't know what was going to happen.

Tina didn't help her when she said, "Cum for me, Mary. I wanna see you cum."

Mary didn't understand what Tina meant. Where was she supposed to come to? What was gonna happen?

"Tina...Tina...I...uh I...It...What?...AHHhhhhh," and suddenly it didn't matter anymore. Mary's hands flew up to her mouth and her body was suddenly out of control. She felt something jolt her whole body from inside her private's all the way through the top of her head. Her eyes rolled up in her head and her face became contorted. Some great beast was jumping up and down on her, only it didn't hurt, it felt GREAT! Each time the beast landed another convulsive shock wave ran through her, causing her to kick out her little legs and arch her back again and again and again. It felt like it was never going to stop, and she never wanted it to.

Tina watched closely as she brought her little sister to her first ever orgasm. She particularly watched Mary's tiny cunt as she saw and felt the opening to her virgin depths contract and pulse with each wave of the little girl's orgasm. Now Tina suddenly understood why Jim Phillips liked it so much when she came on his cock; because a little girl's cunt would literally suck a man's cock during orgasm. Tina also noted how little Mary's body shook, just like hers, and how her younger sister also had trouble stifling her moans of pleasure. 'No wonder she heard me cumming if that's what I sound like,' she thought to herself.

She continued to massage her 9-year-old sister's clit until she felt Mary's body go limp. Then she turned to the girl and said, "Well, that's what I mean by it feels good. Get it?"

Mary could barely recover enough to respond, "Uh huh..." After a few seconds of deep breathing she said, "That felt really good. You were right."

"Told you."

After a few more seconds, Mary said, "I guess I don't need to tell Mom after all, huh?"

At this, Mary giggled, and Tina giggled with her. Tina lay down next to her sister, both girls with their night skirts up at their waist, and relaxed for a while. After about five minutes with no words exchanged, Mary asked, "Will you do it to me again?"

"No," replied Tina.

"Why not?" asked the 9-year-old, suddenly hurt.

"I won't do it to you, but we can do it to each other!" offered Tina.

"Huh? How?" asked Mary.

"Here...I'll lay with my head at toward your feet and then..."

Tina got into position, and the girls spent the next five minutes masturbating each other's hairless cunts. Mary came first, but Tina wasn't far behind her little sister. Both little girls rubbed each other to orgasm again and again that night.

Finally, exhausted, Mary crawled back to her own bed just before dawn of the next day.

Chapter Twenty-One

It being a school day the next day, both girls had a hard time making it out of bed two hours later, and getting ready to go to school. The day seemed to drag on endlessly for both of them, though for Mary, the thought of going to bed now included something else; the expectation of masturbating with her sister and getting that great feeling again.

Sister Julia noticed how tired Mary seemed and asked the 4th grader if she was sick. The young girl replied that she wasn't, "Just tired, I guess," but nothing else was said to her that implied that anyone else knew her newfound pleasure; the 9-year-old had been a little worried that it somehow showed on her face, but this worry quickly evaporated.

That evening, the two girls ate a listless dinner and both wanted to go to bed earlier than usual. This set well with their parents because it just meant that they were out of their hair for the evening.

So, shortly after the 7-year-old Lisa was sent to bed, Mary and Tina went up to their room and changed into their night dresses. This night, neither girl wore panties underneath, and both could hardly wait until their parent got done with their nightly good-night kisses. Livvy came up and gave each girl a perfunctory good night kiss, breezing in and out in her usual style, but when their father came in, he noticed the discarded panties on the floor and something in him stirred a little bit. He sat on each girl's bed and gave them both a big kiss, resting his hands on each girl's waist as he did and wrestling internally with the images his mind was offering. He walked out of the room, with a last look back, and went off to the room he shared with his wife, still bothered as to why he would suddenly think of his own kids in that way.

After waiting a while, Mary came over to Tina's bed. Tina, who had started to fall asleep, was surprised when a small body slipped into her bed and said, "Do you wanna do it again?"

"Huh...Oh, yeah. I musta started to fall asleep. Sure, we can do it again, but...not all night. I almost got detention today for falling asleep in Sister June's history class!"

And so, once again, the two little girls began to fondle each other's open, hairless cunts. After a while, Tina told Mary to lie still while she tried something.

"What?" asked Mary as her older sister parted her skinny legs and moved down between them.

"You'll see," said Tina mysteriously as she positioned herself between her 9-year-old sister's spread legs and lowered her mouth to the smooth pink lips of her cunt. It was the first time Tina had ever tried licking the pussy of another girl, and she wasn't to sure what to do. She began by running her tongue up and down in her sister's smooth slit.

"TINA!" her sister almost shouted between clenched teeth.

"Shhhhhh! Do you want Mom 'n Dad to hear us?"

"Sorry...What are you doing?" Mary asked again in a whisper.

"Doesn't it feel good?"

"Well...yeah, I guess, but...You're not supposed to do that with your mouth!"

"Says who?"

That stumped little Mary. "Uhhhh...I don't know."

"That's right, you don't know. Just relax for a minute and it'll feel really good. Lay down..." and she put her hand on her sister's flat chest and pushed her back down on the bed.

Mary didn't know what to think as her older sister began to probe her narrow slit once more with her tongue. It didn't seem right. That's where pee comes out, for heavens sake. But it sure felt nice. In fact it was feeling better by the minute. When Tina began to concentrate on Mary's clit, moving her head from side to side as her tongue whipped the small protuberance, Mary decided that it felt great, and had to pull a pillow over her face when she began to cum, for fear of screaming loud enough to cause their parents to investigate.

For her part, Tina could tell right away that she was "doing it right". Her little sister's hips began to buck up into her face, and when Mary came, Tina could feel the strong contractions of her 9-year-old pussy sucking at her chin. The taste of her little sister was not unpleasant, not as strong as a man's cum. In fact, Tina thought it was kinda nice, and she wondered if that's what she tasted like to Mr. Phillips. When her little sister had finished cumming, Tina crawled up her body and lay down next to her.

"Wha'dya think of that? I told you it would feel good."

"Uhhhhh huh," said Mary, still trying to catch her breath. This was amazing. Her 11-year-old sister was opening up a whole new world for the 9-year-old, and she wondered where Tina had learned it all.

"We better go to bed, I'm really tired," said Tina.

"Okay," said Mary, regaining some of her composure. "Tina, can I ask you something?"

"Sure. What?"

"Where did you learn to do that?"

'Uh Oh,' thought Tina to herself. "I uh...I just sorta...uh...made it up!" She couldn't think of anything else to say, and she even sounded to herself like she was lying.

"I don't believe you. Where'd you learn that? Is that what they teach in those 6th grade health classes?"

"No, dummy! Besides, remember Mom 'n Dad wouldn't let me go to those classes anyway!" After saying that, Tina realized she should have kept her mouth shut and let her little sister believe that. 'Oops,' she thought.

"Okay, so where?"

"I can't tell you."

"Why not?"

"Cause I promised."


"I can't tell you."

"Aw, Come on, Tina. I'm your sister! Can't you tell me?"


"Why not?"

"Cause it's a secret, and I promised not to tell, that's why!"

"I never told the secret about who broke the Tiffany lamp, did I? Mom 'n Dad still think it was that dumb neighbor's dog we let in! 'Member we both got punished, and I didn't tell or nothing!"

"I know," Tina replied, feeling guilty.

"Okay, so why can't you tell me how you found out about this stuff?"

"I just can't, and I wish you'd stop asking me, okay? I can't."

"Okay, but I don't think that's fair."

"Well, maybe I'll tell you later, but I gotta check first, Okay?"


Tina felt guilty about not telling her 9-year-old sister that it was Mr. Phillips up the street that had taught her all about sex. She and her sister were very close, and had shared everything. They'd never had secrets from each other before, and it felt bad to have one now. She resolved to ask Jim Phillips the next day, when she went to see him after school, if she could tell her sister. Mary had sulked over to her own bed, and in a short while, both little girls were fast asleep.

The next day after school, Tina kept her appointment with Jim Phillips. As always, it wasn't long before both man and little girl were stripped naked. Jim gave Mary an orgasm by having her sit on his face. He then had her suck his cock until he shot a large load of cum into her mouth. He made sure she swallowed it all, telling her that it was good for her, and that it would make her breast grow big. He never let Tina take her mouth off his penis. Instead, he kept moving her head back and forth on his cock until he was rock hard again, and ready for another cum.

Today's lesson was how to fuck a man with the girl on top. He had Tina stand over him, and slowly lower her hairless, pink pussy down onto his upright cock. He guided the tip of his cock into the entrance of her tight little orifice, and then let her lower herself slowly down onto his cock until the pre-teen was stooped down over him with his erection fully engulfed by her bald cunt lips. He had her start bouncing up and down, her feet on the bed on either side of him, and her hands on his chest for balance. Her warm tight hole milked his hard cock, and he nearly came again before stopping her.

He then had the 11-year-old stand over him again, only this time with her small round butt facing him. Once again, he told his 11-year-old lover to lower herself down onto his prick. This time he made her guide it in, wrapping her small hand around his slimy throbbing cock and rubbing the large head of his penis against her cunt lips until they spread to admit him. Again, she lowered herself onto the man and began to fuck him with her bouncing motions.

For his part, Jim Phillips reached down as the little girl bounced up and down and began to probe her small anus with his index finger. He grabbed some lotion from the head of the bed and lubricated the small opening and his finger. He then began to push his finger into the little girl's tiny anus; first knuckle...second knuckle...Deeper...Deeper.

Tina was beginning to grunt, but hadn't made a single sound of protest. She was getting more used to the strange acts that Jim Phillips wanted to perform, and his finger was certainly much better than his large cock being pushed into her bottom, so she didn't complain, though it sure felt tight.

Jim began to fondle his own cock inside the girl, feeling his dick through the membranes that separated the pre-teen's anal and vaginal walls. Shortly thereafter he began to cum, pushing deeper into the 11-year-old's ass and cunt, and using his free hand to grab her hips and pull the girl down onto his spurting cock. Tina nearly lost her balance, but stayed upright while the man filled her small uterus with his hot load of ropy white semen. When he released her, Tina climbed off, her cunt dripping juice and cum, and lay down next to her adult lover, with her head on his chest.

After laying like that for a while and letting Mr. Phillips catch his breath Tina said, "Uhhh Mr. a problem."

"Call me Jim, Tina. What's the problem?"

"Well, my sister, Mary and I, we share the same room an' all, and...Well the other day she caught me, you know, masturbating 'n all. And she thought I was sick, so she was gonna tell Mom, and I told her not to, and she wanted to know what I was doing, and so I showed her, you know, just so she wouldn't tell Mom 'n all."

It was all tumbling out of her at once. Tina had been worried about what to say, and so she just let it all spill out before she could have second thoughts about asking Jim Philips.

"So then I showed her how to, you know, do it; and we did it with each other all night. Then the next night she asks me where I learned it all, and I tell her I can't tell her, and she keeps asking and asking, and I didn't tell her or anything, but she kept wanting to know, so finally I told her I'd see if it was alright. I didn't tell her anything, so...well...but what I wanted to know was..."

"What you want to know is if you can tell her about you and me?"

"Well, yeah. She knows how to keep a secret. We've always told each other everything 'n she's never told one of my secrets."

"Well, Tina. That may be true, but this is kind of a special secret, don't you think? I mean, if this one were to get out, an awful lot of people would get hurt, including you, you know."

"I know. I just...I don't know..."

"I know, sweetheart. It hurts to keep a secret from your sister, especially when your parents are so mean, huh? It's like you and your sister are a team in your house, right? All for one and one for all, huh!"

"Yeah, I guess..."

"I understand. But, no. You can't tell your little sister about this secret. However, instead of telling her, you could let her IN on it, and then she would have as much reason to keep it as you."

"What do you mean? If I tell her, she would be in on it, wouldn't she?"

"No, Tina. She would know your secret, but she wouldn't be in on it. If she ever did tell, she wouldn't be a part of it, so it wouldn't matter if she told or not. But if she had a part in it then she probably would be even better at keeping our little secret. Get it?"


"It's simple. If you tell her, she can tell someone else, and it's no skin off her nose. She probably would too. Remember how shocked you were just two weeks ago. She'd be just as shocked. But, on the other hand, if you brought her here, and showed her our secret, then got her to do it with us, then she'd have to keep it to herself because she'd be in just as much hot water as the rest of us."

"You mean bring her here and we all have sex together?"

"That's right. I'd love to have your little sister; how old did you say she was? ...9, right?; sucking my cock while you sit on my face. Think about it! You'd have someone you share this with, and your sister would have her curiosity satisfied."

"I don't know..."

"Hey, don't be jealous. You were at the party the other day, right! None of us in our little group believe in jealousy. It just messes things up. It would be fun to teach your little sister, don't you think? Didn't you already like teaching her how to masturbate? How'd you like to teach her how to suck a cock? Or how to get fucked? Admit it; you'd love to see that, wouldn't you?"

"I guess..."

"Good. Then why don't we do it then? You can bring her here on Thursday after school, and we can both show her what she wants to know. It's a deal?"

"Uh...Okay. I'll bring her here after school on Thursday. Are you gonna try and fuck her, she's small for her age."

"Tina, you should know by now that I love to fuck small girls. There ain't nothing better than the look and feel of a large cock slipping into some tiny little cunny, all stretched and um um...makes me hard just thinking about it. Roll over, sweetie," and Jim Phillips rolled Tina over on her stomach, then pulled her up on her hands and knees and entered her from behind. His hand reached around to fondle Tina's clit while he humped her hard and deep. Tina soon was in heaven and cried out in orgasm. Feeling her small round butt and tight vagina clenching, Jim too began to cum and spurted yet another load of semen into his pre-teen sex toy.

As they were getting dressed, Jim reminded Tina to bring little Mary with her on Thursday, but not to tell Mary anything before they got there.

"I will," said Tina as she once again left by Jim's back door.

Watching her skip off in her plaid school skirt, Jim's mind quickly began to flash images of what it would be like to fuck a 9-year-old virgin while her 11-year-old sister held her down.

"UM UM UM..." he said out loud. "It's turning out to be a great month!" and he closed the back door as Tina skipped out of sight.

Note from The Purvv: The preceding 21 chapters were found on the internet under various titles and formats, but not once did I find an author. Most times, all of the above was in five chapters, occasionally ten, and in one instance, it was seven chapters. My only hand in it was to fix obvious spellings and punctuations, though I'm sure that I missed much. What is going to follow was one large chapter (called Chapter 6) and it appears to be an extension of the Tina story, possibly written by another. Chapter 6 actually had an author credited (Chester Field). As with the above, I broke it up into smaller chapters, which I call chapters 22 through 28.

Interestingly, still no end for the story was found.

Chapter Twenty-Two

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

Thursday came and Tina waited after school for her sister to get out of her class. After about five minutes of waiting, Mary came walking out the front door of Our Lady of Grace dressed in her school uniform with knee socks and saddle shoes, looking so young that Tina began to have second thoughts about taking her over to Jim Phillips' house as they had both planned. She realized that if she took her there, her 9-year-old sister was going to learn as much about sex with an adult as Tina herself had learned in the past few weeks. Mary was a skinny girl, small for her age, and Tina wasn't sure that she could handle the attentions of Jim Phillips, let alone his friends.

Her thoughts were interrupted when Mary spotted her and came running over.

"Hey, Tina... guess what? You shoulda seen it today! Sister Margaret was tryin' ta show us how to play basket ball, and she tripped while dribbling the ball. Boy, did she go flying! Everyone started calling her the Flying Nun after class!" Mary was laughing at the memory and smiling at her seemingly preoccupied sister.

Tina just smiled a little, not really hearing what Mary had to say. Then she asked, "Do you still wanna know, like how I learned all that stuff I been showing you, you know, at night?"

Mary eyes became real big, and her funny flying nun story was instantly forgotten.

"Yeah! I really do. Are you gonna tell me? Now?"

"Well..., but if you really, really wanna know, I can show you."

"Whadda ya mean?"

"Well, I can't tell you anything, cause it's a secret, but if I show you, and you ...uhhh like join me, then it's okay. But you gotta promise not to tell anyone else, or we'll both be in real trouble with Mom and Dad."

"I don't understand... Whadda ya mean 'join in'?"

"I mean you gotta like do things, like we been doing with each other, only you gotta do it with someone else who will teach you all sorts of stuff."

"Your teacher, you mean?"

"Yeah," nodded Tina. "You could like learn all the stuff I been learning to do..."

"Okay!" Mary agreed readily. The 9-year-old had no clue as to what she was agreeing to. Her bouts of oral sex with her 11-year-old sister and her increasing skill at masturbation had just wetted her appetite for more of the same. She had no concept of what sex with a boy, let alone a grown man, could mean for a fourth grader like herself.

Tina knew, and felt compelled to warn her innocent sister, without giving too much away. "Uh... Mary... Sometimes it's not as fun as like what we do. You gotta do things that seem weird or maybe even hurt but a lot of times it's really okay..." her explanation petered out. Tina was at a loss for words.

"Like what kinda things?" Mary asked.

"I can't tell you, you gotta just try it, but I just wanted you to know that it's real strange til you get used to it."

"I don't know what you mean..." complained Mary in a whine.

"Shhh... okay... well, you gotta come with me and I'll show you. Come on."

With that, Tina took her little sister's hand and both little girls went walking into the neighborhood toward home. Mary didn't understand why her sister was acting so strange. It was as if she both wanted, and didn't want to share her secret. Mary hadn't liked Tina's keeping a secret from her; the two girls had shared everything their whole lives. But she was glad that Tina was finally going to include her in whatever it was that Tina did that had taught her all about sex. Mary was curious about boys and sex, but knew better than to try to broach the subject at home with her parents. The 9-year-old didn't know what to expect from her sister, but she was happy to follow her lead as Tina deviated from their usual route home.

Normally the girls' route took them to the end of the street on which O. L. G. Elementary School was built, where they would turn left and walk around the block to get to their house, but Tina led Mary to the right and into the park that backed both the school and the neighborhood in which they lived. Several of the kids from the school had already gotten to the park and were playing on the equipment before making their own way home. Tina didn't stop to play, but instead walked across the park to the wooded area and down a path that led, in a short distance, to the backs of some other neighborhood properties. She skirted the first property and began to cut through the yard of Jim Phillips. However, before she could exit his yard from the front, she took Mary's hand and led her to the shrubbery that blocked Jim Phillip's back door from the view of both the back yard and the street. She walked up to the door and knocked a few times then waited.

"Oh, yeah, I remember. Mr. Phillips said we should ask his permission to cut through his yard," said Mary.

Jim Phillips' property was large, and kids knew it provided a quick route to the playground just through the woods. Mary didn't usually cut through his yard since the walk around the block was not that long anyway, but she guessed that Tina had made friends with Mr. Phillips, and just wanted to let him know they were cutting through. She still had no inkling that this was Tina's true destination.

Before Tina could answer, the door opened and Jim Phillips said, "Well, if it isn't my friend Tina, and her lovely little sister, Mary. Won't you two come in for a minute?"

Mary didn't want to go in for a visit because she wanted to finally get to wherever it was that Tina was taking her to learn about her secret. So she was a little surprised and annoyed when Tina agreed to the invitation and stepped through the door that Jim Phillips was holding open.

When she hesitated, Tina turned around, "Come on, dummy, don't just stand there."

"Now, Tina, you shouldn't call Mary names. She's never been in my house before and it's only natural to hesitate for a second when walking into a stranger's house. Come on, Mary. I promise I won't bite... yet!" This last was said with a grin that made it a joke.

Mary, feeling like a fool, walked into the house, following Tina's lead, and heard the door being closed and locked behind her. She followed her older sister's lead into the house, through the kitchen, and into the living room. Jim Phillips followed behind the little girl, noting how skinny the fourth grader was compared to her sister. When they arrived in the living room, there was a man sitting on the couch.

Recognizing John from the party, the previous weekend, Tina said, "Hi."

Jim Phillips came up behind little Mary and, resting his hand on her shoulder, said, "Mary, this is John, a friend of Tina's and mine. John this is Tina's little sister, Mary."

John stood up, his muscular frame looming large over little girl. "Nice to meet you, Mary."

"Uh... Nice to meet you too," said the child, shifting her weight from side to side in her embarrassment at meeting new people. She still did not understand what Tina was doing here; this seemed like a real unnecessary detour to her.

"How old are you, Mary?" asked John.


"And you go to the same school as Tina, Our Lady of Grace, just up the street?"


"I like your little school uniform. I think they make you girls look awful cute. Cute enough to eat, huh, Tina?"

At this, he smirked and his gaze turned to Tina with a wink. Tina caught the pun and grinned a little, but still didn't know how to break the ice and get to the part where Mary found out why they were really here. Fortunately, Jim Phillips had everything planned out; all Tina had to do was deliver her kid sister to the back door, and everything was going to take care of itself from that point on.

"John, why don't you take Tina upstairs and show her that thing I was telling you about. I'll keep Mary company down here. Tina, you go with John. He's got something special for you to do."

"Uhh... Okay," said Tina. She walked over to the stairs with John, but stopped at the bottom step, turning to give her virgin sister one last look. Mary didn't want to be left alone with Jim Phillips, and couldn't understand why her sister was going upstairs with, what to little Mary, was a stranger. She saw Tina turn to look at her, and she also saw John reach down and put his arm around Tina's shoulders, pulling her toward him, and leading her up the stairs. Something wasn't right, but Mary didn't know what it was.

"So, Mary. Come here and sit down. Come on. Over here next to me." Jim Phillips indicated the spot next to him on the love seat in front of the television.

The 9-year-old, moved to obey now that Tina was out of sight. She sat down on the seat next to Mr. Phillips and put her hands in her lap.

"Mary, your sister Tina tells me that you two are best friends, that you share the same room at home?"

"Uh huh."

"Does that ever bother you, having to share your room with your sister? I had an older brother and I had to share a room with him until I was 16 years old and he moved away to college. I remember how great it was to finally have my own room where I could do whatever I wanted in private. Doesn't it bother you to have to share your room?"

"Nuh huh. Me and Tina have been sharing our room for as long as I can remember."

"I guess you two must be really good friends, huh?"

Despite her natural reluctance, Mary started to feel like she could talk to this man. He was treating her real nice, and seemed to be genuinely interested in the answers she had to give.

"Yeah. Tina's my best friend."

"I guess you two tell each other everything, huh?"

"Oh yeah!" the little girl bubbled, and then she remembered that there were some thing's that Tina didn't share with her. "Well, most things."

"Oh!" chuckled Jim. "You mean you got some secrets that you haven't told her about, huh?"

"Uhhh... No."

"Oh," he said, sounding more serious, "You mean there are some secrets she has that you don't know?"

'How could this man get to my problem so quickly? Did it show or something?' she thought to herself.

"Well... kinda..." was all the 9-year-old would answer.

"Hummmm. Must be a pretty big secret not to share it with your own sister. I mean, you two live in the same room together, and all. What do you suppose it is?"

"I don't know," said Mary, lying.

All she knew about Tina's secret was that she had somehow learned an awful lot of things about sex and how to make herself feel good. In thinking about it, Mary had convinced herself that Tina had made friends with some other girl or even group of girls that shared all they knew. That was where Mary figured they were going today. She had had images in her head of Tina's special girl friend and what the three of them would do together. In her wildest dreams, she never would have imagined that the man sitting next to her was Tina's mentor.

"Well, I bet I have an idea of what it might be," said Jim.

Mary looked up at the man, starting to wonder exactly where the conversation was going, and worrying that Mr. Phillips would somehow guess Tina's secret. Jim Phillips had moved closer to the little 9-year-old as he talked and now, as he put his hand on her small knee and leaned his mouth closer to her ear, his hand felt large and warm on her leg.

"I'll bet it has something to do with sex," he whispered into her ear.

Mary made a sharp intake of breath and began to tremble. 'How could he know? How did it show? I must have given it away or something! What would he do now?' Mary's thoughts became chaotic and worried. For all her life, sex had been a dirty subject in her house; something that you never mentioned to an adult because it was...well...dirty, or something. Her parents had always been so uncomfortable talking about it that they got angry anytime anything about the subject came up. Now this man, this stranger, was guessing Tina's big secret and little Mary didn't know what to do. If she'd somehow given it away, both she and Tina would be in a lot of trouble with their parents.

Her fear made her tremble and caused her not to notice the way Jim Phillips hand slowly moved up her smooth, skinny thigh until it touched the hem of her plaid school dress. Jim Phillips rested his hand on the little 9-year-old thigh, enjoying the slight scare that she was experiencing. Moving his other arm behind the child and resting his hand on her opposite shoulder, he decided to scare her some more. It was a turn-on for Jim Phillips to see a small girl in fear, knowing that soon enough the child would be his for sex.

"That's it, isn't it?" he said, tightening his grip on the 9-year-old and pulling her toward him. "I can tell by the way you're acting. Your older sister is having sex, and your parents don't know, do they? I'm right, aren't I?"

He was still leaning down and whispering into the fourth grader's ear. He wanted to hear little Mary answer, but she could only look straight ahead and tremble. He decided a little adult authority would work on the little girl.

"Answer me, Mary," he said sternly, not bothering to whisper. "Is your big sister playing with herself?"

"Nuh... Nooo," Mary whined, her voice failing her for an instance.

"YOU'RE LYING!" Jim said loudly.

His hand came up from the little girl's thigh and grabbed her small chin. He moved her face to look directly into his. Her eyes were filled with fear, and the youngster looked like she was about to cry.

"You're not telling me the truth, are you, little Mary? I bet your parents would like to hear about this little secret. I even bet that you've been doing the same as Tina, haven't you? You've been playing with yourself, haven't you, Mary?"

"Nuh- -" she started to answer.

"Don't lie to me, little girl, or your parents are gonna find out your dirty little secret. You got that? So now, answer with the truth or else. Do you play with yourself, Mary?"

Mary had started to cry. The fourth grader tried to hold back her tears, but her eyes filled and they started to roll down her cheeks. Jim still held her chin in his hand, forcing the tiny child to look him in the eye as she answered, "Yuh...yes..."

"Good girl. And do you like it? Does it feel good?"


"And does it feel better when Tina does it to you?"


"I bet you two little girls even lick each other. Am I right?"

This was too much for little Mary to confess without breaking out into a full-blown cry.

"Yuh...yes..." and the small girl started to cry. Her body was wracked by sobs, and again she didn't notice when Jim Phillips let go of her face and put his hand back down on her skinny thigh. Mary covered her face in her hands and cried, knowing that her secret was now out and that it would only be a matter of time before her parents somehow found out, and both Mary and her sister Tina would be in the biggest trouble of their young lives.

Chapter Twenty-Three

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

Jim Phillips had a bit of a sadistic streak in him, and the sound of a little girl crying was a turn-on for him. He kept a firm grip on the crying girl as he began to fondle her slender thigh with his hand, slowly pushing her plaid school uniform skirt up her leg. The 9-year-old was crying too much to notice, so he let his hand travel further up under her short skirt. Her skin was soft and warm under his hand, and the smallness of her turned him on as much as her sobbing. He decided to shock her into paying closer attention to him. He pushed his hand up under her dress quickly until he was pushing his fingers into the "V" of her cotton panties. He could feel the lips of her smooth virgin cunt under the thin fabric of her panties, and he enjoyed the sharp intake of her breath as the little girl felt his fingers probe her crotch.

"You play with yourself here, right?" Mary's crying had stopped almost instantly. Her face was still wet, but having this grown man put his hand on her crotch had shocked her out of her crying to a new level of fear. What was going on?

"Answer me, Mary!"


"Tina plays with you too, right?"


"You like it when she plays with your little cunny, right?"


Little Mary was beginning to tremble. Jim Phillips was rubbing his hand up and down her small slit, probing her childish cunt through her cotton panties. Jim could feel the stiffness in her body.

"Does she lick you here?"

Mary didn't want to be touched by this grown man. She started to protest and moved her hand to push his away from her crotch, "I... I don't want..."

"You don't want what? You don't want me to touch you here?" he said, pushing two fingers harder into her small cunny. The efforts of the little 9-year-old to push his hand away were futile. Jim Phillips had control of the little girl. "That's just too bad, Mary. You see, I know your secret. I know everything. I know that you and Tina stay up at night, licking and playing with each other. I know that you like to be touched here. And you know what else I know, Hummm?"

"Wha... What?" she asked fearfully.

"I know what your parents would think if they found out about it."

Once again, little Mary froze. 'Oh, God...,' she thought. Visions on her father's anger filled the little girl's head.

"You won't tell them, will you... please?" she pleaded.

"Why shouldn't I tell them, hmm? Little girls aren't supposed to do that sort of thing, you know. What will you do for me if I keep your little secret, huh Mary?"

Mary was desperate. She didn't know where her older sister was, and she needed help.

"What will you do for me, Mary, if I keep your secret?" Jim Phillips asked again.

"I don't know..." said the fourth grader.

"You better think of something. I hate to think of the kind of trouble you could get into at home. Tell me what you'll do for me, Mary!"


"Tell me!"

"I'll do anything... please don't tell my parents... Tina and I would really be in big trouble. Please..."

This was what Jim Phillips had been waiting for. That promise of 'anything' that all little girls will make, not knowing what 'anything' would include. Once again, he had a little girl that he could bend to his will. And the bending was going to start right away.

"Anything, Mary? You'll do anything I say?"

"Yes, but please don't tell my Mom 'n Dad about us."

"I won't tell them, Mary, if you keep your promise and do anything I say. Now, here... Stand up in front of me." He helped the little girl to her feet and had her stand between his spread knees. "That's good. You know, Mary, you're really a nice looking little girl. Now you're going to keep your promise to me, aren't you?"

"... Uh huh..."

The fourth grader stood before the man. Her tears had dried, but she still trembled with the fear that her secret was going to be revealed to her parents. She wondered what Mr. Phillips was going to make her do. It didn't take long to find out.

"That's good. You really are a good-looking girl you know. I want you to show me where Tina touches you Mary. Show me where it is that she makes you feel so good."

There was a tremendous fright in the child's eyes, which only seemed to increase the man's sexual appetite.

"I…I can't…" she whispered with her eyes looking down at the floor.

"I'm going to have to tell your mom and dad unless you show me then," he said gently and then added, "Just pull up your skirt to show me."

The girl was in a panic. The last thing on earth that she wanted was for her parents to find out. The man's word frightened her beyond belief. The little girl reached down her front, grabbed the hem of her plaid, school skirt and began to lift it up. When she hesitated, Jim Phillips leaned forward and grabbed her wrist, pulling it up further until both her hands were at chest level and her tiny, cotton covered crotch was exposed to his gaze.

"That's a good girl, Mary. I was right. You are a nice looking little girl. Now I want you to stand real still. Don't move, and don't say anything. Remember, you have to do anything I want," and with that, Jim Phillips leaned forward and ran his hands up the little girl's legs, starting at her knees and letting them trail up to her protruding pelvic bones. Mary was small for her age, and actually somewhat skinny. Her smooth skin was pale, and hot to his touch. The little girl didn't know what to expect and her breath sucked in sharply when he let his fingers slide under the elastic band of her white cotton panties. Slowly, he began to slip the waistband of her panties down.

"No. Please."

"I said don't say anything, Mary, not a single sound. You let me do what I want, and your secret is safe. Remember that. Not one word."

Mary quickly stifled her protests. Jim Phillips paused and looked the 9-year-old in the face to see that she would obey him. He then turned his attention back to her panties and the job of removing them. He slid the waistband lower on her small body. Slowly, enjoying the trembling of his little victim, he lowered the fourth grader's cotton underwear until the very top of her small hairless slit peeked into view. He continued to peel the white panties from the child before him, pulling them down until they hung at her knees.

The little girl was very slender; her pelvis bones protruding on either side of her flat belly, her hairless mound protruding outward from her abdomen. The lips of her prepubescent pussy were fully exposed because her slender thighs did not meet at the top of her legs. They pouted at the "V" of her crotch, begging to be fondled and licked. Jim reached up and touched one finger to the top of the 9-year-old's hairless little slit. A little "Oh," escaped from Mary, but nothing more.

"That's a good girl. Not a word. Not a sound. You're gonna let me touch you for a while. You're gonna like it when I touch you. I'm gonna touch you just like you let your sister touch you, sweetheart."

As he spoke, he placed one hand on the 9-year-old's buttock, taking hold of her right cheek in his hand. Her ass was smooth and hot, not much to it, considering the little girl's tender age. He held her there so that she could not back away as her slid his finger deeper into her hairless slit.

The lips of the fourth grader's small cunt separated easily as his finger slid down into her warm recess. Jim felt her small clit, hard under his probing finger. He let his finger slide deeper, looking for the entrance to the little girl's vagina. Her pussy was dry to his touch. Not surprising since he wasn't seducing this little girl the way he had seduced Tina. Finding the entrance, Jim Phillips probed gently at the soft flesh, but did not try to enter. He slowly moved his finger back up to the 9-year-old's clit and began to stroke the little pink nub of flesh.

Mary's mind was a whirl of confused emotions. She didn't like standing before this man, exposed to his sight and touch. She was afraid of his touch, but curious too. His hand felt warm, cupping her bottom, massaging her slender rear and holding her in place for his probing finger. His finger in the folds of her childish cunny was stimulating little Mary, even though her head told her that she shouldn't be enjoying it. She wondered where her sister Tina had gone to, and wanted her to come back and save her, but she didn't want to be caught like this; standing with her panties down and her school uniform dress held high, with a grown man playing with her private parts.

'Jesus, this is going to be nice,' thought Jim as he began to masturbate the small 9-year-old standing in front of him. The little girl couldn't move backwards away from his hand because he gripped her small bottom in his other hand. Slowly, Jim Phillips increased the speed and pressure of his strokes between the folds of Mary's hairless cunny.

The youngster couldn't help but respond and the trembling of her legs caused her small white panties to fall the rest of the way down to her ankles.

"You like it, don't you, Mary? You like me playing with you like this, don't you?"

"Uuh..." was the only sound that came from the fourth grader's lips. It was a cross between a moan and assent. Little Mary had closed her eyes and was leaning forward slightly, trying to compensate for the weakness she felt in her legs.

"Come here, Mary. Sit on my lap." Jim Phillips pulled the tiny 9-year-old child to him and lifted her onto his lap. Her small naked bottom rested on his throbbing erection, and though the youngster was a light as a feather, she still had enough weight to press herself onto his hard-on, causing Jim Phillips to shudder as he reached down and pulled her white panties completely off her legs. Putting an arm around the girl, Jim pulled her back to his chest. His other hand once again found its way down her flat belly to her tiny hairless slit.

Once again, he began to masturbate the small fourth grade girl, pressing his finger firmly between her smooth, hairless pink lips. He held her small body firmly against his chest and pushed her legs apart with his own. He pushed his face down into her soft hair, inhaling her little girl smell. Her head came only up to his chest and he had full control of her movements.

Little Mary was starting to respond to his finger, stroking up and down in her soft cunny. The folds of her small opening were starting to become moist in response to Jim Phillips' touch. Her breathing was beginning to become deeper and her small frame was starting to relax in his strong grip. Jim thought he could even feel her small bottom beginning to thrust back and forth on his lap, gently massaging his hard cock through the cloth of his pants.

If little Mary was anything like her older sister, Jim knew that it wouldn't take her long to have an orgasm. All he had to do was keep stroking her tiny twat, and the 9-year-old would soon be squirming in his lap and asking for more.

It didn't take long. The small girl's breathing continued to become more and more ragged. Small moans began to escape from her as his large finger tortured her tiny pink clitoris. Her cunt had become damp, and Jim Phillips was able to reach down between the soft folds of her cunt to moisten his finger, making stroking her hairless slit easier. He knew that little Mary was close and he wanted to torture her just a little bit. He slowed his hand to a slow stroke, not enough to make the little girl cum, but enough to keep her stimulated.

"Do you like it, Mary?" he asked, leaning down and whispering in her ear. "Do you like it when I play with you there, Mary? Tell me you like it, sweetheart."

"... Uhh huh..." was all the little girl said.

"No, Mary. Say, 'I like it when you play with me, Mr. Phillips.' Go on. Say it."

'Oh god, it does feel good,' thought the embarrassed 9-year-old.

"I like it when you play with me, Mr. Phillips."

"That's a good girl. You want me to rub it hard, darling? Hmm? Do you want me to rub you good...? Make you cum...? Hmm?"

"...Uh huh..."

"Say 'Please'."

"Please...Please rub me!"

"Oh, Mary, I'll rub you real good. Ummmmmmm... Does that feel good?" he asked as he began to masturbate the 9-year-old girl in his lap.

"...Uh... yeah...uh... please."

Mary was becoming incoherent. Her whole being was concentrating on the growing feeling of tension in her small vagina. It felt like a giant sneeze was building in her belly, only the 9-year-old knew it wasn't a sneeze. She knew that she would soon be cumming. She no longer cared if she was with her sister or a large adult she hardly knew, an adult who held her firmly in his grip and whose hot breath she could feel on her ear and neck as he looked over her shoulder to where his large hand caressed the soft, hairless spot between her widely spread legs. It was close... so close... so...

"Guhhhhhhhmmmmmm..." Mary cried out as the shattering orgasm gripped her small 9-year-old body. Her back arched and her head pushed back into Jim Phillips' chest. He gripped the convulsing youngster hard and never let up on stroking her pulsing cunt. The little girl shook in his arms, her hips thrusting uncontrollably to the rhythm of her orgasm. Her small pussy was suddenly very damp, and Jim's finger had no problem with lubrication as he continued to torture the fourth grader's throbbing clit.

Mary was blind to anything. Her eyes had rolled up into her head, and she had no control over the movements of her body. Her hips bucked back and forth in a rhythm so ancient that it was built into the genes.

Each wave of orgasm caused her to let out a loud, "UH," as spasm after spasm emanated from her abused slit, up through her flat belly and chest, and into her head, where it exploded in a blinding flash of pure pleasure.

'Christ, this little slut is hotter than her sister,' thought Jim as the small girl began to come down from her orgasm. He removed his hand from the fourth grader's now sopping cunt, and let her school dress fall back down, covering her. Mary had gone limp in Jim's lap, her legs still splayed wide on either side of his, her head having fallen back to rest on his chest. Her breathing was heavy from the exertion of her orgasm, and her eyes were closed as she relaxed on the man.

Jim let the child lay there for a while, recovering strength from her pleasurable convulsions before whispering in her ear, "Did you like that, Mary?"

"...Uh huh," she replied with obvious effort to get out that much.

"You don't have to worry, you know. Your little secret is safe with me, sweetheart. Wanna know why?"


Why was he asking her questions now? Part of Mary's brain didn't want to do anything but lay still and relax after that fantastic orgasm, but another part was beginning to realize that something important was being said, and that she had better start listening.

"I'll tell you why your little secret is safe with me, Mary. It's because I knew it before you even came in the house. I knew it because Tina told me. You see, your sister and I are special friends, and she says you want to be one of my special friends too. You wanted to know how she learned everything. I taught her, Mary. Tina and I have sex with each other."

"What... You!? You and Tina...?"

"That's right, Mary, me and Tina. Here, let me show you something right now so you'll believe me."

Chapter Twenty-Four

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

Jim Phillips reached over to the side table and grabbed the remote control for the TV/VCR and hit the play button. He had selected today's video with care; it had served him quite well in the past when introducing young girls to the idea of sex with and adult. He knew it would work well today as well, besides which, he could always play his trump hand.

The TV came to life and the video started playing. It opened with a title, "Special Friends". The title faded to a scene of several children playing on a jungle gym. A male voice came over the background sound of the kids squealing.

"Everybody needs a friend, and most of us have a best friend - - but this movie is about Special Friends, more than best friends. A special friend is someone who loves you in a special way. A way most children don't understand, but which a lucky few learn from their Special Friend."

The scene changed to show a little girl sitting in her bedroom. The room was done in pink, and the little girl was surrounded by stuffed toys, teddy bears, and cats. The girl had long blond hair that was done in a ponytail.

She fidgeted with one of the stuffed toys for a few minutes, and then looked into the camera, saying, "My name is Chrissy. I uhh, I'm eight years old, and this is my room. And this is Charlie, my bear." This last was accompanied by the little girl holding the stuffed bear up to the camera.

From off-camera a male voice said, "It's nice to meet you, Chrissy. It's nice to meet Charlie too. Is Charlie your friend?"

"Uh huh ... He's been my friend for a looooong time," the child said, nodding her head.

"That's nice, but he's not your SPECIAL friend, is he? Who's your special friend, Chrissy?"

"Mr. Wilkes is my really special friend."

"Why is that, Chrissy?"

"Cause... he shows me things..."

The scene changed to a view of young Chrissy walking upon a sidewalk.

The narrator's voice came on: "Little Chrissy is a very lucky girl. She's made a special friend; a friend who teaches her things most little girls never learn. A friend who helps her learn things they won't teach in school."

The 8-year-old had begun to walk up to a driveway, and the camera followed her up to the front door.

The narration continued: "Chrissy has learned a lot from her special friend Mr. Wilkes, and now she is going to share some of what she has learned with you."

The little girl had knocked on the front door, and a man about 35 had answered.

He smiled and looked down at the little girl saying, "Chrissy, I'm glad you could come over today! Come on in!" The man held the door open, and the 8-year-old slipped into his house.

The scene changed to show the man leading Chrissy to the living room of the house.

"You look really nice today, Chrissy!" said Mr. Wilkes as he sat down on the couch. "Why don't you take your clothes off for me and let me see that beautiful little body of yours, huh?"

Chrissy giggled but began to undress before the man. She kicked off her shoes and began to pull her tee shirt off, over her head, revealing her flat, pale chest.

The scene changed back to Chrissy in her bedroom. She was talking: "Mr. Wilkes tells me that I have a pretty body. He likes to see me with no clothes on. He told me that someday I might be a model like in the pictures he showed me. He lets me pretend that I'm a model now and takes pictures of me."

Another scene change and 8-year-old Chrissy was standing before Mr. Wilkes in nothing but her cotton panties. She was giggling as Mr. Wilkes reached forward, pulling the small girl into his arms and hugging her against his naked chest. He had removed his shirt, and his hairy chest was dark and muscular against the soft flesh of the third grade child. His large hands roamed over her youthful body, gripping her tiny buttocks and pulling her against him. His fingers slipped inside the cotton panties and fondled the girl-child's bottom. He slipped her underwear down, revealing the small orbs of her butt to the camera.

Chrissy was still giggling softly, but her slender arms were wrapped around Mr. Wilkes neck, and her head was tilted back as he kissed the slight girl on the neck and muttered endearments into her ear.

"MMMMMMMuuuuummmm, Chrissy, you feel nice - - nice and soft, nice and smooth, nice and small!"

Mary didn't know what to make of the scene she was seeing. It was obvious now that Mr. Phillips was the secret that Tina had been keeping from her. She felt awkward sitting on the man's lap with no underwear on under her school uniform, and this video that he was showing her was really strange. The girl Chrissy, seemed to like being naked with the man on the screen, but it seemed weird too. Mary was anxious to see what was going to happen next in the film.

Once again, the scene returned to Chrissy in her bedroom. The male narrator was still conducting the interview with the 8-year-old.

"Do you like having no clothes on with Mr. Wilkes, Chrissy?"

"Uh huh. He likes to feel me up when I take my clothes off."

"Does he take his clothes off for you, Chrissy?"

"Uh huh... 'cept he always makes me take off his underwear. He says he really likes it when I undress him all the way. He says that having me undress him turns him on. I know it does because his wiener gets all hard!"

"His what?"

"You knowwwww..." she said, grinning as if the questioner was an idiot. "His THING..."

"Now, Chrissy, some of the little girls who will watch this may not have a special friend yet. Why don't you tell them what you mean? What is a man's 'wiener'?"

The little girl's face crinkled up as her brain searched for words to describe what was so much easier just to show.

"You know. Like, a girl has a slit between her legs where the pee comes out. Well a man has this... like... big long stick... No, it's like they have a thumb growing out between their legs, only bigger. Mr. Wilkes calls it a penis. But it ain't got no bones or nothing, so it doesn't wiggle like a thumb. And it, like, gets all hard and stiff and long when I play with it."

"You play with Mr. Wilkes penis, Chrissy?"

"Yeah... he taught me how to do it right. He says it feels really good."

The scene switched to the Wilkes' living room again. Now, Chrissy was sitting on the coffee table in front of the couch. She was leaning back with her arms supporting her weight, and the 8-year-old had her legs spread wide open and held up in the air. Mr. Wilkes was now dressed only in his underwear, and was sitting before the obscenely spread girl-child, running his hand and fingers back and forth over her small hairless cunt.

"You liked it when I did that to you, right Mary?" whispered Jim Phillips into Mary's ear.

Mary started but didn't answer because the scene on the screen held her attention. The camera had zoomed in on the third grade girl's pink, bald cleft, and the man was slowly probing her childish opening. His middle finger was disappearing inside the girl very slowly. Chrissy's pussy seemed to glisten with sweat as the man inched his finger slowly into her until finally his first and third finger knuckles were pressed into the hairless pink lips on either side of the pre-teen's vagina. Chrissy made a small moan, but didn't protest the intrusion in any way.

Mary hadn't even realized there was an opening there, except where pee came out. She didn't understand where the man's finger had gone, and as slowly as it went into the girl, the finger started to come out. Mary could see how the 8-year-old's cunt lips puckered out; how the warm flesh of her pre-teen cunt tried to hold onto the invading digit.

Chrissy's delicate pussy lips separated and Mary could clearly see the opening as Mr. Wilkes removed the last third of his middle finger from the tiny girl's cunny. The man ran his finger up and down between the 8-year-old's delicate, hairless cunt a few more times, and then brought his finger up to his mouth and licked off the glistening girl dew there.

"UMMMMMmmmmmm Chrissy, you taste good! Wanna have a taste of me, honey?"

"Okay," said the child as she quickly kneeled on the floor before Mr. Wilkes.

He stood up in front of the girl, wearing only his underwear, which tented out in front from his straining erection. He reached down and put both hands behind Chrissy's head, pulling her forward and pushing his crotch into her face. The 8-year-old smiled as her face neared his crotch and began to kiss his underwear, pressing her pursed lips onto the thin cloth covering his erection.

"MMMMmmm... Nice, Chrissy. Go ahead, strip me down, honey, and play with my dick."

Without hesitation, the third grader grabbed the elastic of the man's underwear and started to pull them down, giggling when the front became caught on the rigid penis underneath. The man reached into his underwear to hold his penis out of the way and let the little girl strip them down to his ankles. He let go of his cock and it sprung forward to point directly at the smiling face of the tiny girl-child kneeling on the floor before him.

Chrissy reached up with both hands and encircled his large cock. Her hands were small next to the large member. She began to slide her hands up and down on the pulsing shaft, evoking a small moan from the man standing over her. He leaned forward to rest one hand on the 8 year old's head, pulling her face slightly closer to the purple head of his cock.

Chrissy was smiling and looking up into Mr. Wilkes' face as she masturbated him. A small bit of pre-cum fluid dribbled from the head of his penis and dripped onto the back of the child's hand, glistening in the back and forth motion of her hands.

Mary squirmed a bit in Jim Phillips lap.

"You've never seen a man's penis before, have you, Mary?" he whispered in her ear.

"No..." she answered in a small voice, her eyes never leaving the screen.

"That's okay, sweetheart. Just watch this show and you'll see all sorts of things you've never seen - - But Tina has!" Jim Phillips added that last dig to remind the young girl held in his lap that her older sister had seen all this and more, and that if little Mary wanted to keep up, she'd have to watch the whole thing!

The scene had changed back to Chrissy's bedroom. The interviewer was asking more questions of the little girl.

"So, Chrissy. Do you like to suck his dick?"

"Uh huh," said the 8-year-old, rocking back and forth on the bed.


"Ummmmm... Cause then I get to swallow his cream... the stuff that shoots out the end when I suck long enough. He says that it'll make my breasts grow real pretty, prettier than the other girls. I know that's the truth because he showed me some movies and the women in them all had, like, real nice breasts, and they all were sucking an' stuff."

"Chrissy, it sounds like you really know how to suck a dick!"

"Uh huh. Mr. Wilkes taught me how to do it real good. He likes it best when I have my head kinda hanging upside down off the end of the bed, but I don't like that so much cause sometimes he pushes it in too far and then it makes me wanna throw up. Most of the time I just do it when he's sitting down or something."

Back to the scene of little Chrissy jerking on the hard erection of Mr. Wilkes. Her lips were scant inches from the end of the throbbing cock. The end was now wet with pre-cum fluid. The hand on the back of her head was urging the little girl's face slowly closer to the penis aimed at her small mouth.

The 8-year-old looked up one last time at the horny man standing before her, smiling as he said, "Suck me, Chrissy. I have a big, hot load of sperm for you to swallow, honey. Come on... Open your mouth and shove that old cock into that beautiful face of yours!"

His hand gripped her head firmly and pulled the third grader's face down onto his penis just as she opened her mouth for him. His cock was huge in the little girl's mouth. She had to open her jaws fully to accept the purple veined penis that sunk into her face.

The camera moved to a side view and showed that only the first third of the man's penis would fit into the little girl's mouth. The ridge of the head of his cock was outlined against the child's puffed out cheeks.

Slowly, he began to move his hips against the little girl's face; his hands held her head firmly and pulled the third grader's face down onto his penis, just as she opened her mouth for him. Slowly, he began to move his hips against the little girl; easing his penis in and out of her open mouth.

He moaned as his cock pushed slowly into the submissive girl-child.

Chrissy did not flinch from having her face slowly fucked. She alternately closed her eyes and held them wide open, looking up into the face of the man whose prick she was tasting.

"Mary, do you think you could do that for me?" asked Jim Phillips as the 9-year-old on his lap sat in stunned silence.

Mary had never in her short life, imagined such a thing. The fourth grader had never seen a man's cock, let alone a full-blown erection. Sex was always a dirty topic at her house; spoken of in whispers with her sister, Tina; never mentioned to her parents. Now, here before her, she watched as a young girl, younger than herself even, used her mouth on that part of a man that was the biggest mystery to the young girl. Her mind was aswirl with a thousand thoughts...

'Is it always that big? ... What does it taste like? ... Why is it so hairy? ... What cream do they mean? I wonder if I could do that? It doesn't look easy. ... That's gross!' With all this and more streaming through her mind, it took her a second to realize that Jim Phillips had asked her a question.

"Huh?" she said.

"Do you think you could do that for me? Suck my penis, I mean? Chrissy's only 8 years old, and she knows how to do it. Do you wanna do that for me, sweetheart?"

"Uh... I don't know... No..."

"That's too bad, Mary. Tina does it. She's real good at it. Are you sure you don't want me to teach you how to suck me, Mary?"

"... Now ...?" she asked, a little fearful.

"No... Not now... I want you to see the rest of this film, but maybe later, okay?"

Jim Phillips always managed to get his young girls to agree to anything by making it seem a remote possibility in the future. He knew that young girls never really thought of the future, so they would almost invariably agree to anything in the future to get out of the discomfort of the moment. Basic human psychology. Adults are smart enough to realize the future does come, but children didn't, and he used this fact to full advantage until his young lovers were deeply caught into his web of kiddie sex and pornography.

"Uh... maybe..." replied the little girl, squirming a little as Jim laid his hand on her leg and rested it on her slender thigh.

"Okay. I'll consider that a promise then. Your sister can teach you how to do it, when the time comes."

Worked like a charm, and Mary made no protest that her "maybe" had been turned into a "yes" in no time.

'This is going to be real nice,' thought Jim as he slowly moved his hand up under Mary's plaid skirt, inching his way back to the 9-year-old's tiny hairless cunny.

Mary's mind was pulled back into the scene playing before her on the screen. On TV, Mr. Wilkes' tentative hip thrusts had become a regular urgent rhythm. 8-year-old Chrissy had both of her hands wrapped around his erection, and she moved them back and forth in time to the motion of his hips. The cock was plunging in and out of her mouth, coming almost all the way out each time before being pushed back in. Mr. Wilkes had both hands on the third grader's head. Her blond ponytail was swaying back and forth behind her.

He controlled her movements as he said, "Oh yeah, Chrissy...Yeah. I love fucking your mouth - - your little girl mouth. Ummm... My sweet little girl. Oh, fuck... My little elementary schoolgirl; 8 years old and getting your mouth fucked. Suck that penis, sweetheart... You like me fucking your mouth, don't you, Chrissy? You want my cum, don't you little girl? Ummmmm...uh uh... Little school girl getting fucked in the mouth - - wants her little girl mouth filled with cum... Yeah! Okay...okay, I'm gonna cum... Gonna cum in my little GIRL'S MOUTH... I'M GONNA CUM IN YOUR 8-year-old FACE CHRISSY. CHHRRIIIISSYYY AAAAAAHHHHHH FUUUUCCCKKKK TAKE IT - - SWALLOW THAT CUM...AAAHHHHHHGGGHHAAAHHH AAAHHHHHH."

Mr. Wilkes pulled down hard on Chrissy's head and his hips stopped moving except for spasmodic, violent thrusts, each accompanied by a loud groan. Mary couldn't tell what was happening until she saw the small stream of white fluid that spurted from the side of the 8-year-old's mouth to dribble down to her chin. From there it formed a ropy strand that dangled back and forth for a few seconds until the end made contact with Chrissy's flat, breastless chest. As Mr. Wilkes spasmed and pulled on the little girl's head, more of the milky substance trickled out of her mouth and landed on her smooth naked body, coating her with a glossy finish.

'That must be the cream they were talking about,' thought Mary as she watched, hypnotized at the sight of a grown man pumping an 8-year-old girl's mouth full of hot semen.

'I wonder what it tastes like?' she thought, and, as if in answer, the man stepped back from the little girl, pulling his penis from her mouth, but not far.

"That was great, Chrissy. You want to lick off the last drop?"

Without a word, the third grader leaned forward, putting a hand on each of the man's legs, and proceeded to use her tongue to clean off the drippy head of his penis as is bobbed before her. Her tongue snaked out to make contact with the sperm covered head of Mr. Wilkes' erection. The third grade girl began to lick the end of his penis, using her tongue to gather up the sperm that hung there and dribbled out the end. Mr. Wilkes reached down and squeezed his prick to make the last few drops come out for the girl to lick off and swallow. Finally, Chrissy took one of her hands and rubbed the palm under her chin, catching the dangling gob of cum hanging there. Without hesitation, the little girl licked the cum off the palm of her hand.

"You like that cum, don't you Chrissy?"

"Yeah... I like it a lot!" said the small girl, laughing up at the man with his cock at half-mast, hanging near her sweet face. The scene ended and jumped back to the interview with Chrissy in her bedroom.

The man interviewing the little girl asked, "So, you like to suck your special friend, huh? Tell me, Chrissy, do you do other things with this special man of yours?"

"Uh huh..."

"Like what?"

"He likes to fuck me."

"You mean he puts his penis inside your body?"

"Uh huh."

"And then he pumps his cum in you there, right?"

"Uh huh."

"Do you like to fuck, Chrissy? Do you like it when your special man pushes his penis deep into your body?"

"Ummmmmm..." Her eye traveled to the ceiling, as if contemplating her answer. "Uh hum... It feels all stretchy when he first puts it in, but then it feels good. Sometimes it makes me cum too, but most of the time I just let him do me and get his cream inside me. He says someday I'll make a baby that way, but that I'm too young now, but that when he cums inside me it helps give me a good figure."

"I see. Tell me Chrissy, did you ever do it with more than just your special man; at the same time I mean?"

"Yeah. Mr. Wilkes sometimes has this friend that comes over and we all get naked and one of them will make me suck his wiener while the other one fucks me."

"Do you like being the center of attention that way, I mean, two men at the same time! You must be one lucky little girl!"

"I guess so... Yeah, they say I really turn them on..."

Chapter Twenty-Five

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

Another scene change. This time the screen showed a bedroom other than Chrissy's.

Chrissy and Mr. Wilkes were already on the bed. The man had her on her back, and was holding her legs up and apart in the air as his head busied itself within the small girl's spread crotch. From the angle it couldn't be seen, but he was licking the 8-year-old's hairless cunt, his tongue moving back and forth from her tiny anus, across her smooth cuntal lips, parting them and tasting her pink inner recesses, and up to her budding clit; teasing the little girl into giving small squeals of delight.

From the right, another man entered the picture. He too was naked, and his erection was jutting outward from his body, at a right angle. He climbed up onto the bed, and knee walked over to the child, until his rigid penis was bobbing inches from her smiling mouth. The man muttered something that was indistinct, and Chrissy answered by nodding her head and smiling up at him. He leaned down and, using his hand to angle his prick, pushed his erection into the young, hot and willing mouth. The angle was awkward for the man, and he couldn't move, but there was no need as the young girl began to move her head up and down on his meat.

After a minute, Mr. Wilkes stopped licking her hairless cunt and crawled up her exciting young body until his cock was positioned over the 8-year-old's smooth slit. The camera had moved down between the third grader's legs to catch the scene as Mr. Wilkes pushed his penis against the tiny, hairless lips, using one hand to rub his purple cock up and down until her vaginal lips parted, revealing her pink interior. Slowly he pushed downward, using his weight to force his cock into the child. Her cunt was wet from his licking, but still the outer lips clung to his rigid member, being pushed inward as, slowly, more and more of the adult penis was pushed into her tender sex hole.

Chrissy then let out a long, "AAAAaaahhhhhhhhh..." as her internal passages stretched to hold the invading pole. The little girl's body was almost engulfed by the man over her. Her small bottom looked as if it was being split in two by the large erection that was still sinking into her hairless cunt. Slowly, but surely, Mr. Wilkes pushed his penis into the 8-year-old girl-child. On screen, his testicles dangled down against Chrissy's small bottom, obscuring the sight of his cock fully penetrating the child.

Then he began to pump the little girl, pulling his cock out, then pushing it back in, her vaginal lips red from being stretched around his erection, moving to-and-fro with the motion of his prick. Chrissy's small body was no match for the size and weight of the full-grown adult who was fucking her. Her bottom almost disappeared from sight on each down stroke from Mr. Wilkes as his weight pushed her into the mattress. His hard penis was clearly visible as it plunged in and out of the girl-child's vaginal cavity.

Mary was in a daze. 'What is this?' she wondered as she took in the sight of an 8-year-old child begin penetrated and humped by a man four times her age. Mary had never had sexual intercourse explained to her. The 9-year-old was not even aware of the existence of the deep opening between her legs; the opening that she could clearly see being probed by the man's strange organ. Little Mary couldn't understand why the man wanted to do this to Chrissy; or why Chrissy would let him. 'Maybe it feels good, like when Tina rubs me?' she wondered to herself. Still, doubts remained in the 9-year-old. Suddenly, she started, as she once again felt Jim Phillips' hand pressing into her own smooth slit.

"Shhhhhh... Sit still, Mary. Just watch how good little Chrissy is with those men. She really knows what she is doing. Sit still and I'll rub your pretty little snatch while you watch the tape. Okay?"

Mary didn't answer. Her body had gone stiff again. Mr. Phillips' fingers felt so large against her 9-year-old little girl vulva. She could feel him spreading the lips of her hairless slit and rubbing up and down in the moist area between.

"It's okay if I rub you, isn't it, Mary? Your sister rubs you, so it's okay, right? Say it, Mary... Say you want me to rub your tight little cunt."

"Uhhmm ... uhhhh..."

"Say 'Rub my tiny pussy, Mr. Phillips.'"

"Umm, rub my tiny ... pussy, Mr. Phillips?" the little girl said, tentatively.

The man's breath was hot in her ear, and she felt herself firmly in his grip. Mary had no choice. This man knew all about her and Tina. He knew everything. She had to do what he said. And besides... if felt kind of good, what he was doing.

On screen, the little girl, Chrissy, was being double fucked. The camera had moved to profile the 8-year-old girl as both men lunged at her small body, driving their hard erections into the third grader's soft compliant body. Mr. Wilkes was steadily pumping himself into Chrissy's tight hairless vagina, grunting with the effort of pushing his whole cock into the tight folds of her pre-pubescent hole. Being so young, Chrissy had a hard time taking all of Mr. Wilkes' penis up her smooth pussy. His cock pushed hard against the opening to her uterus, and pushed aside the little girl's internal organs as it was driven home repeatedly.

Chrissy could not protest, however because her mouth was stuffed with a large penis that was also being thrust back and forth in an attempt to penetrate her pre-teen throat. The man fucking Chrissy's face held her head with one hand and leaned over the girl child, holding himself up with his other hand. His hips jerked at her in short, hard thrusts, while his hand gripped her head tightly and pulled her face forcefully onto his hard penis.

"Mpfh... Mpfhh Mpfh..." came the rhythmic sound from the third grader as thrust after thrust attempted to push a man-sized cock into her small mouth. Chrissy's slender legs were splayed wide, and bounced limply up and down in time to the up and down motions of Mr. Wilkes' ass as he humped his little girl lover.

"Deeper, you little bitch!" came the voice of the man who was fucking Chrissy's face.

"Wait... Wait... I have an idea!" said Mr. Wilkes, lifting his weight off the little girl, his cock waving obscenely over her, coated with a slick skin of her sweet cunt juice. "Here... Pull her over to the edge of the bed... No further... Yeah, that's it. Put your head back, Chrissy!" he said, reaching up and pushing on the 8-year-old's chin until her head fell backwards over the edge of the bed.

"Oh, yeah... That's great... Okay, open up, Chrissy. Open your mouth wide so I can fuck you in the mouth. Yeah... that's it... Wider... Ummmmm yeah..."

The man had quickly positioned himself in front of the small girl, bending his knees to line up his seven inches of erection with her now-upside down face and mouth. Chrissy opened her mouth slightly, and the man pushed his penis into the third grader, forcing her jaw open wider and the head of his cock surged deep into the youngster's mouth.

"Hold her arms down!"

Mr. Wilkes was repositioning himself between Chrissy's legs, pushing aside the little girl's thighs and holding his cock in one hand to guide his insertion into her hairless cunny. The other man leaned forward and, leaning his weight into the task, held Chrissy's arms down at the elbows. The 8-year-old was effectively pinned by the large men who now, once again, began to fuck her small body in earnest.

Mary was starting to squirm in Jim Phillips' lap from his manipulation of her bald pussy. He had two fingers, one above her clit, and one below, that he was moving back and forth in an insistent rhythm that was beginning to turn-on the little 9-year-old. Mary's breathing was starting to become ragged and her breath caught whenever Jim Phillips would change the speed of his manipulations. Still Mary's eye's never left the TV screen where the girl-child Chrissy was being double raped by two men intent on splattering the small girl with their hot loads of sticky white semen.

Jim Phillips was enjoying himself immensely. The scene on the TV was a turn-on for him, but the feel of his fingers between the hot, wet, hairless cunt lips of the 9-year-old on his lap was getting ready to send him over the edge. His cock was hard in his pants, and he dearly wanted to let it out to rub against the smooth bottom of his young conquest, but he didn't want to let go of the little girl long enough to drop his pants. Besides... he wanted her to take his pants off...

He was looking forward to showing the pre-pubescent child her first live cock; looking forward to having her grip it in her small hot hand; looking forward to pushing it into her virgin mouth, fucking her innocent face, and flooding her tiny body with her first taste of hot cum. He almost couldn't wait for the end of the video tape to begin using little Mary... almost...

On screen, the men were fucking 8-year-old Chrissy harder, as they both neared their respective orgasms. Mary could see the one man's large erection pushing deeper into the girl's mouth, causing her to gag as he tried to jam it into her throat. Though she was gagging and struggling a bit, Chrissy could not move because the man held her down hard. Her smooth, breastless chest heaved to catch a breath between strokes of his hard cock. The skin around her face and neck was turning red from the effort of trying to breathe.

Each time he pushed into Chrissy's mouth her throat would swell as the soft head of his penis was forced deeper into her tight esophagus. The gagging reaction caused Chrissy's throat to contract on the invading erection, stimulating the man into fucking her throat harder!

Each time she gagged her stomach tensed, pushing down on her internal organs, making her tightly filled snatch even tighter on Mr. Wilkes throbbing penis. Chrissy's slender legs flopped limply on either side of the thrusting Mr. Wilkes. The camera zoomed in to where his large cock was jamming in and out of the 8-year-old girl's hairless slit. Her clit was red from being jammed hard against Mr. Wilkes course pubic hair.

Every few strokes he would stop on the in stroke and grind his prick around inside the little girl's vagina, looking down as his penis was nearly outlined on the small girl's abdomen.

"Oh... fuck. Chrissy... you got the tightest cunt in the whole fucking world!! How's that mouth, man?"

"Oh this little bitch is ... uh ... hot! You think her cunt's tight. Uh ... You should try this throat. Man, I'm gonna shoot a load ... ummm ...yeah ... I'm gonna fill her up."

"You want that, don't you Chrissy? You want all the hot jizz we got for you, don't you, sweetheart? Humm... yeah... This little school girl wants our hot cum alright! She wants it all over her pretty face, right, baby? I'm gonna blow off in your face, Chrissy. All that nice cum all over your...ahh...your nice face!!"

There was no way the 8-year-old could answer, pinned and filled at both ends by hot, thrusting cocks. The only thing little Chrissy could do was endure as both man began to fuck her small body even harder. The man ramming her mouth had started to moan in time to his fucking, and Mr. Wilkes was slamming his hips up and down on the third grader, jerking her small body up and down on the bed, using her tight vagina to bring his cock to the boiling point!

Mary was breathing in gasps now. She too was close to cumming from the masturbation of her small slit by Jim Phillips' expert fingers. He was rubbing her small clit vigorously now while breathing hot breath into her ear. A small part of Mary didn't want to respond to his hand, but her young body couldn't help itself. Any minute she knew that she would be giving herself up to crashing waves of orgasm.

On screen, the man fucking Chrissy's mouth gave a loud groan and pulled his penis from deep in the 8-year-old's throat. He grabbed his cock and aimed it at Chrissy's upside down face just as a large blast of semen was pumped from the end of his prick and into Chrissy's mouth and nose. The gush of pent-up sperm took the youngster by surprise as she was trying to catch her breath, and some of it obviously was inhaled because the little girl began to cough violently. The man reached down quickly with his other hand and pushed the little girl's head back down as she started to raise it to catch her breath. His second blast hit the child in the forehead, and dribbled into her blond hair. Pushing her head back down, he re-aimed his cock into the coughing child's face and sprayed her with another enormous blast of ropy white cum. Again and again, his penis spit into the 8-year-old's face, coating her from chin to forehead in his viscous semen. Chrissy kept her eyes closed the whole time and flinched each time another hot blast was sprayed onto her innocent face. After spraying young Chrissy with his orgasmic offering, the man rubbed his penis across her forehead to wipe off the last few drops of cum that dangled from the head of his cock. He then let go of the still coughing youngster.

Chrissy immediately lifted her head and began to catch her breath in earnest. She coughed once, twice, and seemed to be better, though she had sprayed semen and spittle on her flat chest.

Mr. Wilkes was still pounding the young girl, turned on by watching her little girl face being blasted with a load of hot sperm. He began to groan and talk to Chrissy as the youngster kept her head up to watch his erection pound in and out of the space between her splayed legs.

"Ohhh nice, Chrissy. Little Chrissy all covered in cum. I'm going to cum on you too, sweetheart... Gonna cum all over you, my sweet little girl. You want my cum, don't you, Chrissy? Tell me you want my cum, baby? I need you to tell me how much you want it... umm, baby."

"Please...uh...spray your...uh... cum on me...uh... Make me wet...uh..." Chrissy replied as her small 8-year-old body was bounced up and down on the bed by the man fucking her skinny, undeveloped body.

Every time Mr. Wilkes shoved the full length of his seven-inch penis into the small girl she would let out a grunt. Chrissy could feel every inch of his hard penis, stretching the lips of her smooth cunt, stretching her vaginal opening wide, and poking hard into the bottom of her uterus. The little girl swore she could feel the veins on the side of his prick as they rasped against the walls of her pre-teen vagina. Chrissy didn't enjoy fucking as much as being masturbated or getting sucked. She tolerated it because Mr. Wilkes and his friends really liked it, and sometimes, just sometimes she too would cum from the feel of a grown man's erection sliding tightly in and out of her little girl slit.

"Uhh Uhhhhh GAWWWDD... Chrissy... CHRISSY... AHHHHHHHH," Mr. Wilkes shouted as he pulled his cock out of its pre-teen cunny prison and began to ejaculate all over the front of the 8-year-old child before him. His semen seemed to leap from the head of his cock to cover the third grader in ropy white strands of gleaming jizm. Jet after jet pulsed from the man as he loomed over Chrissy, his entire body jerking to the rhythm of the blasts of cum. His cock rapidly began to lose it's hardness as the last few drops of his semen dribbled from the end of his penis to fall in the hairless slit still spread before him.

Mr. Wilkes let go of his cock and the head drooped down to rest on the small, reddened clitoris that peeked out from between the folds of Chrissy's well-used cunt. His cock leaked semen, which glided down between the hairless folds, eventually to coat her vagina in a small slick of sperm.

"Oh... Nice one, man. I'd say we covered her, wouldn't you?" said Mr. Wilkes partner as he reached both hands over the girl to her stomach and drew them up over the slender naked body, spreading the cum to all parts of Chrissy's flesh. He worked his way up the naked 8-year-old, massaging the semen into her skin, rubbing his hands up her stomach and over her ribcage, massaging the flesh of her nipples where her breasts would begin to grow in a few years. After massaging Chrissy's flat chest, he worked his way up her neck to her face where he massaged her semen-covered face until it gleamed with a sticky coating of rapidly drying sperm.

"This stuff is good for you, honey. Make your tits grow," he said as he spread the gleaming cum all over the small girl. When he was finished, Chrissy's slender 8-year-old body gleamed in the light, shining with a coating of sticky cum from the top of her forehead to her smooth, but sore vagina. The camera traveled up and down the length of the 8-year-old's tiny body, catching every inch of her semen-covered slender form.

Chrissy just lay there on the bed, her eyes closed and catching her breath after the double-fucking her small pre-pubescent body had just received.

Chapter Twenty-Six

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

Little Mary took it all in, her own small body beginning to twitch uncontrollably as Jim Phillips masturbated her to climax while she watched the video.

The camera focused in on young Chrissy's cherubic, semen-covered face just as the 8-year-old opened her eyes and smiled into the lens, her glistening face a study in carnal pleasure and little-girl innocence.

Just as Chrissy smiled, Mary's body exploded into a mind-shattering orgasm. The carnal, forbidden scenes on the TV had captured Mary's mind and stimulated her own sexual curiosity and desire.

"Naaaaahhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh..." she moaned, as her back arched and her hips humped up and down in Jim Phillips' lap. Her small hands dove for her exposed hairless crotch, but couldn't stop the man's rough treatment of her warm, pliable, pink clitoris. The sensation was almost too great. Not caring anymore where she was or whom she was with, little 9-year-old Mary West gave herself up to the heavenly convulsions of her cum.

For his part, Jim Phillips felt the youngster lose all control of her body. Her slender legs parted even more for him, and her head pressed back into his chest. He felt the small, skinny child spasm uncontrollably in his lap, shaking with pleasure. Her tiny pussy became even wetter, and his large fingers slid even more easily up and down in the small place between her virgin cunt lips, teasing her budding clitoris, and prodding at the small opening leading to her hot, tight interior.

Jim wanted so badly to jam his finger up into this girl, to make her cry out in pain in the middle of her pleasure, to make her bleed from her roughly broken her small cherry, holding her down and watching her cry...

He didn't though. It was going to be so much better. Just a little longer, and he would take her, and take her hard. He eased the pressure on her tiny clitoral bud, and used both arms to hug the still twitching 9-year-old to his body, loving the tiny, bony feel of her underdeveloped, child body.

Slowly, Mary began to return to her senses. She opened her eyes and realized that Jim Phillips had stopped masturbating her. The TV was still running, but the scene no longer showed the 8-year-old Chrissy covered in her adult lover's cum. Instead, it showed a playground full of children of all ages, and the narrator was talking in the background.

Mr. Phillips arms felt reassuring around her as he hugged her to him and little Mary began to hear the words coming from the TV screen again.

"...lucky young girl. There are many other young girls like Chrissy, who have a special friend to teach them all about the world of adult love. These young girls and boys are very special people. They have learned that sex is not a bad thing, and that to share their bodies with their special adult friends can be lots of fun. Maybe some of your playmates are already lucky enough to have a special adult friend. Maybe you can be a lucky child like some of these boys and girls..."

The scene changed to show a very small blond girl lying on the floor while a man kneeling over her masturbated his huge erection over her smiling face. In the corner of the frame the words, "Leslie, Age 6" appeared. The child was grinning up at the moaning man, obviously aware of the hot blast of cream that was about to hit her in the face. The man groaned and pointed his penis down at the first grader. Semen spurted from the purple head of his tortured dick and caught the girl in the mouth. Leslie laughed and more of his cum hit her in the face. "It's hot!" she said at one point as her mouth and chin were coated in the creamy explosion of cum. The picture faded, showing the little girl starting to laugh, obviously amused by the spent expression on the man's face. The whole scene lasted 25 seconds at most.

Another scene followed. This time, a young boy was lying on a bed. His penis was erect. Soft hair had just begun to grow around the base of his cock. A large man came into the picture and without ceremony, knelt between the boys spread legs and lifted the youngster's ankles, putting one on each of his shoulders. He then reached down and guided his cock to the soft crack of the boy's ass, pressing his hard-on into the youngster in one fluid motion.

The boy had obviously been lubricated for the scene, but still his face contorted as his butt was reamed by the large adult erection. The words in the corner of the screen said, "Tony, Age 12". The man began to hump the boy, obviously enjoying his tight rectum and small grunts. Mary watched the scene fade as the camera closed in on the boy's penis, no longer erect, and flopping up and down as his body was humped.

Another scene began showing four men and two girls. One of the girls seemed to be a couple of years older than the other. Her breasts had begun to develop, yet were in that awkward stage where all they really were, were cones attached to her chest.

The other girl was younger and so skinny she looked like a concentration camp victim.

Both girls were on their hands and knees, and each one was sucking on one man's cock, while another fucked them from behind. In the corner of the screen came the caption, "Gina & Melanie, Ages: 13 & 10". The older girl seemed to be handling her double fuck okay, but the 10-year-old Melanie seemed to be having a hard time of it. The two men fucking her could not seem to coordinate their movements, and as a result, the small girl was being buffeted about quite a lot.

In short order, the man with his cock in Gina's mouth moaned that he was going to cum. He groaned and his hips bucked upward into the 13-year-old's face. Gina had no trouble holding his cock in her mouth as he spurted his semen into her. Mary could see that the girl was swallowing as fast as the man could pump his cum into her. As she was swallowing the last of his cum, the man behind Gina called out to warn her of his impending orgasm. The 13-year-old didn't hesitate slipping her mouth from the first dick and hurriedly turning around so the second guy could push his hard penis into her mouth and ejaculate into her throat. His hips bucked and his hand grabbed the back of the girl and held tight as she swallowed his load of sperm.

Meanwhile, in the background the two men with the skinny 10-year-old had finally coordinated their movements so that the tiny girl was being rammed from both ends simultaneously. The man in back grabbed her hips, his large rough hands almost encircling her small waist just above her bony hips. He held her steady as he pushed his large cock back and forth in her hairless cunny.

The man in front of 10-year-old Melanie held her head as he fucked her face. Again, it didn't take long for both men to begin to cum. The man in front pulled hard on the back of the pre-teen's head, and groaned loudly as her nose was pushed into his rough pubic hair, and he pumped his load directly into the small girl's throat. The abdomen of the man in back rammed her bony ass a few more times and, he too bellowed that he was cumming, filling her small cunt to overflowing so that his creamy semen dripped out of the little girl's cunt and began to run down her skinny thighs. The scene faded as the large man collapsed upon the little girl's back, his weight forcing her down on the bed.

Another scene... and another... and another... Mary sat stunned.

'Holy cow, look at all these kids just doing it with these men! Am I the only one who doesn't know about sex?' Then she saw something that shocked her again. It was a scene where a woman, about her mother's age, was being gang-fucked by a trio of young boys ages 12, 14, and 15. All the scenes up to then had shown men fucking and sucking, and being sucked by young girls and boys. Now it dawned on Mary that older women might teach young boys about sex.

So many scenes passed by young Mary's eye's with so many different people that she began to think that this was how everyone learned about sex. The 9-year-old didn't really understand most of what she was seeing. She didn't understand how a man's penis got so big, or what that stuff was, that kept coming out of it. She didn't understand why all the men wanted to stick their things into all those young girls, or why the girls let them. She knew that what her and her sister had done so far felt good, so she guessed that everything she saw these people doing felt good too.

Finally, a scene came on that so stunned Mary that she gasped when she saw it.

It wasn't that the scene was so shocking. In fact, it was fairly straight-forward, compared to some of the others. A young girl was lying on the floor, being fucked by a young teenaged boy. Around the couple, three men were on their knees masturbating. Just after the young boy had his orgasm in the girl, the three men began to spurt cum all over the two kids until each had large with gobs of cum attached to all parts of their bodies.

By now, this all seemed sort of normal, but Mary was transfixed by this scene because the young girl covered in cum was her sister Tina!

Tina's name was in the corner of the screen. Tina lay there and let herself be fucked by a boy. Tina watched as spurt after spurt of semen shot from the adult pricks around her and covered her in their hot sperm.


"Your big sister loves sex, Mary," whispered Jim Phillips into her ear. "She loves to suck me, and she loves it when I stick it up in her. Did you know that, Mary? Huh?"

"Uhhhhh nuh uh."

"Well, she does! I bet you'd like it too, wouldn't you, Mary?" he asked, once again moving his hand up on the child's exposed hairless pussy and beginning to fondle her smooth pink lips. "Don't you wonder where your sister is right now, Mary? I bet I know! Do you want to know, Mary? "

"Uh huh," said the little girl, now desperate to know where Tina had gone for so long, and scared that Mr. Phillips was going to 'do it' to her right now.

"I bet she and John are having a good time together upstairs. You wanna go see?"

Mary didn't know what to say. She didn't want to be left alone with Mr. Phillips anymore, but she wasn't sure she wanted to find out what 'having a good time' meant. She hesitated a minute and then nodded her head.

"Okay, sweetheart... Let's go see, shall we?" And with that, Jim Phillips stood little Mary up and taking her by the hand, led her to the stairs to the other part of the house.

Walking her up the stairs he said, "You're such a sweet little girl, Mary. Now, you remember, you have to be brave like your sister, otherwise your parents might find out about you and your sister and all. You just do what we tell you, and everything will turn out fine. Okay?"

Jim led Mary up the stairs and down the hall to the room at the end.

"Tina's in here, Mary. Why don't you go in and check on her?" he said as he opened the door to the room.

Mary innocently walked into the room held open for her, but stopped the instant the bed came into view. Her eyes widened, and her mouth dropped open, but no sound escaped. There on the bed was her older sister, Tina. She was naked and lying on her back with her feet toward the door, but spread very wide. Above her, also naked, was the large man, John. He was kneeling over the 11-year-old girl, his large erection firmly pushed into her open mouth. His hips were slowly pumping up and down, fucking Tina in the mouth with his large penis.

He had his weight on one hand, and in the other he had a plastic dildo which was jammed halfway up into Tina's hairless vagina. John was using the same rhythm pushing and pulling the dildo in and out of the pre-teen's cunt as he used to fuck her in the mouth.

Tina was grunting, as both ends of her young body were alternately filled and emptied. Her hands were held on each side of the big man's hips, moving up and down with his motion, almost as if she was urging him on; asking to be fucked harder in her small sixth grader mouth. John looked up at Mary as she froze near the entrance to the room. He grinned but didn't say anything, just continued to fuck her older sister in the mouth.

Mary's 9-year-old mind was in a whirl. Part of her said that she should turn around and run from the scene before her. Part of her told her to stay and help her older sister. And a small part wanted to watch, and learn.

Finally, she found her voice, and quaveringly said, "Ta...Tina?"

John obligingly pulled his cock from Tina's mouth, and moved aside so that the 11-year-old girl could get up on her elbows and see who had said her name.

When she looked at her sister, Tina could tell that Mary was scared. The 9-year-old was visibly shaking; her lower lip was quivering as if she was going to cry, and her weight was shifting nervously from one foot to the other. Her heart went out to her little sister, remembering how scared she, herself, had been just a short few weeks earlier.

She sat up and held out her arms, "Mary?"

The fourth grader went running to her sister, and held her. The two little girls held each other for a minute before Jim walked over.

He sat on the bed next to Mary, and, caressing the 9-year-old's hair, he said, "Tina. Mary here wanted to know what was going on. Would you like to help her learn a few things?"

Tina had been prompted by John as to how to answer this question. For a few seconds she faltered in delivering her answer, feeling sorry for her younger sister, but she also realized it was too late to back out now. If Mary was not initiated into Tina's little secret, then that secret could very likely get out, and then Tina would be in more trouble than she cared to even imagine. Not only had she been having sex with these men, WILLINGLY, but she had also lured her younger sister into sex. John had explained all this to her while Jim had been doing 'whatever' to Mary downstairs. He'd managed to persuade her that it was in Tina's best interest to get Mary in the act, now that her sister knew her secret.

So her hesitation lasted only a second before she replied in a small voice, "...Yes."

Nodding, Jim put his hands on little Mary's shoulders and pulled her away from her naked sister. He reached under Mary's chin and pulled her face toward his, until the fourth grader was staring straight into his eyes.

He looked down at her innocent face and said, "Your sister Tina told us you wanted to learn all about sex, Mary. We've been her teachers, and now we are going to teach you. You have to do everything we tell you to, or else your sister will be in big trouble for bringing you here. She was supposed to keep this a secret, but she gave it away to you. Remember, you wanted to be here, so now you do exactly as you're told. You got that, Mary?"

"...Uh huh..."

"No, that's not good enough, Mary. I want you to tell me you'll be a good girl and do as you're told. Say it just like that: 'I'll be a good girl. I'll do anything you say.'"

"I'll be good-a good girl. I'll do anything you say."

"That's good, Mary. Now stand up. Right here - - That's right. Now hold up your skirt so John can see that nice little cunt of yours."

He picked the 9-year-old up and stood her at the foot of the bed. Slowly, she reached down and took the edge of her plaid school uniform dress, and raised it to her chest. She looked to her sister, but Tina said nothing, so she just stood there, her small, hairless slit exposed for everyone in the room to see.

"That's right, Mary... We want to see your nice little cunt. What do think, John? I don't know about you but I can't wait to shove my cock into that nice little hole, huh?"

"Yeah, man. Bet she's tight. So, what say we get started, hey? I just about lost it in Tina's mouth before you guys got here. Another minute of fucking her in the mouth and Mr. Happy woulda popped!"

"Yeah, let's do it. Tina, go strip your sister. Mary, you just stand there and let Tina take your clothes off."

Jim got up as Tina moved to obey. He walked over to a cabinet and opened the door, checking the video monitor to be sure that the three cameras in the room were all running properly.

Tina stepped up to her little sister and whispered to her, "You can let go of your skirt now. Shhh... It's okay. Lemme take your clothes off. Honest, it's going to be okay. If I can do it, you can do it...honest."

Tina didn't really believe what she was saying, but she wanted to remove the fear she saw in 9-year-old Mary's eyes. The fourth-grader was trembling as Tina began to unbutton her white cotton school blouse.

Slowly, Tina revealed her sibling's undeveloped chest. Mary's small brown nipples showed no hint of breast development and lay flat against her rib cage. Her ribs showed clearly under her pale, pre-pubescent flesh. Tina pulled the blouse out from the waist of Mary's plaid skirt and pushed it down over her skinny arms. Then she unzipped the zipper and undid the waistband on the 9-year-old's skirt, and let it fall to the floor.

She knelt down to begin removing Mary's shoes, but John stopped her saying, "No. Leave the shoes on. I think she looks nice in her little saddle shoes and white knee socks."

"Come here, Tina," said Jim. "Let Mary show off her nice little body for us."

The naked 11-year-old walked back to the end of the bed, sat down between the two men, leaving the 9-year-old open to their gaze.

Little Mary stood before Jim and John, not knowing what to do. Undressed, both men could see just how skinny she was: her ribs showed clearly; her chest was flat, with no breast development at all.

The fourth grader held her hands in front of her bare pubic mound, prompting John to say, "Put your hands on top of your head, sweetheart. We want to see that nice, bald little pussy of yours."

When the child hesitated, Jim said, "Do it, Mary. You have to do whatever we say, remember."

The small naked girl did as she was told, and put her hands on top of her head. Now she was fully exposed. Jim and John could see the hairless, pink lips of her virgin cunny puckering slightly between her thighs. Mary's body hadn't developed any of the curves of puberty yet. There was no hint of hair on her mound of Venus. Her hips were bony and stuck out on either side of her waist. She stood there, naked, hands on her head, wearing only white knees socks and black and white saddle shoes. Her body made small jerking motions because of her nervousness. Her eyes flicked nervously from John to Jim to John's exposed erection to Tina and back to John.

"Turn around, Mary. We want to see your bottom. That's right... Not much to it, huh, John?"

"Looks like enough to sink a cock into. Man, this little cunt looks tight all over. Bend over, Mary. Lemme see if I'm going to fit in there. That's it. Reach back with your hands and spread your bottom for us. Come on, sweetie. Reach back and...that's it. Now pull your bottom cheeks apart. Pull. Pull hard. Really spread em."

The 9-year-old took her hands off her head and reached back to her bottom. She couldn't understand why these men wanted to look at her there. That's where poop came out! John coached her how, and soon the fourth grader was bent over at the waist, her small hands pulling her tiny butt cheeks apart. The cool air on her anus felt strange.

Jim was starting to salivate at the sight of the skinny little girl bent over before him, spreading her small bottom, revealing her tiny pink rectum. The lips of her pussy spread slightly from her bent position and between the hairless labia, Jim could barely see her virginal coral interior. He fought the urge to grab the child and rape her hard. He wanted to make it last, at least for a few more minutes.

John got up and walked over to little Mary. His erection bobbing as he walked.

"Stay that way, Mary. Don't move at all."

He walked around to the front of the little girl, and spread his legs on either side of her head. Then he lowered himself until is balls were resting on her hair. Reaching down, he cupped her chin in one hand, and pulled her head up, slowly thrusting his hips back and forth, rubbing his balls and the underside of his cock on the back of her head.

"Ummm... feels nice. You've got nice soft hair, Mary. Ummm... yeah..."

He reached down with one hand and pressed down on his cock until it rubbed firmly against the back of the child's neck and back. Her smooth warm soft skin was very stimulating and pre-cum started to leak from the end of his cock, leaving a sheen on the top of Mary's back.

"Come here, Mary. Time for you to prove you really want to learn something here." Jim beckoned the fourth grader to come over to the bed. He'd removed his pants and shirt, but was still in his underwear. He patted the bed next to him, indicating where Mary was to sit. Glad to be away from the strange thing John was doing to her, Mary came over to the bed and sat down.

Putting his arm around the naked 9-year-old, Jim said, "Today we're not going to have any lessons. Today we're gonna test you to see if you really want to learn about sex. Your sister Tina loves to learn new things, right, Tina?"

"Uh huh."

"That's right. And she told us you wanted to be taught too, but before we decide, we have to test you first. You have to do anything we say. You got that? If you pass our test, then we'll let you join in our little classes. There are lots of girls and boys who would love to be where you are right now, but we decided to take a chance with you because your sister said you really wanted to learn about sex. So we're gonna begin right now. I want you to lay down now and spread your legs as far as they will go."

As he said this, Jim Phillips put one hand on the 9-year-old's flat chest and pushed her backwards onto the bed. Mary didn't resist the pressure her chest, and was soon laying flat on the bed.

"Now spread your legs, honey. Spread them as wide as you can."

Mary looked at her sister for guidance, but Tina only nodded her head at the questioning look from her little sister. Reluctantly, Mary began to spread her legs, exposing her small, soft, hairless cunny to the naked man John, standing at the foot of the bed.

"Wider, baby," said Jim, placing one hand on the inside of the fourth grader's thigh, pulling the nearest leg toward him. "That's it, baby. Show us your sweet little pussy. John and I like to look at and feel a nice little girl's pussy, so soft and smooth."

His hand moved up the slender thigh and he began to stroke Mary's young cunt lips just as he had done down in the living room while making her to watch his kiddie-porn tapes. Mary reacted with a sharp intake of breath, and began to close her legs again, but was stopped by John, who took each of the 9-year-old child's ankles and pulled her legs as wide as they would go.

"No, baby. Don't try to close your legs again until we tell you," said John. He held the little girl wide open while Jim rubbed one finger up and down in her small hairless slot.

Against her will, Mary could feel her body responding to Mr. Phillips' rough caressing of her exposed cunny. His hand felt large against her small sex, his finger probing up and down between the lips of her virgin opening. Again, she looked to her older sister to see if what was happening was ...well, okay.

However, Tina didn't say a word as she watched Jim Phillips masturbate her little 9-year-old sister. To Tina, she looked impossibly small next to these two grown man. She could not believe that both these men were going to have sex with Mary. They seemed so big, and her sister seemed so small. Yet, Tina knew it was going to happen. She knew what Jim and John wanted: little girls, young hairless girls, innocent girls to use anytime for their sexual pleasure. The fact that Tina too got a sexual thrill from the attentions of these men didn't make it any easier to watch as they had their way with her small 9-year-old sister.

Yet Tina wasn't just going to watch. Jim Phillips wanted her to actively participate.

"Tina, come up here and kiss your sister's sweet little cunt."

He pulled her between Mary's outstretched legs, forcing her to kneel on the floor at the end of the bed and placing her face right into the 9-year-old's smooth, pink vagina.

"Come on... Get in here between her legs... That's right. Now kiss her... Kiss that nice little pussy. I know you two have done this at home, so go on... That's right. Now lick her. Lick her good and make her feel real nice. That's it... Lick your sister... Lick her hard..."

As Tina obeyed his instructions and began to lick Mary's pussy, Jim Phillips placed his hand on the back of her head and pushed gently, putting extra pressure on little Mary's stimulated clit.

Mary immediately reacted to her big sister's tongue on her small clit. Without wanting to, she began to feel the shivery sensations that would lead to orgasm. It felt so - naughty! - laying here in a man's bed, legs spread wide while her 11-year-old sister licked her small hairless cunny. Her lingering nervousness caused her body to quiver, and the sensation of Tina's tongue simply added to it.

Both men had left the end of the bed and climbed up to kneel on either side of the naked little girl. Before the fourth grader knew what was happening, Jim Phillips took hold of her hand and guided it towards his exposed, erect penis.

"Here, Mary - - Hold this while Tina licks you. Put your hand around it..." At first, she tried to pull away, but he held her wrist and forced her to wrap her small fingers around his hard, pulsing cock. "No - - Don't pull away. Hold it - - That's right - - Just hold it..."

The 9-year-old's hand barely fit around his hard-on, her small fingers, just meeting over the top of it.

John grabbed Mary's other hand and did the same. On him, her fingers did not meet. Both men held her hand on their cocks and began to stroke them up and down, letting the fourth grader stroke the entire length of their hard adult organs.

"Feels hot, huh Mary? It's hot for you, sweetheart. Looking at your nice smooth little body made me all hard, baby. It's all hard, just for you, honey."

Having secured little Mary's hand to his prick, Jim Phillips again leaned down and pressed on the back of Tina's head, forcing her face into the now wet lips of her little sister's hairless slit.

"Lick her, Tina...Lick her good. I wanna see this sweet child cum, honey. Make her come for us, Tina."

Mary's mind was in a whirl. She could feel both men, easing closer to her on either side of her head. She could feel her hands being forced to stroke their huge organs. She could feel how the wieners in her hand jumped and throbbed and her hand was moved up and down over them. Her cunny was beginning to twitch as Tina brought her closer to orgasm. 'This is wrong!' she thought, but still her body responded to her sister's tongue moving back and forth over her clit, and the pressure over her lips as Jim Phillips continued to press on the back of Tina's head. 'No... No...Nuhh...,' she thought as the tension in her small cunny began to build.

"Nuhhhhh... ah...Nuhhh... ohhhhh..."

"That's it, honey. Let it come, honey. Little baby's gonna come, huh? Come for us, Mary. Come for us while you hold on to our hard cocks, sweetheart. That's right. Lick her, Tina. Yeah. That's it. Eat that beautiful little pussy. I bet it tastes sweet and fresh, honey - - sweet little-girl cunt."

"Nuhh... Nuhhh... Nuhh..." Mary was close to coming now. She opened her eyes and realized that both men had moved right next to her. They still held her hands on their hard cocks. Suddenly, her small cunt began to spasm in orgasm. Her belly went taut, and her head snapped forward.

Wave after wave of pleasure crashed through her small, 9-year-old body.

Little Mary didn't even notice as Jim Phillips quickly moved the last few inches toward her and began to rub his hard penis on her face. Her eyes were closed. She felt the warmth on her cheek, but didn't have enough control to open her eyes to see what it was.

"That's it, baby girl. Cum for us! Hold on to these big cocks and cum for us, sweetheart. Your skin is so smooth and soft, baby. I'm gonna love fucking this big cock into your sweet hairless cunt!!! I think you're about ready, sweetie. Ready for some cock."

He stroked her hand on his cock, pushing it against her cheek, talking dirty to the fourth grader the whole time. 'Yeah', he thought, 'this is going to be nice.'

Tina felt her sister cum. Mary's small hairless cunny was convulsing under Tina's tongue. Tina was a little surprised that Mary came so fast with these strange men watching, but then, Mary had really enjoyed her late night sessions with Tina, too. Maybe it wasn't going to be so bad after all, she thought; having these two grown men introduce her 9-year-old sister to sex.


Chapter Twenty-Seven

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

As her orgasm died, Jim and John retreated from the young girl, letting her hands fall away from their throbbing cocks. She lay obscenely spread on the bed. Tina sat on her knees at the foot of the bed between her sister's spread legs. Mary's hairless, pre-teen pussy glistened with Tina's saliva, and her own emissions. Her flat chest heaved up and down as the 9-year-old child tried to recover from coming so hard. Her arms were spread out to each side. Her eyes were closed. 'She's ready for it,' Jim thought.

"Tina. Come here. Get up on the bed. Lay on your side up here next to Mary's head. No... Yeah... Get your face over hers, up on one elbow. Yeah, that's it...Okay, John. You know what to do... Yeah... Great!"

As if he was directing a shot in one of his kiddy porn movies, Jim had Tina up on the bed, lying on her side, up on one elbow, with her head near Mary's.

Once in position, John knee-walked to the naked fourth grader and straddled her chest, his hard cock bobbing up and down, over her face. Mary, feeling the bed move, opened her eyes, just as John threw his leg over her flat chest. She saw his large hairy balls hanging right over her face for a second, descending toward her, before he settled back on his knees and she began to feel the weight of his ass pressing down on her.

"No... wait...!" she began to say.

"Shut up, Mary. You can't say a word here. You just watch and learn, then do! You do whatever we say, got that? Just relax, sweetheart. This is going to feel great. Tina, show your sister how much you like to suck a man's wiener!"

John reached out and placed his hand on the back of Tina's head, pulling the 11-year-old's face toward his cock. He held his hard prick with one hand and guided it toward Tina's already opened mouth.

As his cock slipped past the sixth grader's eager lips, he released the base and gripped her head in both hands. He then began to rock her back and forth on his cock, swaying his hips to enhance his thrusts.

"Watch your sister, Mary. Look at how good she is. She doesn't put up a fuss. Your sister is a good girl, Mary. Watch her closely, 'cause your turn is next."

As he spoke, Jim moved to the end of the bed between the 9-year-old's still spread legs. He leaned forward and smelled the wonderful scent of her smooth, hairless, pre-teen cunt. It gleamed, inviting him to taste it, fondle it, and fuck it. Her smooth little cunny-lips were parted slightly to reveal the beautiful pink inner recess where soon he would press his hard erection.

He put his hands on her thighs and she started slightly, trying to close her legs. It was too late; Jim had complete control of this little girl who was pinned by the man above her. Slowly, he pressed his face against the small virgin opening between her skinny pale thighs. He pressed his tongue against her little girl slit and her cunt lips parted for him.

To Jim, this 9-year-old child tasted glorious. Her tiny cunt had a wonderful tang to it, and he began to swirl his tongue up and down in her opening; bathing her with his spit; lubricating her for his cock! Mary's eyes were wide open! Inches above her head, taking up her entire view, she watched as the underside of John's seemingly immense penis moved rhythmically in and out of her sister's mouth. 'How does it fit in there?' she wondered as she watched the veined pole of meat being pushed deeper into Tina's mouth. Her position made John's cock look enormous. His testicles swayed back and forth over her chin; the hair tickling her slightly.

Suddenly, Mary felt someone between her legs! She started, her body jumping instinctively, but this only succeeded in getting her chin brushed by the full weight of John's large balls. They were hot against Mary's skin, and she felt John's scrotum contract at her touch. 'Oh, God... What's happening?' she thought, but not for long.

She felt Mr. Phillips spread her legs wider; felt his face pushing against her open cunny; felt the roughness of his face as he pushed his tongue into her tiny pussy.

It felt horrible...

It felt wonderful...

'He's going to lick me!' she thought with fear and anticipation both.

Mary suddenly wanted to be licked by this grown man. She put up no resistance as he settled his weight on her thighs and began to press his mouth over her hairless cunt; completely engulfing her small orifice with his mouth. Her breathing quickened in anticipation of feeling another orgasm, only this one wouldn't be from her sister; this one would be "for real" - - with a man.

'It's so dirty,' she thought. And deep down a little voice inside her said, 'I want it!'

Jim Phillips was in heaven. His face was pressing into the small hairless crack of a 9-year-old girl who, until this very day, had never even seen a naked man. She tasted wonderful, and each time he pressed his tongue against her tiny clitoris, he felt her body clench.

He probed the fourth grader's vagina with his tongue, pushing against the hymen he felt there, knowing it would soon tear away under his cock. Little Mary was breathing harder, and her legs were beginning to shake. In another few minutes, she would be having another nice cum. It was almost time for the next step. He licked her hard, wanting to bring her to the edge - - setting her up for the next step in his little program. When she began to moan, and her hips began to move up to meet his face, he knew that his little school girl was ready. He reached up and tapped John on the back, signaling him to take the next step.

John was already stimulated to the max. He'd had a hard time keeping from blowing his load into Tina before Jim dragged Mary up from the living room. Now he was ready to blow it again. When he felt the tap on his back, he didn't hesitate. He took Tina's head off his prick, and pushed her out of the way. Falling forward on the bed so he was on all fours over Mary, he reached back and grabbed a handful of the 9-year-old's hair.

"Open your mouth now, Mary. Just like you saw Tina doing. Come on and suck me. Suck me good, because I'm gonna blow a huge load in your mouth."

He pressed his slimy, wet erection against the fourth grader's closed mouth.

Mary was startled and slow to react. Her instinct was to close her mouth against the intrusion of John's hard penis.

"Come on, Mary," John coaxed. "You've got to take my big hard wiener in your mouth, baby. Tell her, Tina. Tell her she has to suck me off now. Go on... tell her."

Tina leaned forward. "Uhh... You got to, Mary. You got to take it in your mouth."

"Numm," moaned Mary, shaking her head from side to side, not wanting to do it.

"You've got to, Mary. It's not too bad, really."

"Come on, Mary," said John. "You don't have any choice. If you don't do everything we say, your big sister here is gonna be in deep shit. Tell her, Tina... Tell her about the pictures..."

Tina was scared now. If Mary didn't cooperate, then their parents would find out about everything, and she'd be in real trouble.

"Please, Mary. If you don't do what they say, we'll both be in big trouble. They got pictures of me and all... I... We... If mom and dad see them, they'll kill me. Please..."

Mary was totally overwhelmed. She loved her sister and didn't want her in trouble, but she was really grossed out by the thought of putting her mouth on the hard slimy wiener that was being rubbed back and forth across her lips. She liked what Jim Phillips was doing to her; his large head pressed hard into her hairless cunny; his tongue probing and licking her 9-year-old slit, bringing her to another orgasm. She was so close to coming. 'Oh, God', she thought, 'I hope this isn't bad,' and with that thought she opened her mouth.

"Good girl," said John as the 9-year-old opened her mouth for him.

He began to press his hard cock into her small oral cavity. "I'm going to push it in you, baby. That's it, baby. got a tight mouth, Mary. Careful - - Open wider - - No teeth - - That's it baby... A little deeper now, honey. AHhhhhh you little bitch, that's nice."

John pressed three inches of his erection into the fourth grader's mouth, loving her small moans as he forced her to open her mouth wider for the invading member. The little girl was shaking all over from fear and impending cum.

Her eye's were still open, but now they were focused on the shock of adult pubic hair that hung over her face, and on the rigid shaft of penis that was being pushed into her pre-teen mouth.

"Use your tongue, Mary. Move your tongue around on it, like your sister does - - Oh, shit...! I'm gonna cum in your mouth in a second, Mary - - Oh...yeah...suck that cum out of me, sweetheart. Tina likes my cum - - You're gonna like it too, Mary."

Mary's mouth was stuffed. She couldn't move her tongue much even if she wanted to. The large, soft-yet-stiff head of John's wiener was pushed all the way into her mouth. Her jaws ached from being open so wide. His hips were moving, never pulling his cock out much, but insistently trying to push it deeper into her.

Mary didn't care. She was going to cum, and cum hard.

"MMMMuuummmpphhhhh," was the only sound that came from the 9-year-old as her body went rigid with her crashing cum. Her belly surged with each wave of orgasm, jerking her small frame around under John. Jim Phillips held tightly onto the fourth grader's slender hips, pulling her bucking pre-teen cunt hard into his face, feeling her tremble as her tiny pussy spasmed under his mouth. Loving it.

"Oh... FUCK... oh... FUCK!!!... I'm cummming... Oh you BITCH!!! FUUCCKKKK..." John pushed his hardest yet into Mary's mouth, managing to force another inch of his erection into the little girl. Her head was pinned to the bed as he let most of his weight rest on his spitting penis. "AHHH... AH... AH...AH...AH...AH...AH..." he cried as blast after blast of semen shot from his balls into the fourth grader's mouth.

Mary was blind. Her eyes had rolled up into her head, and the world had turned into a series of crashing flashes of pleasure. Each slammed into her body, radiating from her cunt to her brain, and exploding out the top. She didn't feel John's cock as it was forced into the entrance to her throat. She didn't feel the blasts of hot, viscous sperm that rocketed from his penis each time it expanded in her mouth. In an instant, what room there was in Mary's mouth was full, and John's cum was flowing out around her lips, coating her cheeks and chin. Mary didn't care. She was CUMMMMMIIIIINNNNNGGGG.

'Christ, she's a hot one,' thought Jim Phillips as little Mary's hips bucked up and down against his face. 'I hope those cameras don't fuck up on me now!' he prayed. There were four of them; four Video cameras placed in various parts of the room. Each of them was recording 9-year-old Mary and 11-year-old Tina having sex with two adults. Each of them was about to record a little fourth grade girl losing her virginity to an adult. Each of them was about to watch little Mary take an adult erection into her tiny, hairless vagina.

John pulled his cock from Mary's mouth when the last of his jizz had been pumped into her. The little girl, coughed, swallowed what was in her mouth, and then lay there, still jerking slightly, her mouth hanging slackly open, her cheeks and chin covered in cum. He climbed off the girl, and called Tina over to clean off his cock with her mouth. Tina complied silently, sucking the coating of jizm off John's deflating penis.

"Go lick the cum off your sister now, Tina. Clean her up good." And again, Tina complied, knowing she had no choice.

"Jesus, that was good," said John as he and Jim watched Tina lick the white cum off Mary's face. "Man, I envy you getting the first fuck off this little bitch. She's one hot little cunt. Phewww."

"Yeah... Let's find out if she can take it. You lick her cunt while I show her what she's gonna get."

Still panting from his orgasm, John moved off the bed and moved between little Mary's still-spread legs. He placed one over each shoulder and moved to start sucking her gorgeous 9-year-old snatch. The little girl moaned as his tongue began to fondle her smooth slit, teasing the little bud of her clitoris.

"Come on, Tina... We have to show your sister what she's in for next." Jim reached out and pulled Tina to him, positioning her over Mary's slender form, with her head next to John's and one knee on each side of the 9-year-old's head. "That's good... Now just hold it there."

Jim moved up behind Tina, and bent down to talk into Mary's ear. "Hey, Mary... Come on, baby. Open your eyes... We're not done yet... That's right... Take a look at your sister's nice little cunt... Isn't it nice, huh? All smooth and hairless... Just like your sweet little baby cunt, honey. Now watch real close, okay... I want you to see this close up."

Mary had opened her eyes as soon as the fourth grader felt Jim Phillips' hot breath on her ear. It took her a second to focus, but she quickly remembered where she was, and wondered what was going to happen next. Tina's bald slit was just inches away from her face, and Jim was on his knees, moving to get in position behind the pre-teen to fuck her doggy style. Mary watched in disbelief as he guided the head of his erect penis to the opening of Tina's small pussy. She could feel the heat of his penis scant inches from her face, and the hair on his balls as it brushed her forehead. Jim Phillips gripped Tina's waist, and pushed his erection into her. Mary saw the purple head of his cock spread the hairless lips, and then disappear into the sixth grader. Tina let out a moan as Jim Phillips pushed himself deeper into the compliant 11-year-old body.

'Where is it all going?' Mary wondered as the shaft of his cock sank deeper into her sister. It looked painful, but Tina was obviously not in any pain. In fact, her moans seemed to indicate no discomfort at all. Mary couldn't have known that Tina was one well fucked little girl, and that in a few moments she was going to find out just how painful the first time could be.

"Are you watching, Mary? See how it fits in real nice? Your sister's nice and tight, honey, but I bet you're even tighter. MMMuummm...Yeah... Nice tight little girl..."

He began to fuck Tina then, pulling his cock out until just the head was still in her, and then pushing easily back into her. "Tina... Mumm... yeah... Tell Mary you like it. Tell her you love to have it nice and hard in you..."

"Uh... I like it..."

"No... Come on, Tina... Say, 'I love to have a big hard wiener pushed up in me.' Go on..."

"I love to have a big hard wiener pushed... uh ... up in me..."

Jim Phillips gave a hard thrust into the 11-year-old just when she got to the word "pushed". With the weight of Jim Phillips resting on her, Tina's knees had spread, and now little Mary was watching Tina being fucked just two inches from her nose. His balls moved back and forth across the top of her head and forehead. Mary could smell the lubrication of Tina's pussy. The heat was even more intense now, and the small fourth grader was again being aroused by the feel of John's mouth on her own small vagina, his large hands massaging the small balls of flesh of her bottom, one finger rubbing back and forth on her small anus.

Chapter Twenty-Eight

Note from The Purvv: Chapters 22-28 of this story was found on the internet as one large chapter and the author's name was credited as Chester Field. It could not be established whether this was written by the same anonymous author who wrote the first twenty-one chapters, and some readers have voiced their skepticism.

"Oh... shit... That's enough of that... Now it's your turn, Mary...Time to feel my hard cock up in you, sweetheart." As he said this, Jim Phillips pulled out of Tina, his hard-on slick with her juices. He moved out of the way and pulled Tina back to kneel at Mary's head. "Here... You hold her arms down," he said, taking the 9-year-old's arms and pulling them over her head. He positioned Tina to lean some of her weight on the little girl's wrists to hold her hands over her head. "Come on, man," Jim said to John, "Time to pump some tight young twat! Help Tina hold her down."

Jim Phillips wasted no time, moving between the small, 9-year-old girl's legs.

"Yeah, baby... You want this big cock in you don't you...?" Jim Phillips began to rub his hard cock between the small hairless cunny-lips of the little child.

Mary, already excited by John's tonguing of her clit, felt good as the large hard penis stroked back and forth over the small sex button. She began to tremble, feeling her small cunt respond to the continued rubbing of her young clitoris.

"Tell me, Mary... Ask me to put it up in you, Mary... Say it real nice... Please push your hard wiener in me... Say it, Mary... You gotta ask for it, or I can't help you."

"Uhh... Please..."

"Please, what? Come on, Mary... Your sister likes it. You're gonna like it too, but you have to ask real nice. Please push your hard wiener in me..."

"Oh... Please push it in me."

Mary felt like she was going to come again, but still a small part of her was afraid to say the words out loud. She thought she could get away with her vague response. It wasn't going to work... Jim Phillips reached up one hand, and grabbed Mary's face. His strong hand squeezed her hard as he leaned down, getting his face just inches from the 9-year-old's.

"Listen, Mary. You're gonna say it the way I tell you to, you got that? Now say it right! Please push your hard wiener up in me. NOW!"

Stunned, and scared, the 9-year-old's eyes opened wide.

She looked at Jim and stuttered, "Puh...Please push your ... your hard wiener up in muh... me."

"Good girl. Say it again." Jim went back to stroking his cock against the little girl's hairless virgin slit. He had to get little Mary to say the line right otherwise his video wouldn't work out as he planned. One of his buyers loved it when a little girl asked to be raped.

Jim had to confess, he liked it too.

"Please... push your hard wiener up in me..." she said, again in a shaky voice.

"Again, Mary... I think you want me to do it, but I'm not sure. You slit is so small, and my big wiener is so large. You do want it, don't you? Tell me again what you want."

"Please push your hard wiener up in me."

This time it wasn't shaky at all...

"Good girl, you're a real sweetheart, Mary. I'm going to push it up into you real hard, baby."

He used the fingers of his left hand to spread the hairless pink lips of girl-child's vagina, revealing the coral interior and the tiny opening to her body. He eased the purple head of his penis up to the 9-year-old girl's opening. The head of his cock completely covered her small opening. He gave an experimental push. The lubricated sides of Mary's vagina gave way just a bit, and half the head of Jim's cock disappeared into the child.

"One more time, little girl... Ask me real nice."

"Please push your hard wiener up in me-eeEEEEEAAAHAHHHAHHH!"

Jim slammed into the slender little girl with all his might, ripping her hymen to shreds in one stroke, but only managing to get half of his cock into her hot tight cunt. Mary went crazy as soon as he shoved into her, her 9-year-old body convulsing and squirming to try vainly to get away from the hard cock she now felt tearing into her. John pushed one hand down on her flat chest to hold her down, and used the other to grab one of Mary's hands that had gotten away from Tina.

Tina had forgotten about the pain she had felt the first time. Besides, Jim Phillips had been much gentler with her the first time, using his finger to probe her virgin slit before pushing his hard penis into her young body. She was shocked at seeing her little sister hurt so bad by someone she had come to trust, sort of.

"Hey, Hold her down, Tina..." John said, pushing Mary's one loose arm back over her thrashing head. Tina was so dazed that she complied, keeping Mary from flailing uselessly at the large man who was straining to push more of his big erection into the virgin pre-teen.


Mary thrashed her head back and forth, the crushing pain between her legs was more than she could stand. She looked up at Jim Phillips to beg him to stop, but could only cry out. It didn't matter, he wasn't looking at her face. He was watching his large adult erection sink slowly deeper into her tiny fourth grader's hairless vagina. His buttocks clenched as he tried to use more of his weight to drive himself deeper into the crying schoolgirl. He could already feel his balls touching the fantastically smooth skin of her trembling butt. It wouldn't be much longer now...

"PLLEEEAAASSSE AHhhhrghh... STOP!! STOP PLEASE!! IT HURTSSS!!! NNAAHHhphhhhh mmmmppppphhhh!"

John clamped his hand down over Mary's mouth to stifle her screams. Watching her struggle, he was starting to get another hard-on. Maybe he'd fuck little Mary tonight too...

"GAAWWDDDddamn, you're tight, Mary! I'm in, baby... All the way up in you... Feel it... Feel how deep it goes... Shit you got a hot cunt!"

Mary's screams and cries tensed her stomach muscles and each time it squeezed down on Jim's cock, sending shivers of pleasure rocketing into his balls. He was going to shoot his load now, if he didn't stop and take a breather.

"Mary... Mary... Look at me, now... MARY! Look at me... It's in you now... I know it hurt, but it's all the way up in you now... Feel it? Let her answer, John."

"Mmpph HURTS! Please...mmpphh..."

"MARY... Stop crying and stop yelling, or I'll really hurt you. I asked you a question, little girl... Do you feel it in you?"

Mary was scared. She wanted this to stop. She realized she better pay attention to Mr. Phillips or it would never stop.

When John unclasped her mouth again she answered, "Yes... feels too big... Please (sob) don't hurt me any mah ... mah ...moreee uhhh uhhh uhhh..."

She started to cry.

'Well, at least she quit screaming,' Jim thought.

"Listen, Mary, it always hurts the first time... You're so nice and tight inside I bet it hurt a lot, but you have to do it. It's like a shot. You have to get a shot so you don't get sick. You have to do this so you can have sex like your big sister. You want that, don't you?"

"No... No... OWWW... Please... I wanna go hoomee uhh uhh uhh..."

"Mary... MARY! Listen to me."

Her sobbing subsided and she looked up at Jim. He looked down into the tear-filled eyes of the tiny 9-year-old and his cock twitched. He loved watching little girls cry, especially if it was his cock that made them cry. Even so, he wanted to hear her ask for it one more time.

"It's done, sweetheart. You can't go home until we are done with you. Now, I'm going to squirt my stuff up in your body, Mary. I'm going to pump my wiener into you and it's going to feel real good for me, baby. Your little body's going to make me squirt my hot cum up your tight little hole, but you've got to help ask me to pump you. I want you to say something special, and remember, the better you say it, the more you mean it, the faster it will all be over and you and your sister can go home... You got that?"

Mary nodded, tears slipping out of her eyes and down the side of her face.

"Good girl. I want you say, over and over, 'Pump it in me hard.' Go on... say it..."

"Puh... pump it (sniffle) in me ... hard..."


"Pump it in (sniffle) me ... hard."


"Pump it in mEE OOWwwww!"

Jim had begun to pull is throbbing erection back out of the little girl's overstretched cunt. The torn edges of her hymen rubbed hard against the side of his erection, causing the little girl more pain, and some bleeding. The blood helped ease Jim's entry into the 9-year-old and he fucked into the child with less resistance than his initial entry.

"Keep saying it, Mary..."

"Pump it in me...hard. Oww ow. Pump it ohhhhh... Pump it in me hard. It hurts... Oww …Pump it in me hard. Pump it OW! in me ohhh...hard..."

The tiny child continued pleading with the man, to fuck her, and fuck her hard. She didn't know what she was asking for. She just wanted it to end. However, as Jim Phillips filled her again and again with his large erection, it began to hurt less and less. The pain was still there, but the size of Jim's penis in her tiny hairless pre-teen slitty was turning her on slowly. The shaft of his cock was dragging back and forth over the child's clitoris, giving her the stimulation she needed to overcome the pain of his initial brutal entry.

As he fucked her, Mary began to mean more and more the words she was chanting. It slowly began to dawn on the little girl just what it was that Tina had been getting.

"Pump it in me hard. Pump it in me hard... Uh... Uh... Pump it in uh me uh hard."

Holding himself over Mary's slender form, Jim watched his cock pushing its way into her tight cunt. The lips of her small pussy were dragged in and out of the girl-child each time along with his cock; such was the tight way they clamped onto his penis. Watching his massive cock sink into the slick, hairless, blood-covered little vagina of the tiny child under him, Jim knew he was going to flood this schoolgirl with a massive load of his hot semen.

'Oh fuck,' he thought, 'I can't hold back any longer... I gotta fuck this little girl hard, NOW!' And with this thought, he began to lay down on the fourth grader, letting more and more of his weight rest on her skinny body.

The 9-year-old was so short that when Jim laid down on her, the top of her head was just under his chin. He bent his neck and nuzzled his face in the sweet smelling hair on top of the child's head, all the while humping her with greater and greater force.

Tina let go of Mary's arms, realizing that her little sister didn't need to be held any longer. Even if Mary wanted to get up, the small 75-pound girl was pinned under the 200-pound adult whose buttocks clenched and unclenched as he humped his cock into his pre-teen conquest.

Of themselves, Mary's arms wrapped around Jim Phillips' back; or tried to since the little girl could not reach all the way around the man's chest.

'Oh god... It's starting to feel good...' thought Mary as the breath was pushed out of her young body by the weight of the man laying on her, humping her. She turned her head to the right, and her face was pinned between the mattress and Jim Phillips sweat covered chest; the hair of his chest pressing into her cheek.

"Please pump me hard... Pump it in me hard, please..." the 9-year-old still chanted, not even realizing that she had added the word "please" to her lascivious litany. It didn't matter; Jim Phillips was no longer paying attention. His mind was not in his brain; it was deeply penetrating the fourth grade innocent under him.

"Please pump it in me...hard... Please... PLEASE... Pump... pump it in muhhh me... PLEASE...PLEASE PLLLLEEEEAAAAHHHHHHHHHH!!"

Mary was coming. Jim Phillips' monster penis in her small little girl twat had driven the child over the edge.

Again, the young girl was crying out. However, this time it wasn't pain that drove the air from her lungs and caused her body to convulse up and down. Instead, hot white pokers of pleasure radiated from the deepest part of her under-developed cunt, causing her to jerk and spasm under the man who continued to thrust his hardness into her. Her arms flailed at his sides; constantly shifting from place to place on Jim Phillips' back to try and pull MORE of his hardness into her sweet pre-teen body.

Her tiny hips bucked back into Jim's thrusts; her stomach muscled clenched and unclenched; her eyes rolled up into her head and she screamed in pleasure, "YYYAAAAAAAAHHHHRRRRGGGGGHHHH!"

For Jim, a hard tight pussy-fist had grabbed his cock; a fist that was stroking and clenching and sucking at him. With his nose still buried in Mary's sweet smelling hair, he felt every part of the schoolgirl get tight on him, especially on his cock. He felt her clutch at him; felt her legs splay as wide as they could and then bend at the knees, clutching his legs and jerking on him in time to the fist that was squeezing his erection. It was much more than he could stand. His hips slammed forward into the tiny 9-year-old child one more time and his hot white cum began to rocket into the tight, convulsing cavity enclosing his hard prick.


Milky white semen poured into Mary. There being no room in the 9-year-old's fully stuffed orifice, it poured back out around all sides of her baby smooth, hairless pussy. The interface between man and little girl became slick as Jim continued to grind his groin at the pre-teen child, pumping and pumping her full of his sperm.

Both man and girl-child jerked at each other. Tina and John just watched in amazement. John had never seen Jim Phillips lose control like this while dominating a small girl. Tina had never seen Mary have an orgasm like this in all their dirty secret sex play in their shared room at night.

It was obvious that Jim Phillips had a new favorite plaything, and the thought hurt Tina a little. What happened if he liked Mary more than her? Would she have to go out and find another man who would like her older, slightly rounder body? The fact that she was jealous at all bothered Tina. Just moments ago, she had felt pity for poor Mary as she was impaled on Jim's large erection. Now she was feeling envy that Mary would take the attention of that fat erection away from her. It was all very confusing.

The man continued to convulse on top of the little girl; his butt making shuddering thrusts between her skinny splayed legs. Eventually, he grunted and seemed to collapse on the 9-year-old; breathing hard and deep, trying to recover his senses. Underneath him, Mary too was trying to recover from her first ever fucking, but with little success since it was hard for her to breathe. Still, she was too exhausted to protest.

"Shit, that was hot... Come here, Tina... I gotta have it again."

John grabbed Tina and pulled her over to straddle on top of him as he lay down on the bed.

"Fuck me, Tina... I've got a hard-on that's just gotta be drained," he said as he pulled on her hips to guide her hairless cunny in line with his erection.

Tina, feeling the need as well, reached down and guided John's hot rod into her smooth 11-year-old snatch, and sank slowly down onto his tool with a moan. She began to rock back and forth and up and down on the man as her fondled her smooth butt and ran a hand back and forth across her still flat nipples.

"Ummm...yeah, Tina... got one of the nicest cunts...yeah... Umm fuck me good, baby... Make it cum up inside that nice smooth cunt...yeah...oh...yeah... oh fucking little girl...loves her hard cock...ummm."

John kept up a litany of words as Tina stroked up and down on him. Next to them on the bed, Jim Phillips had finally recovered enough to rise up on one arm to watch John and Tina fucking.

And Mary, finally able to turn her head, looked around only to see a perfectly clear view of John's cock sliding in and out of her older sister's bald slit. Mary could see that Tina was enjoying riding John's hard cock, and now Mary understood why. She could feel Mr. Phillips erection growing soft within her body, and she felt a vague sense of disappointment that he couldn't fuck her anymore right now. She also understood that now that she had learned the secret, and done it the first time, many more times would follow. The 9-year-old watched the 11-year-old with the knowledge that both of them would be doing a lot of things with these (and other) men in the near future.


Tina's cunt was stimulated to orgasm and it took her so fast that it surprised even her.

"OH OH OH AHHHHH AHH AHH AHH AHH Ahh ahh ahh ahh ahh..." she cried as she jerked back and forth on top of the man. John had clamped his hands on her hips and was forcing her down onto his spasming cock, flooding the sixth grade girl with his semen.

"IN YOU... AHHHH YEAH... Oh FUCK! Ahhoooow yeah... baby... yeah..."

It was incoherent lust, and both partners loved it.

Jim and Mary watched John and Tina cumming in exhausted silence.

Afterward, nobody moved for a while; two naked men, their deflated cocks glistening with a coating of drying cum and cunt juice, and two naked little girls ages 11 and 9, all lay on the bed together, none wanting to get up.

Finally, Jim broke the spell, "You girls better be getting home soon, otherwise your parents are going to wonder what became of you."

He got off the bed and went to fetch a washrag with warm water. He used this to gently clean Mary's groin from navel to knees, wiping up the blood and dried cum that coated the small child.

"You might be a little sore, sweetheart, but you'll be okay. Tina, you help your sister, okay? Make sure she goes to bed early. I think she's gonna need her rest tonight, that's for sure."

All four of them got dressed with the clothes that were scattered around the house. The two girls in their school uniforms looked as innocent as could be, and Jim had some nagging thoughts that maybe he would like to do Mary while she was in her school dress, but he let it pass. Enough for today. He'd have more of her in the future.

Before they left, Jim reminded Tina of the trouble that would happen if anyone found out about their little secret. He made a point of telling her in front of Mary, so that the younger girl also got the message.

Then he turned to Mary and said, "So, sweetheart, now you know our little secret, just like I knew your little secret. There is still so much more that we can show you. You've only just begun to learn about sex. Tina still doesn't know everything, and we can all have more fun together in the future if you want, but you've got to promise me now that the only person you talk to will be Tina... Okay?"

"Okay," said the compliant 9-year-old.

Mary was curious what else there could be. She wanted to know, just as she did when she came in the door and the fact that Tina didn't know it all made her feel good. They could learn to together and become real close sisters like they used to be before Tina began to learn about sex and stuff without her.

"Tina... tomorrow I have to go out of town. Why don't you take Mary over to John's house and introduce her to Julie and Jennie? I know they'd love to see you again. You'll do that, right?"

Tina knew this wasn't really a request, but she didn't mind too much. She had liked Julie and Jennifer from the birthday party, and had meant to go to their house anyway sometime soon.

"Okay!" she said brightly.

"See you tomorrow, Tina. See you then, Mary," said John and the two girls walked out the back door of Jim Phillips' house. They waved as the little girls walked around the corner and out of sight.

"Your brother-in-law going to be there tomorrow?" asked Jim, turning to John as he closed the door.

"Yeah. He's in town again. You know he always comes by when he's down on his luck. He wanted me to ask you if you had a part for him. Maybe in that Grand Canyon thing you're gonna do in a few months?"

"Nah... I don't think so. Not after the way he got out of hand in Mexico. It's a good thing he didn't pull that stupid stunt with one of our regular girls. I don't even know if that kid survived after we dumped her at the hospital. I think we were lucky to get out of the country without being arrested. I can't afford to have him screw up one of my big budget numbers again. Maybe I can use him in some short stuff. I can put him in touch with those snuff guys if you really want me to."

"Nah... he's a pain in the ass, but Eve likes him, and if he fucks up with those boys, they'll gut him."

"Just make sure he doesn't hurt those two tomorrow. I need some time to get the rest of the family in the picture, and then we'll have a whole new set of stars. I'm thinking maybe I'll have a shot at Tina's Mom, maybe I can suck her in and use her somehow... Gotta work it out."

"Okay... whatever. I'll keep an eye on him. See ya later."

"Yeah... See ya..."

Jim Phillips closed the front door after John left. 'Maybe I ought to call those snuff guys anyhow. That brother-in-law of his is a danger to all of us.' But he didn't conclude those thoughts. After all, there was a bedroom upstairs with a bunch of new videos that needed to be reviewed.

Closing Note:

This is the last that I was able to find on the internet. As it is now over a year since I first started posting, and no one has contacted me to claim authorship or to point me to any other chapters, I'll assume that this is the last that has been written of young Tina.

I'd like to add my own plea here that I think that everyone who read this believes, as I do, that such things don't really happen with such innocent little girls. However, I would hope that if anyone hears of even a rumor of such goings on in the real world, that the authorities should be notified - The Purvv.